Servants Book
Servants Book
This book is intended as a spiritual guide for Sunday School servants. The contents of the
book are based on lessons given in servants meetings for the past 8 years in St. Marys Coptic
Orthodox Church in Raleigh, NC, covering the period 2002 - 2010. The book is broken up into
several chapters, covering topics that are suitable for discussion in servants meetings. Chapter
1 gives a comprehensive overview of the characteristics of a servant. Chapter 2 specifically
studies the service of children. Chapter 3 presents Bible study of several books of the Bible.
Chapter 4 discusses church fasts and feasts, while Chapter 5 takes a close look at tradition,
church rites, and the Divine Liturgy. Chapter 6 covers saints of the Coptic Church and Chapter
7 examines important social issues facing the Orthodox Christian. Chapter 8 takes a deep look
at church theology and dogma, while Chapter 9 presents several spiritual articles for meditation
and spiritual growth. Chapter 10 gives selected Agpeya prayers suitable for servants meetings
and Chapter 11 gives a comprehensive list of hymns that may be sung in servants meetings
throughout the entire Coptic year.
This book is not yet finished. We will keep adding topics as they are completed. We
ask that our Lord Jesus Christ accept this humble service. May Christ always guide us in our
service and Shepherd His flock from generation to generation. By the prayers and supplications
of our Lady and Queen St. Mary, St. Mark the Apostle, our beloved Pope and Patriarch Pope
Shenouda III, and our beloved Bishop Michael, may the grace of our Lord Jesus Christ be with
us all.
Contents
Making God Real in the Orthodox Christian Home - Part V - The Art of Successful
Christian Living . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 53
Making God Real in the Orthodox Christian Home - Part VI - The Art of Successful
Christian Living . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Making God Real in the Orthodox Christian Home - Part VII - Obedience of a Child 63
Making God Real in the Orthodox Christian Home - Part VIII - Obedience of a Child 66
i
Bless the Crown of the Year with Your Goodness O Lord . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 70
Wisdom . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 78
Discipleship . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 88
The Parable of the Wise and Foolish Virgins (Matthew 25:1-13) . . . . . . . . . . . . . 158
ii
Lukewarmness in Service - Part I . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 186
iii
The Missionary Journeys of the Apostle Paul . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 290
Nayrouz . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 353
iv
Palm Sunday . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 407
Pentecost . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 413
Fasting . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 440
The Story of Saint Nicholas - Synaxarium Reading for 10th of Kiahk . . . . . . . . . . 529
Anxiety . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 536
Dating . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 540
v
Addiction . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 548
Dancing . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 553
Cults . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 555
Comparative Theology of the Orthodox and Roman Catholic Faiths - Part I . . . . . . 611
Comparative Theology of the Orthodox and Roman Catholic Faiths - Part II . . . . . 615
vi
The Nature of Christ . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 652
vii
The Tongue . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 758
Angels . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 773
Prime . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 787
Vespers . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 797
Compline . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 803
Oh Beloved . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 818
viii
O Holy Trinity . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 827
I am Glad . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 840
ix
Hosanna in the Highest . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 871
x
I Put My Life into Your Hand . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 903
xi
The Baker Woman . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 934
xii
The Purpose of Servants Meetings
1. Unity - Spiritual unity is a major component of service. Jesus met with his disciples
often in the Upper Room. Also, we read in Acts 1:14, They continued with one accord
in prayer and supplication. This is a key verse for unity in service. Also, in Acts 2:1,
we read, When the day of Pentecost had fully come, they were with one accord in one
place. These two verses serve as model verses for unity in our service.
2. Spiritual Growth - An important aspect of our service life is to grow spiritually. Servants
meetings facilitate individual as well as group spiritual growth. When we grow spiritually
together, we serve with one mind and one spirit, and this is critical in service. St. Paul
sums this point up beautifully in Philippians 2:2-3, when he says, fulfill my joy by being
like-minded, having the same love, being of one accord, of one mind. Let nothing be done
through selfish ambition or conceit, but in lowliness of mind let each esteem others better
than himself.
4. Solving problems - Praying about Sunday School issues and problems together, and
discussing problems together has a much more positive result and impact than trying to
solve them on our own. Group prayer is very powerful in problem solving and in keeping
the devil away from interfering in our service life. St. Paul again emphasizes this point in
Philippians 4:6-7, when he says, be anxious for nothing, but in everything by prayer and
supplication, with thanksgiving, let your requests be made known to God; and the peace of
God, which surpasses all understanding, will guard your hearts and minds through Christ
Jesus.
1
Characteristics of a Servant - Part I
1. Love of God - The most important characteristic of a servant is that he/she knows and
loves God, and is continually striving to know God better.
That is not to say that a servant must attain a certain spiritual level before they can
serve. As St. Paul says, not that I have already attained, or am perfected; but I
press on, that I may lay hold of that which Jesus Christ has also laid hold of me.
(Philippians 3:1).
The servant must be at a higher spiritual level than those they are serving. O Zion
that brings good tidings, get thee up in the high mountain. (Isaiah 40:9). This
verse means that whoever teaches others about the heavenly matters, has to leave
the earthly matters and has to stand on a high mountain.
2. Action and not words - The servant has to be a role model in that they serve by action
and not words. Actions have the greatest impact on others. Thus we should minimize our
lecturing and maximize our actions. Jesus shows us this when he talks about the cost of
discipleship and says, Foxes have holes and birds have their nests, but the Son of Man
has nowhere to lay His head. (Matthew 8:20). Also, in the Epistle of St. James we read
Thus also faith in itself, if it does not have works, is dead. (James 2:17).
We are not saviors. We cannot develop a Messiah complex. Our goal is only to bring
others closer to Christ.
It is not our right to serve. It is a Holy privilege. No one is qualified to serve, and
none of us are worthy of it.
We are all sinners. We are not perfect and we never will be perfect. So we are no
better than our fellow servants nor are we better than those we serve.
2
God does not need our service. The Church service will do just fine without us. On
the contrary, we are in need of service in order to strengthen our spiritual life.
We must know our identity. We must know who we are, where we came from and
where we are going. We were made out of the dust of the ground: And the Lord
God formed man of the dust of the ground, and breathed into his nostrils the breath
of life; and the man became a living being. (Genesis 2:7).
Jesus, knowing that that Father had given all things into His hands, and that He
had come from God and was going back to God, rose from supper and laid aside His
garments, took a towel and girded Himself. After that He poured water into a basin
and began to wash the disciples feet, and to wipe them with the towel with which
He was girded. (John 13:3-5).
James and John - They asked Jesus that one sit on His left and the other on His right
in the Kingdom (Mark 10:37). Jesus answered, Yet is shall not be so among you;
but whoever desires to become great among you shall be your servant, and whoever
of you desires to be first shall be slave of all. (Mark 10:43-45).
Philippians 2:1-11 talks about unity through humility. Philippians 2:5-11 is sometimes
called the Incarnation Song of St. Paul.
4. Responsible and Reliable - The servant must be mature, responsible and reliable. They
must be serious about their service. The faithful servant that Jesus talks about in the
Gospels (Luke 12:35-48 as well as the Parable of the Talents in Matthew 25:14-30), is
the one who takes their service seriously. The servants struggle does not stop until he
presents every man perfect in Jesus Christ, as St. Paul says.
3
Characteristics of a Servant - Part II
5. Maturity - The servant must be emotionally and spiritual mature in their service. They
should be stable and balanced in their thoughts and actions. They must be able to with-
stand problems with spiritual strength. They should never panic, get shaken, or lose
control with anyone, including the Sunday School kids and their fellow servants. They
must be psychologically stable and balanced so that they can serve as an example to oth-
ers and not be a stumbling block. They must have good self-control, as this is a fruit
of the Holy Spirit (Galatians 5:22). A Sunday school servant must be able to exercise
authority in the right way, and with love, zeal, and liveliness. They must experience what
they speak. St. Paul speaks of spiritual maturity in Hebrews 5:12-14.
4
7. Self-Denial and Sacrifice - Self-denial and sacrifice involves giving our heart completely
to God. My son, give me your heart. (Proverbs 23:36). Our heart cannot be divided
between God and the things of this world. A servant must not love the world and the
things of the world in all its forms. St. James says, Whoever therefore wants to be a
friend of the world makes himself an enemy of God. (James 4:4). Jesus says, No one
can serve two masters; for either he will hate the one and love the other; or else he will be
loyal to the one and despise the other. You cannot serve God and mammon. (Matthew
6:24). We have to deny ourselves from the things of this world in order to serve, which
involves giving time to our service, being role models, exercising self-control, and being
peacemakers.
9. One-on-One Service - This is the most important and highest form of service. This
type of service typically occurs outside of the church. One-on-one service involves serving
to the needs of others, individually, by giving them words of encouragement, helping them
with their problems, giving advice, helping them in their schoolwork, etc... One-on-one
service should be done in secret, and we should not sound a trumpet, as Jesus says,
when we serve others one-on-one. Jesus gives some great examples of one-on-one service
in Matthew 25:35-36.
5
Characteristics of a Servant - Part III
We would like to discuss the proper conduct and characteristics of a servant. St. Pauls
First Epistle to the Corinthians is an excellent Epistle on characteristics of a servant that all
servants should read. Here we want to focus on several verses. These are
But beware lest somehow this liberty of yours become a stumbling block to those who are
weak (1 Corinthians 8:9).
Therefore, if food makes my brother stumble, I will never again eat meat, lest I make my
brother stumble (1 Corinthians 8:13).
All things are lawful for me, but not all things are helpful; all things are lawful for me,
but not all things edify (1 Corinthians 10:23).
1. In these verses, St. Paul talks about the notion that we might have the knowledge between
right and wrong (1 Corinthians 8:1), and know the difference between sin and no sin, we
can behave in such a way that we do not sin, and yet make our fellow man stumble.
2. This tells us that things that make other people stumble are not necessarily only sinful
things. We can be behaving in a non-sinful way and yet make our brother stumble, and
such behavior may even encourage our brother to sin (1 Corinthians 8:11).
3. St. Paul says, knowledge puffs up, but love edifies (1 Corinthians 8:1). This means that
we should focus on being an example to others by our love, not our knowledge. Knowledge
can make us conceited and over-confident, and as a result, we can become a stumbling
block to others due to our over-confidence in knowing what is sinful and what is not.
Here are some concrete examples that we should be aware of so that we do not make others
stumble:
Clothing - Servants are expected to wear proper clothing. It should not be too tight or
revealing in the front or the back. It should be modest in fashion. We should have proper
footwear, make-up, jewelry, and hair styles (1 Corinthians 11:3-15, 1 Timothy 2:9).
6
Alcohol - We should never drink alcohol at any time, nor should we have alcohol at
home and serve it to anyone. We must never go to nightclubs or bars. Alcohol is a great
stumbling block for the kids (1 Corinthians 10:7, 1 Timothy 3:8).
We should not make loud noises, cheers, laugh, or make inappropriate gestures during
the wedding ceremony. This is great disrespect to this Sacrament.
We must be properly dressed at all weddings. Servants are expected to wear proper
clothing. It should not be too tight or revealing in the front or the back. It should
be modest in fashion. We should have proper footwear, make-up, jewelry, and hair
styles (1 Corinthians 11:3-15, 1 Timothy 2:9).
We must behave appropriately at the wedding reception. Servants should not dance,
drink alcohol, make loud noises, play musical instruments, etc... They should be
seated quietly in their seats socializing with others in a calm and decent way with
good self-control, self-respect and dignity (1 Corinthians 10:7, Galatians 5:22, Titus
2:6-8).
Fasting - We must observe and respect all church fasts. We must fast and encourage others
to fast. It is inappropriate to make non-fasting food available to others or to encourage
others to eat non-fasting food during fasting periods (Matthew 4:2).
Come Early to Church - We must make every effort to come early to church on Sunday
and be at church no later than 9:30 am (Mark 1:35).
The Tongue - We must be soft-spoken, not yell or talk with a loud voice, even in fun.
Servants should learn to speak in a reasonable and loving tone at all times. We must not
use improper or harsh language, be argumentative with others, or be openly critical of
others and belittling others (1 Timothy 6:3-5). We should try and discuss problems with
others privately in a constructive manner. Jesus tells us in Matthew 12:36-37 that we must
answer for every idle word we have spoken. He says, I tell you on the day of judgment,
men will render account for every careless word they utter. For by your words you will be
justified, and by your words you will be condemned (Matthew 12:36-37). Also see James
3:1-18.
7
Television - We must not watch shows of immoral or sexual content, shows that have
violence and use inappropriate language (2 Timothy 2:22).
Bad Company - We should not maintain company and fellowship with those who are
unbelievers, those against God and Christianity, and those against the Church. St. Paul
says, Do not be unequally yoked together with unbelievers. For what do righteousness
and wickedness have in common? Or what fellowship can light have with darkness? (2
Corinthians 6:14).
Humility - Humility is the basis and rock of service. A humble servant is an obedient
servant who loves God and his fellow man, respects and honors the role and responsibility
of a servant without questions or quarrels (2 Timothy 2:24-26). St. Paul says, Do not be
wise in your own opinion (Romans 12:16).
8
Service and Ministry
1 Introduction
Service is a call to unite with God and serve as spirits that God has united to deliver the
Word to His people. Are they not all ministering spirits sent forth to minister for those
who will inherit salvation? (Hebrews 1:14).
Service does not depend on our ability or knowledge or talents, but it is the power of the
Holy Spirit, which will fill us and put wisdom and words in our mouths, which has the
ability to change hearts.
Service is being an ambassador for Christ in every place and in every situation. Now
then, we are ambassadors for Christ, as though God were pleading through us: we implore
you on Christs behalf, be reconciled to God (2 Corinthians 5:20).
Service is not teaching or acting at the church or Sunday school, but rather living by the
Bible - the word of God.
We must take heed (that is, pay attention) of ourselves before serving others. Take heed
to yourself and to the doctrine. Continue in them, for in doing this you will save both
yourself and those who hear you (1 Timothy 4:16).
How can we deliver the Word of God when we do not possess it?
How we can ask others to follow His commandments when we do not do the same?
Service is being with God and for God all the time. It is being with the real source of life,
peace, and joy, and having the feeling of His work and effect every day in our life. It is
a real the blessing and reward in our life. So He said to them, Assuredly, I say to you,
there is no one who has left house or parents or brothers or wife or children, for the sake
of the kingdom of God, who shall not receive many times more in this present time, and
in the age to come eternal life (Luke 18:29-30).
God will bless any effort or time that we give for our service even though it may be very
little.
9
If we serve, then service must be a top priority in our life. We must give with all of our
heart, without any limits. If we live according to the world, our priorities will be very
different. Love not the world, neither the things that are in the world. If any man loves
the world, the love of the Father is not in him (1 John 2:15).
Example: Saint Paul
Through the Holy Spirit, Saint Paul spread Christianity all over the world with faith
and became the greatest missionary who ever lived.
He traveled and reached everybody in order to deliver the Word without limits, home
or family.
He had in labors more abundant, in stripes above measure, in prisons more frequent,
in deaths often (2 Corinthians 11:23).
He was the one who From the Jews five times I received forty stripes minus one.
Three times I was beaten with rods; once I was stoned; three times I was shipwrecked;
a night and a day I have been in the deep (2 Corinthians 11:24-25).
2 Importance of Service
1. Christ Himself was a servant - For even the Son of Man did not come to be served,
but to serve, and to give His life a ransom for many (Mark 10:45).
2. The Disciples served - Therefore, brethren, seek out from among you seven men of
good reputation, full of the Holy Spirit and wisdom, whom we may appoint over this
business; but we will give ourselves continually to prayer and to the ministry of the word
(Acts 6:3-4).
3. We are all called to service - Now all things are of God, who has reconciled us to
Himself through Jesus Christ, and has given us the ministry of reconciliation, that is, that
God was in Christ reconciling the world to Himself, not imputing their trespasses to them,
and has committed to us the word of reconciliation. Now then, we are ambassadors for
Christ, as though God were pleading through us: we implore you on Christs behalf, be
reconciled to God (2 Corinthians 5:18-20).
10
4. God is pleased and remembers our service - For God is not unjust to forget your
work and labor of love which you have shown toward His name, in that you have ministered
to the saints, and do minister (Hebrews 6:10).
When Saint Augustine prayed for his people, he said, I ask you O Lord, on behalf
of your servants, my lords...
Service is labor to the last breath: Are they ministers of Christ?I speak as a fool
I am more: in labors more abundant, in stripes above measure, in prisons more
frequently, in deaths often. From the Jews five times I received forty stripes minus
one. Three times I was beaten with rods; once I was stoned; three times I was
shipwrecked; a night and a day I have been in the deep; in journeys often, in perils of
waters, in perils of robbers, in perils of my own countrymen, in perils of the Gentiles,
in perils in the city, in perils in the wilderness, in perils in the sea, in perils among
false brethren; in weariness and toil, in sleeplessness often, in hunger and thirst, in
fastings often, in cold and nakedness (2 Corinthians 11:23-27).
Service is feeling everything that those whom you serve feel: Besides the other things,
what comes upon me daily: my deep concern for all the churches. Who is weak, and
I am not weak? Who is made to stumble, and I do not burn with indignation? (2
Corinthians 11:28-30).
References
1. H.H. Pope Shenouda III The Spiritual Servant and Spiritual Service.
11
The Importance of Being a Good Role Model
Related to our ambassadorship is the great verse in 1 Corinthians 10:23, where St. Paul
says, All things are lawful for me, but all things are not helpful; all things are lawful for
me, but all things do not edify. This is a great verse for a servant to really meditate on.
We have to be conscious of our visible position as role models, and as a result, we have to
be careful in our actions, decisions, and way of life, even though they may not result in
sin. If we do not watch ourselves closely, we can become stumbling blocks to the spiritual
lives of others. St. Paul sums this up well in 1 Corinthians 8:9, (and also in 1 Corinthians
8:10-13) where he says, But beware lest somehow this liberty of yours become a stumbling
block to those who are weak.
At the same time, we cannot be modern day pharisees in our service and we must serve
everyone, regardless of their spiritual level. St. Paul talks about this in 1 Corinthians
9:19-23, where he says, for example, in verse 20, and to the Jews I became as a Jew, that
I might win Jews; to those who are under the law, as under the law, that I might win
those who are under the law.
2. Orthodox Heritage - St. Paul talks about preserving our heritage in 2 Thessalonians
2:15, where he says, Therefore, brethren, stand fast and hold the traditions which you
were taught, whether by word or our epistle. Preserving our Coptic Orthodox heritage is a
very important part of being a good role model. It is not enough just to be a nice person.
We have to uphold and maintain our Coptic Orthodox traditions, without change. St. Paul
says in Hebrews 13:8, Jesus Christ is the same yesterday, today, and forever. There are
two main components that make up the Coptic heritage: i) Spiritual, ii) Cultural. Our
spiritual heritage is focused upon worship. In particular, spiritual heritage concerns our
faith, the Divine Liturgy, church history, early Church Fathers (such as the Desert Fathers
of Egypt), Coptic hymns and songs, Coptic art, and relationships. Cultural heritage
12
includes things such as social gatherings, friendships, Egyptian food, etc... Preservation
of faith involves more than believing that Jesus is the Son of God. It also involves the
preservation of the Sacraments, preservation of the Divine Liturgy, the history and writings
of the early Church Fathers, preservation of the Lords feasts and fasts, and other feasts
and fasts of the Coptic Orthodox church. Thus, in summary, part of being a good role
model involves having deep Coptic Orthodox roots in our service.
3. Leadership - The church is always in need of good leadership through good role models.
A servant, by definition, has been put in a leadership role in the church, and thus we must
respect and honor this role by being a good role model. St. Paul talks about this in 1
Timothy 3, where he talks about qualifications of leaders in the church. In 1 Timothy
3:8, St. Paul says, likewise deacons must be reverent, not double-tongued, not given to
much wine, not greedy for money, holding the mystery of the faith with a pure conscience.
Likewise, their wives must be reverent, not slanderers, temperate, faithful in all things.
For those who have served well as deacons obtain for themselves a good standing and great
boldness in the faith which is in Jesus Christ.
4. The Watchful Eye - The Sunday School kids watch and imitate every single move of
the elders and Sunday School servants. Thus, we must be aware of this and make an
extra effort in being good role models. We want to be the kind of role models that can
say to others, imitate me. St. Paul mentions this in 1 Corinthians 4:16, where he says,
Therefore I urge you, imitate me. Also in St. Pauls Epistle to the Hebrews, he talks
about the consequences of not progressing in our spiritual life, and he says, in Hebrews
6:12 that you do not become sluggish, but imitate those who through faith and patience
inherit the promises. And in Hebrews 13:7 he says, Remember those who rule over you,
who have spoken the word of God to you, whose faith follow, considering the outcome of
their conduct.
13
The Life of Thanksgiving
Thanksgiving is a way of life. He who lives the life of thanksgiving is a noble person,
acknowledges goodness and never forgets the goodness and love of God at all times.
As servants, this must be our way of life. The servant who does not live a life of thanks-
giving reflects that life in whom he serves. In this case, we should not then ask the
question, why dont the Sunday School kids appreciate anything we do? Do we live a
life of thanksgiving and pass on this way of life to whom we serve?
Thanksgiving is a critical aspect of our spiritual life. Jesus tells us in the Bible to be
thankful. Recall when Jesus cleansed the ten lepers in Luke 17:15-18. Only one of the ten
returned to thank Jesus, and Jesus said, Were there not ten cleansed? But where are the
nine?
The life of thanksgiving is not thanking God for a specific event, an occasion, or a gift,
but rather it is a life of thanking God in all things and in all circumstances, always. As
Saint Paul said, Giving thanks always for all things to God the Father in the name of our
Lord Jesus Christ (Ephesians 5:20). Also, Saint Paul says, Rejoice always, pray without
ceasing, in everything give thanks (1 Thessalonians 5:16-18).
This is why the Prayer of Thanksgiving in the Coptic Church precedes all prayers. It is
the first prayer in each hour of the Agpeya. It is the first prayer in the Matins, Vespers,
and the Divine Liturgy. It is even the first prayer at funerals. We give thanks to God at
all times of the day. As David the Psalmist says, At midnight I will rise and give thanks
to You, because of Your righteous judgments (Psalm 119:62).
We thank God for all things because everything that God does is good, and this is why we
call God beneficent in the Thanksgiving Prayer. Saint Paul says, And we know that
all things work together for good to those who love God (Romans 8:28).
God does not do except good, and the person who believes this can truly understand Saint
Pauls words, And we know that all things work together for good to those who love God
(Romans 8:28).
14
An example of this is Joseph of the Old Testament. Josephs brothers were evil and sold
him as a slave. But God changed that evil into good and Joseph was made governor of the
land in Egypt. He was the second in the Kingdom and his stay in Egypt was to preserve
life. He told his brothers, you meant evil against me; but God meant it for good, ... to
save many people alive (Genesis 50:20).
Levels of Thanksgiving
The lowest level of thanksgiving is giving thanks to God for miracles, gifts, pleasures,
worldly success, riches, and easiness of life. Sometimes, however, we do not even thank
God for these things.
There is a higher level of thanksgiving. We should thank God for the little and simple
things in life as well, such as life itself, recovery from a cold, good health, our Christian
roots, etc... These things are apparent and visible but quite often taken for granted.
We should also give thanks for the hidden or unseen things in life. We should give thanks
for the potential calamities that God has prevented from happening, Gods care for us,
and His mercy and compassion for us.
The highest level of thanksgiving is to give thanks for our tribulations. We should thank
God in the midst of difficult times and troubles, and to be content and thankful in times of
tribulations. Saint Paul rejoiced in tribulations. We should be thankful that we are worthy
to endure tribulations. As we read in Acts 5:41, ... they departed from the presence of the
council, rejoicing that they were counted worthy to suffer shame for His Name. The saints
and the apostles considered all such suffering a blessing that they did not deserve. We
also read, For to you it has been granted on behalf of Christ, not only to believe in Him,
but also to suffer for His sake (Philippians 1:29). Also, at midnight Paul and Silas were
praying and and singing hymns to God in the Philippian jail (Acts 16:25). Saint Paul says
in Philippians 4:6-7, Have no anxiety about anything, but by prayer and supplication,
with thanksgiving, let your requests be made known to God. And the peace of God which
surpasses all understanding will guard your hearts and minds in Christ Jesus.
15
Virtues Related to Thanksgiving
Faith - The person who lives a life of thanksgiving has strong faith. It is impossible to
always give thanks to God without having strong faith. We have faith in God that He is
the doer of all things, and lover of mankind for all things.
Patience - Man must be patient to see the work of God in their life, and only then can
they live a life of thanksgiving. Jesus says, blessed are those who have not seen and yet
have believed (John 20:29).
Humility - The humble person deeply feels the goodness of God and never feels he deserves
what God has given him, and thus a life of thanksgiving is a natural response for the humble
person. On the contrary, the proud person feels he deserves more than what he has and
finds it very difficult to be thankful. An example of this is the parable of the Pharisee and
the tax collector (Luke 18:9-14).
Contentment - The thankful person is always content in their life, living life with joy in
their heart, never complaining or grumbling. Saint Paul said, Not that I speak in regard
to need, for I have learned in whatever state I am, to be content (Philippians 4:11).
Submission to Gods will - The life of thanksgiving requires and results in a full and
unconditional submission to Gods will in our life. A good example of this is Jonah in the
whale when he said, But I will sacrifice to You with the voice of thanksgiving (Jonah
3:9).
God-centeredness - Very often, there are those who have worldly or materially objec-
tives, and become sad if they are not reached, and cannot thank God amidst his adherence
to these objectives. But the spiritual person has only one objective: God. Therefore, it
does not worry him if the world prospered or elapsed. He takes no interest in its vanishing
objects, and does not feel sorry for missing its pleasures. In his contentment with God, he
feels great joy for which he gives thanks to God.
16
Reasons for Not Giving Thanks
We do not know what is good for us - We may think we know what is good for us,
but in reality it is not. God is the only person who knows what is good for us, and we
must trust Him and have faith in this fact. Saint Mary and Joseph did not complain when
the angel told them to take the Christ child to Egypt.
We do not remember the good things God has done for us - The unthankful
person always forgets the good things of the past, and does not meditate on the good
things that God has given them or how God brought them out of troubles or hard times
of the past. The unthankful person can only focus on their current condition in which
they are consumed. David the Psalmist says, Bless the Lord, O my soul, and all that is
within me, bless His holy name! Bless the Lord O my soul, and forget not all His benefits
(Psalm 103:1-2).
17
Arrogance and conceit - We do not give thanks because we give credit to ourselves and
our personal abilities for the things that God has done for us.
We remember our tribulations more than the good things we have - The un-
thankful person always focuses on the negative, and only sees their hardships, whether
in the present or in the past. Saint Paul tells us that we must not dwell on the negative
past, as he says about his own life, But one thing I do, forgetting those things which are
behind and reaching forward to those things which are ahead (Philippians 3:13). Also,
Jesus says, No one, having put his hand on the plow, and looking back, is fit for the
kingdom of God (Luke 9:62).
Lack of contentment - The person who is discontent is never satisfied with whatever
the Lord gives him, whereas the thankful person is content with whatever little he has.
Lack of contentment often arises from greed and selfishness. Recall Philippians 4:11.
Grumbling - A person who is always complaining and grumbling can never be thankful.
For some, grumbling can become a psychological disease. He always grumbles, protests and
complains, nothing appeals to him, nothing pleases him and consequently, of course, he is
unthankful. It is a spiritual, psychological and social disease which requires treatment.
Selfishness - The person who is self-centered and always thinking about how to satisfy
themselves with various worldly matters and pleasures cannot live a life of thanksgiving.
Desire for worldly possessions - Those whose goals are the things of this world: money,
pleasure, power, prestige, and material possessions, can never be satisfied or live a life of
thanksgiving. Once they lose any of their worldly possessions, even temporarily, they
become distraught and bitter.
Insisting on our will rather than Gods will - The person who does not submit his
life to God and insists on his will rather than Gods, will always be disappointed in life
and cannot be thankful.
We forget our sins - The unthankful person does not spend time thinking about his
sins. If we remember our sins and Gods great mercy, it becomes so much easier to be
thankful.
We fail to see the blessings in suffering - When we suffer or go through difficult times,
our typical response is to be bitter and unthankful, failing to see the glory and blessing in
18
suffering. Recall Philippinas 1:29 and Romans 8:17. In Romans, 8:17, we read, If indeed
we suffer with Him, that we may also be glorified together.
We take too many things for granted - We often do not give thanks because we take
far too many things for granted like our health, food, clothing, money, work, etc... We feel
that these are normal things to have in life in which there is no need to give thanks.
Thank God for He created us out of the dust of the ground - David the Psalmist
says, Behold children are a heritage from the Lord (Psalm 127:3).
Thank God for the nature around us - God created man on the sixth day after He
created the nature to surround and comfort man.
Thank God for the talents He gives us - Wisdom and knowledge were placed before
healing and miracles (1 Corinthians 12:8-10).
Thank God for being born in the Christian faith - Many people search and toil for
Christianity but cannot find it.
Thank God for life - We thank God for life in the Thanksgiving Prayer when we say
He brought us to this hour. We should thank God for the time He gives us on earth to
repent and to lay up our treasure in heaven (Matthew 6:20)
Thank God for the religious environment we were brought up in - The Coptic
Church is based on the early Church and the teachings are those of the apostles. We
should thank God that we are raised in the straight and right faith.
Thank God because He did not deal with us according to our sins - This is what
David the Prophet said in Psalm 103 which begins, Bless the Lord, O my soul; and all
that is within me bless His holy name! Bless the Lord, O my soul, and forget not all His
benefits. The Lord is merciful and gracious, slow to anger, and abounding in mercy... He
has not dealt with us according to our sins nor punished us according to our iniquities.
For as the heavens are high above the earth, so great is His mercy towards those who fear
Him; as far as the east is from the west. So far has he removed our transgressions from
us; as the father pities his children, so the Lord pities those who fear him. For he knows
19
our frame; He remembers that we are dust. (Psalm 103:8-14). This is why we say in the
liturgy according to your mercy O Lord, and not according to our sins. Gods mercy
exceeds human comprehension, and we must thank Him for His mercy for us.
Thank God for His Loving kindness and care - How many times has God rescued
us in times of trouble? How many times has He forgiven us for our sins? How many times
has He given us grace in the eyes of others?
Thank God for good health - We take our good health for granted and never take time
to thank God for it.
Thank God for sickness - Sickness in itself is not bad. Poor Lazarus was full of sores
and dogs were licking his sores. But, all this was not bad in itself and did not separate him
from God, but on the contrary it was for his own good. When he was taken to Abrahams
bosom, it was said that, in his lifetime he received evil things; but now he is comforted
(Luke 16:25). St Basil the great said, you do not know what is good for you: health or
sickness. The Apostle St. Paul was given a thorn in the flesh for spiritual benefit, Lest
he should be exalted above measure by the abundance of the revelations. He pleaded
with the Lord three times that it might depart from him (2 Corinthians 12:8). But God
answered his prayer by saying to him, My grace is sufficient for you. Naturally, in our
human weakness, we seek good health but we do not know what is beneficial to us. Perhaps
sickness makes us weary, but it helps us enter the kingdom of Heaven.
Thank God because He has protected, assisted, preserved, accepted us, had
compassion on us, supported us and brought us till this hour - This is what
the church teaches us in the Prayer of Thanksgiving, which we repeat many times in the
Prayers of the Hours (Agpeya) every day and each contemplation.
Thank God for the good you see and the good you cannot see - We thank him for
the good we observe by sight, and the good we see by faith. God who calls us to do good
in secret, and He sees what we do in secret, will reward us openly (Matthew 6:4-6). He
also does many good things in secret for us in which we must thank Him openly. Many of
the good things we now enjoy have been prepared for us by God many, many, years ago,
and we did not know at the time that He was planning such things.
Thank God for the grace working in us - Grace is among the principal matters which
we must put at the top of our list of thanksgiving. The Apostle Saint Paul says, But by
20
the grace of God I am what I am, and His grace towards me was not in vain, but I labored
more abundantly than they all, yet not I but the grace of God which was with me! (1
Corinthians 15:10). We then thank Him for the communion of the Holy Spirit in our lives,
which is a part of the blessing given to us. We thank Him because He made us temples of
His Holy Spirit, as the Apostle said, Do you know that you are the temple of God and
that the Spirit of God dwells in you (1 Corinthians 3:16).
Thank God for the great redemption He offered to us - There is something more
important than all the previous things, for which we ought to give thanks all day and
night. It is the great redemption offered to us on the cross, and without it, we all would
have perished. No one could have been saved from the sentence of death without the
incarnation of the Son, His crucifixion, His death, and His Resurrection.
Thank God for giving us the ability to know Him - In the prayers of the Liturgy of
Saint Gregory, the priest says, You gave me your knowledge and You sent me the law for
support. Do we thank Him for the good news in the Gospel, the Holy Bible, His work,
and His holy attributes?
Thank God for His promises to us - We thank Him for the eternal comfort He is
preparing for us in the heavenly Jerusalem. The tabernacle of God with men, and He
will dwell with them, and they shall be His people (Revelation 21:3). He promised us
saying, ... I will come again and receive you to myself, that where I am, there you may
be also (John 14:3). He also promised us with what Eye has not seen, nor ear heard,
nor have entered into the heart of man the things which God has prepared for those who
love Him (1 Corinthians 2:9).
Thank God because He called us His children and His friends - St John the
beloved said, Behold what manner of love the Father has bestowed on us, that we should
be called children of God (1 John 3:1). He taught us to pray and say, Our Father in
heaven... (Matthew 6:9). Jesus also said, No longer do I call you servants... but I have
called you friends (John 15:15). He called us His own, and it was said, having loved His
own who were in the world, He loved them to the end (John 13:1).
21
The Life of Humility
Humility is the foundation and basis of the Christian life. We can never progress spiritually
without first being humble.
Humility is the key virtue and foundation in any service. No service can be blessed or
successful without humility. Service always fails due to lack of humility. We often see
Sunday School service, large church projects, and other church services fail due to lack of
humility.
Humility is the theme of the Nativity fast. We fast during this period so that we can
humble and prepare our hearts to receive Christ in our life. All of the events surrounding
the Nativity had elements of humility.
The Virgin Mary, a poor humble servant, was chosen to be the Mother of God.
Saint Mary humbly accepts the annunciation from Archangel Gabriel (Gospel reading
for 2nd week of Kiahk).
Saint Mary humbly visits her cousin Elizabeth who was pregnant with John the
Baptist (Gospel reading for 3rd week of Kiahk).
Elizabeth humbly exalts Saint Mary and calls her the Mother of God. Elizabeth says,
Blessed are you among women, and blessed is the fruit of your womb! But why is
this granted to me, that the mother of my Lord should come to me? (Luke 1:42-43).
Mary rode on a donkey to Bethlehem when she was 9 months pregnant to give birth
to Jesus.
Jesus was born in a manger (feeding trough for animals), in a barn with farm animals.
Saint Mary, Joseph, and the baby Jesus travel to Egypt on a donkey to avoid Herod.
Humility is the only virtue where Jesus said, Learn from Me for I am gentle and lowly
in heart (Matthew 11:29). Jesus never said Learn from Me about anything else except
for the virtue of humility.
A humble person feels that he owns nothing, but rather God owns everything, and it is
God who has given him everything. Saint Paul said, And you are Christs and Christ is
22
Gods (1 Corinthians 3:23). This is why a humble person finds it easy to give to others
and to give tithes, because he feels that what he is giving is not his, but Gods.
A humble person feels that he can do nothing without God, and all his talents and accom-
plishments are not his, but Gods. The humble person feels that God is always in control of
everything. This way of life is what prevents a person from becoming arrogant and feeling
self-sufficient, and feeling that they are in control of their life and their surroundings.
The humble person is never selfish and never thinking about himself or his needs, but
rather the needs of others. Saint Paul says, Let nothing be done through selfish ambition
or conceit, but in lowliness of mind let each esteem others better than himself. Let each
of you look out not only for his own interests, but also the interest of others (Philippians
2:3-4). Thus, the humble person always puts himself last in everything.
The humble person never seeks praise or recognition. Jesus says, Therefore, when you
do a charitable deed, do not sound a trumpet before you as the hypocrites do in the
synagogues and in the streets, that they may have glory from men (Matthew 6:2). We
often hear people say, I am nothing, or I am worthless. They do not say these things
out of humility but rather to get praise. This type of person is not humble but rather
self-centered.
We often see servants avoiding responsibility and using humility as the excuse, when lazi-
ness and indifference is the real reason for avoiding responsibility. The humble person
does not show off their talents nor do they flaunt them, but when asked to serve with their
talents, they immediately respond and give account of their work. A humble person does
not hide his talents when his talents are sought for service to God. Recall the parable of
the talents (Matthew 25:14-30).
The humble servants always says, Here I am when called to serve. The humble servant
never questions or examines the service that they are called to do. Recall what Samuel
said when God called him to serve, that the Lord called Samuel. And he answered, Here
I am (1 Samuel 3:4).
The humble person is never self-confident, but rather confident in Christ. Self-confidence
is a very worldly concept. The Bible never tells us to be self-confident in anything, but
rather confident in Christ. Saint Paul says, In Him and through faith in Him we may
approach God with freedom and confidence (Ephesians 4:2).
23
The humble person never speaks too much and knows when to be silent and when to speak.
Silence is a great fruit of humility. God gives the humble person wisdom to know when to
speak and when to stay silent. People who speak too much are destined to make mistakes
with their speech and often make regrettable and hurtful comments. Jesus knew when to
respond to Pilate and when to stay silent. We read, Now Jesus stood before the governor.
And the governor asked Him, saying, Are You the King of the Jews? Jesus said to him,
It is as you say. And while He was being accused by the chief priests and elders, He
answered nothing. Then Pilate said to Him, Do You not hear how many things they
testify against You? But He answered him not one word, so that the governor marveled
greatly (Matthew 27:11-14).
The humble person is always obedient, but the obedient person is not necessarily humble.
The humble person is always thankful and full of joy. The humble person is not a com-
plainer, grumbler, or gossiper.
The humble person has a pure heart and always seeks the best for others.
The humble person is always a peacemaker and always strives for unity. This is a very
important aspect in the humble person with respect to service. Jesus said in the beatitudes,
blessed are the peacemakers, for they shall be called sons of God (Matthew 5:9). The
humble servant always strives to be in one accord with all other servants in their service.
We read in Acts about the disciples that That these all continued with one accord in
prayer and supplication (Acts 1:14), and on the day of Pentecost, we read When the
Day of Pentecost had fully come, they were all with one accord in one place (Acts 2:1),
and So continuing daily with one accord in the temple, and breaking bread from house to
house, they ate their food with gladness and simplicity of heart (Acts 2:46). Saint Paul
says fulfill my joy by being like-minded, having the same love, being of one accord, of one
mind (Philippians 2:2).
Chapter 2 of Philippians is a great chapter on humility, and Philippians 2:5-11 are great
verses on the humility of the incarnation of Christ. Philippians 2:5-11 was a song in the
Early Church and thats why this passage is often called the Incarnation Song of the
Apostle Paul. Saint Paul says, Let this mind be in you which was also in Christ Jesus,
24
who, being in the form of God, did not consider it robbery to be equal with God, but made
Himself of no reputation, taking the form of a bondservant, and coming in the likeness of
men. And being found in appearance as a man, He humbled Himself and became obedient
to the point of death, even the death of the cross. Therefore God also has highly exalted
Him and given Him the name which is above every name, that at the name of Jesus every
knee should bow, of those in heaven, and of those on earth, and of those under the earth,
and that every tongue should confess that Jesus Christ is Lord, to the glory of God the
Father (Philippians 2:5-11).
Out of humility, all other Christian virtues are borne, including love, patience, self-control,
perseverance, simplicity of heart, slow to anger, purity, and respect for others. The fruit
of the Spirit in Galatians 5:22 totally emanates from the virtue of humility. The fruit of
the Spirit is love, joy, peace, longsuffering, kindness, goodness, faithfulness, gentleness,
self-control.
25
The Life of Obedience
Obedience is the fourth step among Climacuss thirty steps in his book The Ladder of Di-
vine Ascent. Obedience is what he calls one of the fundamental virtues. Thus, obedience
is a very basic virtue in our spiritual life.
Obedience to God involves the complete and unconditional surrender and submission to
Gods will in everything in our life. Submission to Gods will is the most critical part of
service.
All of the great events that happened to people in the Bible were the direct result of
obedience to God.
Abrahams obedience to God in the offering of Isaac led to Abraham as being the
father of the patriarchs, and God greatly blessed Abraham and said to him, blessing
I will bless you, and multiplying I will multiply your descendants as the stars of the
heaven and as the sand which is on the seashore (Genesis 22:17).
Jonahs eventual obedience to God led to the repentance of the Ninevites.
Daniels obedience to God while in captivity in Babylon made him ruler of the
province of Babylon and he glorified God through the proclamation of king Darius.
Jobs obedience to God during his calamity and suffering.
Samuel was obedient when God called him to be a prophet to His people. When the
Lord called Samuel, Samuel answered Here I am (1 Samuel 3:4).
Saint Marys obedience to the annunciation by Archangel Gabriel.
Saint Paul calls on Philemon to be obedient and to take Onesimus back. Having
confidence in your obedience, I write to you, knowing that you will even do more
than what I say. (Philemon 21).
Jesuss obedience to God the Father led to our salvation. Jesus was obedient to the
point of death. Saint Paul says in Philippians 2:8, And being found in appearance
as a man, He humbled Himself and became obedient to the point of death, even the
death of the cross.
26
Disobedience to God results in storms, tribulations, and sin in our life.
Adam and Eve disobeyed God when they ate from the tree of knowledge of good and
evil, and this led to their dismissal from the Garden of Eden. As a result of their
disobedience, God promised them hardships in their life on earth.
The disobedience of Cain led to the murder of Abel. The Lord warned Cain of his
disobedience when He told him, And if you do not do well, sin lies at the door
(Genesis 4:7).
The disobedience of Abraham led to Hagar conceiving Ishmael. Nothing good came
from the descendants of Ishmael.
The initial disobedience of Jonah led to a storm at sea, which is symbolic of storms
in our life, and it also led Jonah down to the pit as he describes in Jonah Chapter
2.
The disobedience of Saul led God to reject Saul and take away His Spirit from him
and made Saul lose his kingdom. Saul did not obey God when God told him to
completely destroy the Amalekites (1 Samuel 15).
The disobedience of David led David to act like a crazy man in front of Achish the king
of Gath. As we read, So he changed his behavior before them, pretended madness
in their hands, scratched on the doors of the gate, and let his saliva fall down on his
beard (1 Samuel 21:13).
unconditional obedience - this is a spiritual obedience that is done out of love and
humility towards all. It is an obedience that is done out of spiritual desire with no
rewards or losses at stake.
Obedience is a way of life for the servant. It is a natural response for someone who loves
God. Saint John Climacus says, Obedience is a total renunciation of our own life, and it
shows up clearly in the way we act.
27
The word servant itself implies that we are to be obedient, since a servant is always
obedient to his master. We are not teachers, but servants. The name servant stresses the
importance of the life of obedience.
The spiritual person strives to live the life of obedience and finds joy, comfort, and spiritual
growth in it.
The person who is humble is also obedient, for genuine humility must lead to obedience.
However, when we lack humility, we also lack obedience.
The obedient person, however, is not necessarily humble, since the person may be obedient
out of pressure and fear of losing worldly possessions, positions, or power, or it may be
obedience out of desire for worldly gain.
28
Thus, we see that the Christian life of obedience has four stages:
obedience to divine authority (obedience to God, the Bible, and the Church)
Thus, the life of obedience touches every part of our daily life, and the truly obedient
person enjoys this type of life. St. John (1 John 5:1-5) talks about the importance of
obedience by faith, and links obedience to keeping the commandments.
Like the virtue of humility, the obedient person always puts others before himself. Saint
Paul says, Let nothing be done through selfish ambition or conceit, but in lowliness of
mind let each esteem others better than himself. Let each of you look out not only for his
own interests, but also the interest of others (Philippians 2:3-4).
The obedient person is a peacemaker, and Jesus calls peacemakers sons of God (Matthew
5:9).
Pride, conceit, and arrogance are the main causes of disobedience. We annihilate pride,
conceit, and arrogance in our life by striving for the life of obedience. Obedience is a great
spiritual exercise and remedy for those who struggle with pride, conceit, and arrogance.
Recall Lucifer in Isaiah, Chapter 14. It was pride that led to his disobedience to God.
Like humility, obedience demands silence from the person who is to obey. The virtues
humility and obedience are very closely intertwined.
The obedient person always knows and respects the limits of his authority. He never goes
beyond the limits of his authority in his dealings with people and in making decisions and
judgments.
Worldly (conditional) obedience is the obedience to superiors for the purposes of worldly
gain or to avoid worldly loss. This often leads to obedience with resentment and dissatis-
faction, whereas spiritual (unconditional) obedience is a way of life towards all people that
leads to spiritual gain.
29
The world views obedience as a sign of weakness whereas God views obedience as a sign
of strength.
The world views obedience as something that is outdated and finished, whereas God views
obedience as the beginning of a relationship with Him.
30
The Faithful Servant - Part I
Being faithful in service is the most critical aspect of our service. What does it mean to
be faithful in service? We shall define it by the following four aspects of our service life:
tradition, holy zeal, honesty, and unity.
These four aspects are discussed in detail in the Pastoral Epistles. These are St. Pauls
Epistles to Timothy (1 and 2 Timothy) and Titus.
The Pastoral Epistles (1 and 2 Timothy, and Titus) are all about service and are a must
read for all servants.
1. Tradition
The faithful servant serves according to the teachings of the Church and the Church
Fathers. The servant serves with a deep conviction about the teachings of the Coptic
Orthodox Church, and this conviction is lived out and communicated in humility and
obedience.
The servant should be hungry in learning and spreading Orthodoxy, and always
searching and researching the sayings and teachings of the Coptic Orthodox Church
through reading books by the Coptic Fathers, reading books from the early Church
Fathers, listening to Church sermons, reading liturgical books such as the Agpeya or
the Divine Liturgy books, etc....
St. Paul says in 2 Timothy 1:5, When I call to remembrance the genuine faith that
is in you, which dwelt first in your grandmother Lois and your mother Eunice, and I
am persuaded is in you also.
St. Paul says to Timothy in 2 Timothy 3:10-15, But you have carefully followed my
doctrine, manner of life, purpose, faith, longsuffering, love perseverance ... But you
must continue in the things which you have learned and been assured of, knowing
from whom you have learned them. And that from childhood you have known the
Holy Scriptures, which are able to make you wise for salvation through faith which
is in Christ Jesus.
31
In 1 Timothy 6:20-21, St. Paul tells Timothy, O Timothy! Guard what was com-
mitted to your trust, avoiding the profane and idle babblings and contradictions of
what is falsely called knowledge - by professing it some have strayed concerning the
faith.
In 2 Thessalonians 2:15, we read, Therefore, brethren, stand fast and hold the
traditions which you were taught, whether by word or our epistle.
2. Holy Zeal
We must serve with a holy zeal and a real fire. In order to serve with zeal, we must
have fire in our spiritual life.
We must never feel burdened by service, nor should we ever feel that service is taking
too much of our time. We must learn to love to serve God. Thus, we must love to
serve because we love God.
A zealous person is never lukewarm or indifferent in their service. Lukewarmness
is a very dangerous condition in service. In the Book of Revelation, Jesus warns
us about being lukewarm in our service. In Revelation 3:14-22, we read about the
Laodicean Church, which was a lukewarm church. Jesus gives the Laodicean Church
the harshest judgment and tells them, I know your works, that you are neither cold
nor hot. I wish you were cold or hot. So then, because you are lukewarm, and neither
cold nor hot, I will vomit you out of my Mouth (Revelation 3:15-16).
Jesus also says to the Laodiceans, Therefore be zealous and repent (Revelation
3:19).
Zeal in service is given to us by the Holy Spirit as a result of our close relationship
with Jesus Christ. The fire that is within us is the fire of the Holy Spirit being stirred
up within.
We read in 2 Timothy 1:6-7, Therefore I remind you to stir up the gift of God which
is in you through the laying on of my hands. For God has not given us a spirit of
fear, but of power and of love, and of a sound mind.
St. Paul also tells Timothy, Preach the word! Be ready in season and out of season.
Convince, rebuke, exhort, with all longsuffering and teaching (2 Timothy 4:2).
But you be watchful in all things, endure afflictions do the work of an evangelist,
fulfill your ministry (2 Timothy 4:5).
32
In Titus 2:14, we read, Who gave Himself for us, that He might redeem us from
every lawless deed and purify for Himself His own special people, zealous for good
works.
In Galatians 4:18, we read, But it is good to be zealous in good things always, and
not only when I am present with you.
For I know your willingness, about which I boast of you to the Macedonians, that
Achaia was ready a year ago; and your zeal has stirred up the majority (2 Corinthians
9:2).
We read about the zeal of Jesus when he overturned the tables in the temple. And
He said to those who sold doves, Take these things away! Do not make My Fathers
house a house of merchandise! Then His disciples remembered that it was written,
Zeal for Your house has eaten Me up (John 2:17 and Psalm 69:9).
Saint Paul says, The Lord grant mercy to the house of Onesiphorus, for he often
refreshed me, and was not ashamed of my chain; but when he arrived in Rome, he
sought me out very zealously and found me (2 Timothy 1:16-17).
Saint John the Baptist was very zealous in his ministry.
Simon Peter was a very zealous disciple.
Simon the zealot was also one of the twelve disciples whose name revealed his zeal in
service.
3. Honesty
The faithful servant must be honest in their service, and one who is always telling
and seeking the truth.
The honest servant is honest with their time, their words, their actions, their tithes,
and in general, their way of life. They must never twist words or meanings to their
own advantage or for their own purpose, or to fit their own meaning. They must seek
the truth in reading the Bible and seek truth in all things.
Saint Paul tells Timothy, But shun profane and idle babblings, for they will increase
to more ungodliness. And their message will spread like cancer. Hymenaeus and
Philetus are of this sort, who have strayed concerning the truth, saying that the
resurrection is already past; and they overthrow the faith of some (2 Timothy 2:16-
18).
33
The honest servant uses the gifts and talents that God has given him to serve God.
Recall the parable of the talents (Matthew 25:15-30). The two servants who were
given 5 and 2 talents were honest and faithful in their service, and the servant who
was given one talent was not.
The honest servant is never lazy in serving God and always utilizes their talents to the
fullest in serving God. The honest servant always does his absolute best in serving
God and strives for perfection in their service. Such effort in service is also a sign of
spiritual zeal. Jesus says, Be perfect as your Father in heaven is perfect (Matthew
5:48).
The honest servant is not hypocritical in their service. Saint Paul warns of this in
2 Timothy 3:1-5, But know this, that in the last days perilous times will come.
For men will be lovers of themselves, lovers of money, boasters, proud, blasphemers,
disobedient to parents, unthankful, unholy, unloving, unforgiving, slanderers, without
self-control, brutal, despisers of good, traitors, headstrong, haughty, lovers of pleasure
rather than lovers of God, having a form of godliness but denying its power
Now as Jannes and Jambres resisted Moses, so do these also resist the truth: men
of corrupt minds, disapproved concerning the faith (2 Timothy 3:8).
4. Unity
The faithful servant is one who always strives for unity and harmony in their service,
and in their relationships with others.
Spiritual unity is a major component of service. Jesus met with his disciples often
in the Upper Room. Also, we read in Acts 1:14, They continued with one accord in
prayer and supplication. This is a key verse for unity in service.
Also, in Acts 2:1, we read, When the day of Pentecost had fully come, they were
with one accord in one place. These two verses serve as model verses for unity in
our service.
The desire for unity comes when we are filled with the Holy Spirit, as were the
disciples before and after Pentecost. Thus, we become united in our service when our
spiritual life is alive and inflamed by the Holy Spirit.
Saint Paul also says fulfill my joy in being like-minded, having the same love, being
of one accord, of one mind. Let nothing be done through selfish ambition or conceit,
34
but in lowliness of mind let each esteem others better than himself (Philippians
2:2-3). Saint Paul tells us here that unity in service requires humility and obedience.
The servant who strives for unity is also a peacemaker. Peacemakers are mentioned
in the beatitudes, where Jesus says, blessed are the peacemakers, for they shall be
called sons of God (Matthew 5:9).
Thus, the servant who stirs up divisions, quarrels, arguments, or babbles things with-
out knowing their meaning (idle babblings), is one who is not seeking unity in
service.
Indeed, Saint Paul says, But avoid foolish and ignorant disputes, knowing that they
generate strife. And a servant of the Lord must not quarrel but be gentle to all, able
to teach, patient, in humility correcting those who are in opposition, if God perhaps
will grant them repentance, so that they may know the truth, and that they may
come to their senses and escape the snare of the devil, having been taken captive by
him to do his will (2 Timothy 2:23-26).
35
Spiritual Warfare in the Life of a Servant
Satan fights everyone and those are are serving and growing in grace, he fights them all
the more. St. Peter says, ... your adversary the devil walks about like a roaring lion,
seeking whom he may devour (1 Peter 5:8). He always always wandering around to and
fro to catch his prey.
It is especially critical for a servant to fight off the devil to be fruitful in their service. The
devil tries to wear the servant down using his many diabolic weapons, for his main goal is
for us to not serve and become failures at service.
When a person gets caught up in the things of this world, their worldly cares increase
and their spiritual desires decrease. Things of the world include careers, vacations,
making money, buying and selling, cleaning, fixing, cooking, busy work, and material
possessions.
The devil increases our worldly desires by always giving us convincing excuses to
prefer the things of the things of this world over the will of God, that is service. The
devil then convinces us that we are far too busy to serve.
Once a person starts leaning toward the things of this world, they lost their desire,
energy, and zeal for service.
Excuses from the devil often come in the form of people. People often get in the way
of our service: our spouse, our kids, our friends, or our relatives.
Jesus says But take heed to yourselves, lest your hearts be weighed down with
carousing, drunkenness, and cares of this life, and that Day come on you unexpect-
edly (Luke 21:34).
36
2. Pleasures
Sometimes when we face hardships in life, at home, at work, or at church, the devil
penetrates our minds and tries to use these problems as stumbling blocks in our
service.
Even the smallest of problems that devil tries to magnify to get in the way of our
service.
Sickness often is a stumbling block to service.
Moses said to the Israelites, and evil will befall you in the latter days, because you
will do evil in the sight of the Lord, to provoke Him to anger through the work of
your hands (Deuteronomy 31:29).
4. Lusts
Sometimes issues such as the desire for marriage or sexual desires prevent a person
from service. Jesus said, But seek first the kingdom of God and His righteousness
and all these things shall be added to you (Matthew 6:33).
37
Impure thoughts and an impure way of life is a major barrier to service. Sexually
provocative music, videos, television, language or clothing.
5. Riches
Solutions
Encouragement. Get Mark and bring him with you, for he is useful to me for ministry
(2 Timothy 4:11).
Spiritual unity and being of one accord (Acts 1:14, Acts 2:1)
Victory in Christ
The devil tempted Christ and Christ defeated him, and thus I also can defeat the
devil through Christ.
Having entered such diabolic wars and knowing that my fellow man also suffers, I can
love and forgive him/her.
38
Diabolic wars are for my own good. I am allowed to fight the devil that I may be
humbled (Job 5:17, Hebrews 12:11).
39
Making God Real in the Orthodox Christian Home - Part I
A strong Christian home is the foundation of effective, genuine, and spiritual service.
We shall talk about three aspects of the Orthodox Christian Home: our personal spiritual
life, our relationship with our spouse, and our relationship with our children.
Our true relationship with Jesus shows in the way we act at home. It is easy to show that
we love Jesus in church, school, work, or in the world in general, but the hardest of all is
to show or have love for Jesus at home.
We praise Him, we pray to Him, we worship Him, we build churches for Him, but we often
fail to bring Him home. We fail to bring home His love, His forgiveness, His patience, and
His understanding.
We can never be effective servants if we do not have a deep and personal relationship with
Jesus at home. We must have our own church at home to be holy and spiritual servants.
How do we bring Jesus into our home in our personal spiritual life?
1. Prayer - We must have a regular prayer life at home, both a personal prayer life,
and a prayer life with our family. Jesus says, Watch and pray, lest you enter into
temptation. The spirit indeed is willing, but the flesh is weak (Mark 14:38). We
should pray before we go to sleep, pray in the car on the way to work or school, and
try and pray in the morning after we wake up.
2. Reading the Bible - We must read the Bible on a regular basis at home, both alone
and with our family. It need not be long, 10-20 minutes, with time for meditation and
understanding. We should try and read passages in the Bible that address particular
situations in our life, such as tribulation, discontent, lack of faith, anger, etc.... St.
Paul tells Timothy, But you must continue in the things which you have learned and
been assured of, knowing from whom you have learned them, and that from childhood
you have known the Holy Scriptures, which are able to make you wise for salvation
through faith which is in Jesus Christ (2 Timothy 3:14-15).
40
3. Ministering to others at home - Serving the Lord through our home brings us
closer to Jesus. Making a phone call to one in need, inviting and ministering to the
lonely and those in distress, and making our home open to all. Then He said to the
disciple, Behold your mother! And from that hour that disciple took her to his own
home (John 19:27). St. Paul says, Walk in wisdom toward those who are outside,
redeeming the time (Colossians 4:5).
4. Purity of Heart and Purity of Life - Part of the Christian home is to live a pure
life, free from sinful and worldly pleasures, lusts, gossip, bad company, evil words
and thoughts, pride, and self-righteousness. We must be careful what TV shows we
watch, what music we listen to, what words we say, what we say on the phone, and
what kinds of conversations we have. Jesus says, Blessed are the pure in heart for
they shall see God (Matthew 5:8).
5. Do not be lazy - Laziness leads to a wandering ming which often leads to sin, and
at the very least, a waste of time. We should try and make good use of our time at
home by reading, praying, working, ministering, and relaxing, but we should avoid
wasting time. St. Paul says, See then that you walk circumspectly, not as fools but
as wise, redeeming the time, because the days are evil (Ephesians 5:15).
6. Strive for Orthodoxy - The Orthodox servant always wants to know more about
Orthodoxy. At home, we should read Orthodox books, meditate on the liturgy, listen
to tapes of sermons, songs, or hymns. St. Paul says Therefore, brethren, stand
fast and hold the traditions which you were taught, whether by word or our epistle
(2 Thessalonians 2:15). St. Paul tells Timothy, When I call to remembrance the
genuine faith that is in you, which dwelt first in your grandmother Lois and your
mother Eunice, and I am persuaded is in you also (1 Timothy 1:5).
7. Make the Home Look Holy - Having Icons and pictures of Jesus, St. Mary, and
other saints hung on the walls at home creates a spiritual atmosphere and encourages
holiness at home. We receive blessings from these Icons.
The servant who does not have a strong spiritual life at home will
When they come to church, they will not enjoy praying or serving.
41
When they serve in Sunday School, they will often feel insecure and uncomfortable
because they are living a life away from God and a life of hypocrisy.
They feel naked and exposed like Adam and Eve did after their sin.
They will not serve with spiritual power and authority that is given by the Holy
Spirit. They have a form of godliness but deny its power (2 Timothy 3:5).
They will be uneffective in their service, unable to be a good role model and unable
to draw the kids to Christ.
they will serve with a convincing and effective spiritual power from the Holy Spirit.
Examples include St. Peter in his sermon on the day of Pentecost, and the disciples
in the Book of Acts after Pentecost.
Their zeal and love of Christ will shine in their service and they will have a spiritual
impact on whom they serve as well as others. They will draw people to Christ
and they will be a reflection of Christ. As St. Paul says, For it is the God who
commanded light to shine out of darkness, who has shone in our hearts to give the
light of the knowledge of the glory of God in the face of Jesus Christ (2 Corinthians
4:6).
42
Making God Real in the Orthodox Christian Home - Part II
We want to talk about the second aspect of the Orthodox Christian Home: our relationship
with our spouse.
The ultimate test of our relationship with God is most closely tied with our relationship
with our spouse: how a husband treats his wife and how a wife treats here husband is a
great sign of their relationship with God.
A strong Christian relationship with our spouse has the most influence on our spiritual
life and has the biggest impact on our success, happiness in life, and our service.
Many things go wrong in life when our relationship with our spouse is not in the right place,
and not on solid spiritual ground: we lose our zeal and enthusiasm for life, our service life
gets greatly affected, we lose our ambitions, our work gets affected, our relationships get
affected, we lose self-esteem, we can alienate ourselves, and we lose security.
A strong Christian marriage with a strong spiritual foundation often leads to a very suc-
cessful service that is guided and guarded by the Holy Spirit, a service that bears fruits,
a service that represents an ambassadorship to Jesus Christ.
Love One another - Love, of course, is the key ingredient that keeps a marriage
spiritually strong. The love that we have for our spouse is a direct reflection of the
love we have for God. A person who deeply loves God will deeply love their spouse.
St. Paul says, Husbands, love your wives, just as Christ loved the church and gave
himself for her (Ephesians 5:25). So husbands ought to love their wives as their
own bodies; he who loves his wife, loves himself (Ephesians 5:28).
Treat Each Other as King and Queen - God considers husband and wife as king
and queen, respectively, of creation. As we read in Hebrews You have crowned him
with glory and honor, and set him over the works of your hands (Hebrews 2:7-8).
The act of crowning that takes place during the wedding ceremony shows that the
bride and groom are very important people in Gods eyes. As His living and redeemed
images, they are crowned king and queen of the universe, reflecting the reality of God.
43
The Crowns of Martyrdom - The marriage crowns in the Orthodox wedding cer-
emony have been compared to the crowns of martyrdom since every true marriage
involves immeasurable self-sacrifice on both sides. Some rules for constructive quar-
reling are
Jesus must be the center of our marriage - For any marriage to be successful,
Jesus must be in the center. When Jesus is in the center of our marriage, he gives it
joy and life. As an example, we consider the wedding at Cana (John 2:1-10). Three
things should be pointed out in this miracle. First, when they discovered that they
had a problem, that is, they had run out of wine, St. Mary, the mother of God, advised
them to take their problem to Jesus, and they did. Secondly, she advised them to do
whatever Jesus told them, and they did. And thirdly, they were wise enough to have
invited Jesus to their wedding in the first place. Jesus turns the water into wine
in our marriage life when we let Him take control of our marriage.
Read the Bible - A Strong Christian home requires that husband and wife read the
Bible together daily or at least on a very regular basis. Reading the Bible or spiritual
books together is a key in becoming united spiritually and striving to be on equal
spiritual levels. It also sets a great example for children. It is critical in service that
husband and wife be on similar spiritual levels, and this should also be a criterion for
44
marriage. If husband and wife are not on similar spiritual levels, this could greatly
affect ones service life and spiritual life.
Pray Together - As in reading the Bible together, husband and wife praying together
is key in building a strong Christian home. Husband and wife should pray together
daily or at least on a very regular basis. They should pray for their problems and
concerns openly, give thanks, and pray for others.
The Husband is the Initiator - St. Paul says Husbands, love your wives (Eph-
esians 5:25). He does not say, Wives, love your husbands. The husband initiates the
love relationship and the wife responds. God built man as the initiator, the wife as
the responder. As he loves her, she will in turn love him. Thus, the husband sets the
spiritual tone on the Orthodox Christian home and if things begin to slip spiritually,
it is up to the husband to initiate and raise the spiritual level of the home.
To be continued...
45
Making God Real in the Orthodox Christian Home - Part III
We want to continue to talk about the second aspect of the Orthodox Christian Home: our
relationship with our spouse. In this lesson, we want to focus on How to love your spouse.
Emotional and Physical Intimacy - Love must be expressed through emotional and
physical intimacy. Emotional intimacy involves telling your spouse that you love them,
that you appreciate them, that you find them attractive, that you need them, that you
enjoy their presence, that you think they are smart, etc.... Physical intimacy helps develops
the oneness that God intended in marriage. St. Paul says, Let the husband render to
his wife the affection due her, and likewise also the wife to her husband. The wife does
not have authority over her own body, but the husband does. And likewise, the husband
does not have authority over his own body, but the wife does. Do not deprive one another
except with consent for a time, that you may give yourselves to fasting and prayer; and
come together again so that Satan does not tempt you because of your lack of self-control
(1 Corinthians 7:3-5).
Praise and Appreciation - True love results in continual praise of our spouse, and
praise becomes natural in a loving relationship. We should not find it hard to give praise
to our spouse, and praise must be accepted in complete humility. We must praise and
show appreciation to our spouse for the work they do at home, their care of the children,
their financial responsibilities, their general responsibilities in the marriage, their care of
us, and for any good thing they do. Hunger for appreciation is a basic human need, like
food, oxygen and sleep. All of us need it because it is a form of love, and without it we are
like plants without water - we wither away. We read in Proverbs, A word fitly spoken is
like apples of gold in a setting of silver (Proverbs 25:11). We should ask ourselves every
day: Have I tried to give my spouse at least one sincere compliment today?
Respect - Though we may disagree our quarrel with our spouse on many things, we must
always treat each other with the utmost respect. St. Paul says, Nevertheless let each
one of you in particular so love his own wife as himself, and let the wife see that she
respects her husband (Ephesians 5:33). The husband, as initiator, loves his wife, and out
of love, comes respect. Respecting your spouse is also critical in the upbringing of children.
46
Children who grow up in a home where husband and wife respect one another are likely
to grow up respecting their parents as well as other people.
Tame the Tongue - If we love our spouse, we will watch our tongue and not say things
that are hurtful. St. James the Apostle has a classic discourse on taming the tongue in his
Epistle. It is in James 3:1-12. This is the Catholic Epistle reading for the third Sunday
of Lent in the Coptic Orthodox Church. St. Basil said once, The most and multifaceted
sin is the one enacted by the tongue. Ben Franklin said once, Remember not only to say
the right thing at the right place, but far more difficult still, to leave unsaid the wrong
thing at the tempting moment. Now we know why we say that verse in Psalm 141:3 in
the Compline prayer of the Agpeya, Set a watch O Lord about my mouth and a door of
enclosure about my lips (Psalm 141:3). How true that verse is in Proverbs, Death and
life are in the power of the tongue (Proverbs 18:21).
Words are our most prized possessions. And they really set us apart from the whole of
creation because plants, rocks, and animals cannot speak. Words show us to be made in
the image and likeness of God. Through words, we can communicate with God and with
each other. And we sing His praises and teach His ways. And this is precisely the reason
why the Holy Spirit on the day of Pentecost appeared in the form of tongues! (Acts 2:3).
For it is the office of the tongue to proclaim the Good News and glorify the Almighty.
There is a beautiful verse in Psalm 51 (Psalm 50 in the Agpeya) that we read in the
beginning of every hour of the Agpeya, Open Thou my lips O Lord, and my mouth shall
show forth Your praise (Psalm 51:15).
Humility - We must be humble with our spouse, always pointing to their strengths rather
than their weaknesses. We should be aware of their weaknesses and try and work through
them with patience and humility, but we should not point to and exploit their weaknesses.
We should never make them feel that we are better than them in anything. When we are
47
given praise, we must accept it with the utmost humility, and we should not dwell on it
and shrug it off quickly.
Patience - Patience is part of the fruit of the Holy Spirit (Galatians 5:22). We must
be patient with our spouse in all things. We must be patient with their weaknesses, bad
habits, faults, etc... We must encourage rather than discourage and uplift instead of bring
down. St. James says, My brethren, count it all joy when you fall into various trials,
knowing that the testing of your faith produces patience. But let patience have its perfect
work, that you may be perfect and complete, lacking nothing (James 1:2-4).
Realistic Expectations - We must not set expectations too high of our spouse. On the
contrary, we should try and set expectations low and treat whatever happens after that
as a bonus. Dont expect your partner to be perfect, only God is perfect. A perfect wife
is one who does not expect a perfect husband and a perfect husband is one who does
not expect a perfect wife. Two imperfect people marry in order to help each other grow
toward perfection. Marriage helps us know and overcome our faults. Marriage is not a
50-50 proposition. In some areas, we may have to give 80% and get back only 20%, or
give 100% and get back 0%. In other areas, our spouse will supply 80% and we give 20%
and so on. However, true love never counts the cost. It only gives and gives again.
Be Loyal - Our first loyalty in marriage after God is our spouse. Children, mother, father,
etc.. come after our spouse. We must keep our priorities straight in marriage by placing
our spouse above all other people. Jesus says, For this reason a man shall leave his father
and mother and be joined to his wife, and the two shall become one flesh. So then, they
are no longer two but one flesh. Therefore what God has joined together, let no man
separate (Matthew 19:5-6).
It is More Blessed to give than to Receive - We must always be in the spirit of giving
with our spouse. Jesus says in Acts 20:35, It is more blessed to give than to receive.
We must learn to serve our spouse as Jesus served His disciples at the last supper. Our
attitude and mindset in marriage should always be one of service and giving.
To be continued ...
48
Making God Real in the Orthodox Christian Home - Part IV
In this part, we conclude the second aspect of the Orthodox Christian Home: our relation-
ship with our spouse.
Honesty
The Christian home is always built around honesty and trust. Husband and wife
must be honest and completely truthful with one another about everything.
If a relationship does not have honesty as one its foundations, then there can never
be trust.
We must always speak the truth to our spouse, but of course, speak it in love. St.
Paul says, but, speaking the truth in love, may grow up in all things into Him who
is the head - Christ (Ephesians 4:15).
St. Paul says, Be angry, and do not sin; do not let the sun go down on your wrath
(Ephesians 4:26). Husband and wife should never end the day angry at one another.
They should do whatever they can to resolve issues at the end of each and every day.
Letting problems stretch over a period of time hardens ones heart and makes a person
grow cold, more bitter, more resentful, and more angry! Evil thoughts continue to
occupy ones mind when they are upset with someone.
So do not let the sun go down on your wrath here means that we should not let any
day come to an end without discussing our differences and resolving them through
understanding and forgiveness.
Few things are more harmful to a marriage than the accumulation of unresolved
differences. Every such difference is like a cement block. After a period of years
all those cement blocks will form a wall running through the center of the home.
The husband will live on one side and the wife on the other, with no communication
49
between them. This is what happens indeed when we let the sun go down on our
anger.
Daily forgiveness is a must for a marriage in order to have a strong Orthodox Christian
home. Forgiveness is one of the fruits of the love of Christ. If we abide in His love,
we will always be able to forgive others.
In relation to the above, one who desires to imitate Christ in their life can easily and
eagerly forgive others. Such a person is a peacemaker, and Jesus says, blessed are
the peacemakers, for they shall be called sons of God (Matthew 5:9).
We should never struggle with our spouse in forgiveness. Forgiveness is not based on
saying sorry 100 or 1000 times nor is it based on punishment, retribution, or discipline.
True forgiveness is based on unconditional love and should be always granted once
a simple statement is made acknowledging ones wrongdoing, that is a confession of
ones mistakes.
The other side of forgiveness is confession. The one to be forgiven must be able
to acknowledge and admit their mistakes in order to be forgiven. Thus, tied with
forgiveness, is confession. In order to be forgiven, one must first confess what they
have done wrong. It is the admission of being at fault, of accepting ones own mistakes
that is usually the beginning of a breakthrough in resolving a problem. This is not
to say that confession is a pre-condition or requirement for forgiveness. It is not. As
noted earlier, we must forgive unconditionally, without confession or anything else,
but the person who examines and humbles themselves and admits their faults will be
a better Christian and better person for doing so, they will have a clearer and pure
conscience and this will ultimately lead to a much stronger marriage and Orthodox
Christian home.
We should never underestimate the power of confession. St. James says, Confess
your trespasses to one another and pray for each other so that you may be healed
(James 5:16). Confession and forgiveness should be a routine part of the marriage
life.
The person who is unable to forgive cannot love God, for forgiveness reveals the
presence of God in ones heart. We say in the Lords prayer, Forgive us our trespasses
50
as we forgive those who trespass against us (Luke 11:4). Jesus also says, But if
you do not forgive, neither will your father in heaven forgive your trespasses (Mark
11:26).
One of the Desert fathers once told the following story. A brother monk once came
to Abba Poemen and said to him, Father, if I fall into a shameful sin, my conscience
devours me. And Abba Poemen replied and said to this brother, At the moment a
person goes astray and sins, if that person says, Ive sinned, immediately, that sin is
erased. Immediately. We see the immediate forgiveness and immediate acceptance
that God offers us in Christ. We should do the same with our spouse.
It is more common to find in a marriage that instead of confessing faults, each partner
is trying to fix blame. Blame fixing is an escape where we evade responsibility and
pass our failures to our spouse and hold them accountable.
When we forgive someone, we must commit ourselves never to bring it up again. We
commit ourselves to never to use it as a club on the other person.
Husband and wife need to spend quality time with each other every day so that they
can understand one another better, and so that they can deal with each other in
Godly wisdom.
Understanding your spouse requires spending lots of time with them, talking a lot
to one another, caring for each others problems and concerns, listening carefully to
them, prayer, patience, and love. St. Paul says, with all lowliness and gentleness,
with long-suffering, bearing one another in love (Ephesians 4:2).
Good Communication
51
in a problem that we are angry and the reasons for it in a loving way, then this will
prevent hostility, built up anger, and frustration. Recall the words of St. Paul: but,
speaking the truth in love, may grow up in all things into Him who is the head -
Christ (Ephesians 4:15).
Husband and wife who have good communication work and live as a unified team in
Christ. They work well together, they play well together, they pray well together,
they talk well together, they laugh well together, and everything they do together is
smooth and harmonious.
52
Making God Real in the Orthodox Christian Home: Part V - The Art of
Successful Christian Living
1. Introduction
There are many kinds of art. There is the art of music - the sweetest of all the
arts, for this art connects to the spirit and emotions and all of our nerves. There
are so many great composers who have enriched humanity with their glorious genius.
Music can lift up the soul and send it soaring to the heights. There is also the art
of photography and then there is the art of sculpture, which takes stone with all its
colors and carves it into different forms. Shapes and figures of famous people are
often so accurate that they seem to capture reality and portray nature itself. Such
figures, in their magnificence, even become objects of worship to ignorant people,
and the simpleminded are easily entranced by such other worldly beauty. However
all these works come from the dust, from the natural creation of rocks and colors.
There are other kinds of art, as well, that have expressed mans various talents, but
have caused many to overlook the real art of life, which is much more sublime.
The art of life has the greatest variety: there is the art of fatherhood and motherhood,
the art of obedience to parents, to employers and to ones superior in religion or work;
and there is the art of education and upbringing, as well as that of emulating superior
models in life.
This is the first and foremost art of life to pass on the secret of life and nurturing.
St. Paul the apostle was breaking new ground when he attributed fatherhood to
the source of its Creator the Heavenly Father. He said in Ephesians 3:14-15:
For this reason I bow my knees to the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, from
whom the whole family in heaven and earth is named (He said family and not
tribe).
53
The Son possessed the embrace of the Father in John [Link] The only begotten
Son, who is in the bosom of the Father, He has declared Him. These are the
exact words of the Lord Jesus, the only begotten and beloved son, declaring the
Fathers love to the Son, the all perfect love that is so immeasurable.
What is truly amazing in both the Father and the Sons love, is that Christ said
to the Father in St. John [Link] And I have declared to them Your name, and
will declare it, that the love with which You loved Me may be in them, and I
in them. Here the words declared it to them refer to Jesus life before He
was crucified, and will declare it to them refer to events after the resurrection,
when Jesus says, through the Holy Spirit, in John 16:14, He will take of what
is Mine and declare it to you.
The same idea is also found in the words of the Lord Jesus, when He speaks of
the Fathers love for the world in John [Link] For God so loved the world that
He gave His only begotten Son, that whosoever believes in Him should not perish
but have everlasting life.
The prayer of Jesus to the Father before He was crucified - that the love with
which You loved Me may be in them - expresses the core of what lies in the
Fathers heart: For God so loved the world means the world of men.
Earthly Fatherhood
In these words we glimpse the source of fatherhood, in its all fullness, its height
and its depth. This vision has been given to the man newly recreated in the
image and likeness of the Father, so that he may speak to the Father about His
fatherly love and tenderness and about the sacrifice of His Son - the Son who
takes life from His Father and even parenthood itself.
This man will soon be a father himself and beget boys and girls. So fatherhood
is the first and greatest gift that a man delivers to his son (or daughter), when
he treats him with love, tenderness and sacrifice. This is truly the greatest thing
owed to a son by his father.
Fatherhood, therefore, is the greatest secret of life because of its divine source,
as St. Paul said. God himself is the source of all fatherhood, endowing it with
all its gifts. The first of the gifts God has granted to the human father is to
bequeath this fatherhood to his children, so that God will be father to all.
54
Christ denoted this when He taught us the only prayer given us by the Lord, in
Luke [Link] When you pray, say Our Father in heaven... He commanded, in
Matthew [Link] Do not call anyone on earth your father; for One is you Father,
He who is in heaven. So the human father is an image in miniature of our great
heavenly Father, and therefore a man is responsible for keeping this fatherhood
safe and holy.
So, when you discipline the son in fatherly love, you are equipping him to carry
on this mission of fatherhood from one generation to the next.
Here is the basic teaching which the father must pass on to his son:
The father must behave as a God-fearing person before his children, whether
they are young or old. The little ones will learn much when they see their
father engaging in prayer to God, in all humility, and praising and glorify-
ing His holy name with reverence. He will kneel down both physically and
spiritually in complete sincerity, whenever the kindling of the Spirit is felt.
It would be a great example if he made his little son stand next to him and
learn how to worship. Indeed, the impact of this will remain with him all his
life. The father can also read the psalms in a gracious way so that the child
will learn how to appreciate those works of praise while he is very young.
The fathers behavior towards the mother, servants and everyone else, should
be truly honest, full of reverence for Gods name. He should not swear or lie,
or accept any lying; he must punish anyone who lies, swears or curses. He has
to make it clear that such bad behavior brings Gods anger on their home and
causes them to stumble. The father is responsible for his childrens failure,
because he has not taught them the fear of God and sincere worship, so that
Gods power accompanies them and His guidance directs them throughout
their lives. But as for me and my house, we will serve the Lord (Joshua
24:15).
The childrens success in life depends on the Lords leadership, and this begins
with the father and extends to the children. A father begins disciplining
his son when he is only an infant. In early life he shows his love for him,
but after infancy plays his role in guiding the childs behavior. He should
make clear his love and tenderness, whenever the child accepts and obeys
his guidance. However, if the child is disobedient, the father should show
55
his concern and displeasure. When the child disobeys, the first punishment
should be administered to the back of his hands and feet, but a father should
never beat the child on his face, because this is humiliating and could cause
him emotional damage. Never beat a son on his bottom, because this is likely
to arouse his sexual feelings too early. A child should not be kissed on the
lips, because, apart from carrying germs and being an unhealthy practice, it
can arouse his sexual tendencies. If a beating is used for discipline, it should
be given on the back of the hands or feet, but not so as to inflict pain, just
as a punishment.
When the child grows older, discipline has to be exercised rather through dis-
cussion and stories, or by going for a friendly walk, according to the proverb:
When your son grows up, be his friend. Let him share with you in all your
comings and goings, so he learns manhood and how to relate to others. At
this stage the father begins to give his son pieces of advice and, as soon as
his mind begins to develop, spiritual examples. This must happen before he
receives any learning outside spiritual discipline and training.
Whether these teachings are in the spiritual life or taken from his own life
and experiences, as well as those of his ancestors, the father should know that
his teachings will remain engraved in his sons mind more than any education
from another source. The sons feelings for his father are full of reverence
and respect, as the fathers words make a great impression on the youths
feelings, as do the words of the Bible where his self-confidence is concerned.
So the father should plant the seeds of faith and trust in the young boys heart
and these seeds will remain in his memory all his life. One of the features
of fatherhood that the father must firmly establish in his sons emotional
character is to discipline the young mans spirit regarding his adult manhood
and future interactions with others. Thus the son will be reared to be a
brave young man, unafraid of meeting people or speaking to others. This is
achieved when the father shares with his son both his own life experience and
his personal relationship with God.
As for self-confidence, science and knowledge, this should be provided by the
school and university. The father has to ensure access for his son to religious
and secular magazines, as well as historical and educational ones. These will
56
enable him to study the thoughts of the great heroes of humanity through
photography, music and travel. The youth can also have his own albums and
enjoy other hobbies that may increase his talents, which are gifts from God.
The father has both to foster and discipline these talents within reasonable
limits. A father must train his youngster to consider his father as the best
person to turn to in confession, so that the child will share his concerns and
his relationships with others. The father will therefore give guidance and
warnings against possible risks in life.
As for those fathers who are careless in raising their children, letting them be-
come the prey of circumstances and bad companions, God will not hear them
should they later reproach Him for the evil outcome, since they themselves
have brought about the perdition of their children.
A father remains responsible for his son until old age, because the authority
of the father is given by the Spirit of God. With Gods help it is possible to
safeguard the childs integrity and purity, and direct his youth and manhood
in a straight path.
Fathers, beware of complaining about your children to anyone - whether that
person is close or distant, for you will only create a barrier between you and
him. He will no longer have any confidence or trust in you, and will no longer
rely on you. You will sever all relations between yourself and his emotional
life - a division you will never be able to erase, and which could even grow
greater with time.
If you wish to draw his attention to something, sit with him privately and
talk it over; ask him to restore your peace of heart and not to make the same
mistake again. Add to this your prayers on his behalf, so that Gods Spirit
may intervene and correct him. You will win him to God and to yourself,
and also restore him to himself. Through following Gods way and through
your prayer, honesty, love and trust, you can never go astray.
Another aspect of fatherhood is to develop the habit of praising your son
before his mother, his brothers and sisters, his relatives and guests. This will
encourage him, by increasing his self-confidence and his trust in you, and he
will then always try to fulfill your wishes and expectations. If you praise him
before others, he too will praise you and be proud of you as a father. So your
57
mutual relationship will be a strong one, through the goodness of God and
for the sake of a healthy spiritual life.
We should limit the amount of time our children watch television and closely
monitor the programs they watch and approve of what they watch. Some
church fathers even prefer that children to be brought up without a television
set at home, because with television they will receive teaching otherwise than
God, or what you yourself desire.
Do not lead your children into any temptation, for that will subsequently lead
to their destruction and you will be held responsible at the Last Judgment,
when there will be no hope of intercession.
Try to avoid the over-excitement at social gatherings, whether at your own
home or in others houses. There is great emotional damage to those who
take part in such gatherings.
We are accountable for all our sins which will bring judgment on us, since they
arise from lust and passion and obstinacy, and therefore what self-justification
can we offer?!
On the other hand, in our home, we should arrange evenings of praise and
prayer that include all the family. We will be happy with the Lord, and the
Lord will be happy with us, because He has promised to be among us. If the
Lord is present, He fills the house and all our hearts with His name, so the
home is fortified against the temptations of the evil one. The family has then
won the indwelling presence of the Lord.
58
Making God Real in the Orthodox Christian Home: Part VI - The Art of
Successful Christian Living
The art of fatherhood and of motherhood together are part of the art of life itself. It
was truly the greatest honor that the Virgin Saint Mary was chosen to be the mother
of the Son of God without knowing any man.
Motherhood itself was thus raised high to embrace the Father, the very Godhead,
and she was exalted by the birth of Christ, being called the Mother of the Son of
God. St. Mary thus removed the shame of Eve, and the blood shed at her delivery
washed away the sin of all those who are reborn as children of Jesus and the Father.
She has gone beyond the words of King David in Psalm [Link] Behold, I was brought
forth in iniquity, and in sin my mother conceived me.
With Adam, sex began between male and female to preserve the human race from
dying out, but with Jesus the age of sex of male and female has come to an end, for
when death is conquered the door to everlasting life is opened. Therefore after the
coming of the second birth from above, by water and the Spirit, sex no longer exists
because the age of righteousness has prevailed.
Thus the new age has come about, according to Gods words: With righteousness
the Church has given me birth. It is now more appropriate to say, in the name of
Christ, my mother gave me birth. So every womans infant born in Christ is made
worthy of the kingdom of God. He has guardian angels, who are accountable for their
guardianship before the face of God.
Christ has exalted mothers to the honor of giving birth to Gods boys and girls. Saint
Paul opened our eyes to the knowledge that boys and girls in Christ have become
one; there is no longer any distinction between boys and girls. In Christ there is no
male or female - they have become one.
In 2 Corinthians 11:2, St. Paul summed this up by calling every believer in Christ
- whether a man or a woman - a chaste virgin to Christ. Therefore he restores all
those who are married in Christ to virginity, whether male or female. In the eyes of
59
God and Christ, all have become chaste virgins. This is the Church that begets boys
and girls and is called the Virgin Bride of Christ, that is His Body.
We see here how high St. Paul raises motherhood in Christ! A woman who begets
boys and girls to God is considered by Him a chaste virgin. From the virginity of St.
Mary the virgin Body of Christ came forth; thus from the virginity of the Body of
Christ we all came forth as chaste virgins.
So we have called motherhood in Christ an art of life, and indeed it is more distin-
guished than any other art. We are lifting up the normal human view of a woman
to that level attained by the Virgin Mary - a level attributed to the woman found
in Christ by the apostle St. Paul, when he said that we are all Christs virgins and
members of His Body.
In Christianity, all this glory and honor conferred on the woman flows from the
Church, and the Churchs honor and glory comes from the body of Christ. Her
husband shares in this task of raising up children of Christ and young people to God,
who are pleasing to His will and heart. As St. Paul said of God, when writing to the
Ephesians in 1:5, Having predestined us by Jesus Christ to adoption as His sons,
according to the good pleasure of His will.
The first of these daily arts is the pregnancy period. There is agreement among scien-
tists that during pregnancy a woman transfers to her newborn baby its temperament
and nervous qualities. She can feed the baby with her bad temper, her worries, her
thoughts, her sorrows, which are in turn carried over into childhood and adulthood
and even passed on to the next generation. A woman can feed her child with her
tranquilizers and sedatives, bringing about an ugly and depressed attitude, which she
then complains about, although this moodiness and depression was actually derived
from the mother herself.
On the other hand the mother who realizes the value of the art of life and takes
seriously her responsibility towards her baby confers on the child a peaceful and
happy disposition. This mother will sing sweet praises to God during her pregnancy
period with Biblical thoughts and meditations, as well as quietly reading the Bible.
All this will make the babys spirit absorb and be enriched by the Word. The childs
60
body and spirit receives and responds to all this, so the mother will rejoice in the
beauty of her son and his delightful spirit, liveliness and intelligence.
The mothers role in nursing is even more important than what is mentioned above.
When the baby is feeding at the breast, together with the milk it takes in all her
emotional and spiritual qualities, without her being aware of it. Even as the baby
nurses, it keeps looking at her and her features, absorbing whether she is sorrowful
and depressed, or full of happiness and smiles.
In addition, the food which a mother eats greatly affects the milk she produces.
Specialists say there are foods that are preferable to eat when nursing for the good
nutrition of the baby. Weaning has to be gradual, a time for nursing and a time
for feeding by hand for the child to get used to, and this will help the baby to quit
nursing and becoming too attached to breast feeding.
A sensible mother tries to pay more attention to her baby when weaning him. She
would pat him on the back and touch him for him to burp, because the air inside his
intestines would cause a stomach-ache and he would be cranky.
She tucks him in bed and pats him after feeding until he is comforted and sleeps
peacefully. He will then wake up, and actively play with hands and feet. This early
exercise is his most important task in life, as it prepares him for the coming struggles
in life and can also reduce the time he has to be carried around, except in cases of
need. He will gradually get used to being on his own and will be ready for his first
steps.
A child who is used to being carried in his mothers arms will dislike the chore of
walking and will grow up wanting to rely on his mother. He will whine a lot until she
eventually picks him up, so to get his own way he cries and screams. At this point it
is very necessary to discipline the child, by the mother or father showing him some
severity.
From childhood, he should learn how to be obedient to orders. The child has to begin
to learn about life, in order to grow up as an independent self-reliant person. A father
or mother does not have to resort spanking until he feels pain and cries out, as this
is very undesirable; it is sufficient to be firm. If punishment is necessary, let it be
light taps on the back of the hand or on his feet, just enough to make him realize his
parents are upset and so he will stop being so stubborn.
61
Once a child starts his education, the positive facts of learning are more important
than grades or scores. He should not be scared by ghost stories or frightening tales,
because these highly imaginative stories could cause hallucinations and make him
cowardly.
A child has to be taught that God is the giver of all good things. He sends us food
and clothes, delicacies, special candies made by the angels for good children. He
should also learn the natural facts of life; he should not be afraid of dogs or cats, or
any other animals, but come to know their names and shapes without fearing them,
even those beasts of the forest, lions, tigers or elephants.
Next the child should recognize the pictures of the saints and be able to distinguish
them apart, for these saints pray for the sick to be healed.
However, the encounter with the sufferings of Christ on the cross should be deferred
until he is ten years old, so that the image of His pain will not make a sad impression
on the childs emotions.
Jesus is the lover of little children, friend to the family, caregiver of little ones and
giver of all that is good. He is the One who will help us succeed in examinations, if
we work hard and are obedient to our parents.
This is the role of the mother in the education of her child. Later on, the father takes
the child out of doors with him, so as to teach him the practicalities of the art of life
and how to interact with people. He should also be in touch with those who are poor
and should give them some of his pocket-money.
62
Making God Real in the Orthodox Christian Home - Part VII - Obedience of a
Child
1. Introduction
Obedience should be paid to whomever obedience is due. First to the father, which
is very important and very serious; to obey ones father is more important than food
or drink.
The obedience to the father is modeled by the mother when the child sees how she
obeys the father, by saying yes or certainly, or of course when the father makes
a request.
St. Paul says, Children, obey your parents in all things, for this is well pleasing to
the Lord, (Colossians 3:20). Also, St. Paul says, Children, obey your parents in
the Lord, for this is right (Ephesians 6:1).
So Whatever the father asks of the child, he must do it unhesitatingly, or he will be
deprived of something that he really cherishes. For example, the father will not bring
him his favorite toy unless he is really obedient.
The child also has to be obedient to the mother since since she is the one who has all
the candy; if he is disobedient, he will not be allowed to have candy and will receive
only frowns.
After learning parental obedience, the boys obedience will be extended to his teacher.
This is a holy obligation, so he will grow up to love obedience as an art to achieve
the best way of living.
Later, through good manners and obedience to his employer, a smooth path to a
successful life will open up before him. Obedience of the employees to his employer
is invaluable.
Employers will wish him to work for them and his reputation will grow as a reliable
employee, who is wise and useful. This is all due to the parents upbringing of their
child from the kindergarten years.
63
They have planted in him the virtues of obedience, love, respect, pleasant ways and
kindly dealing with people - all of which compound the art of successful living.
A child is instructed in all these things from childhood onwards. The parents will
teach him to to be courteous to guests, whether he knows them or not, and also what
questions are appropriate, or not, to ask of them.
He will then learn how to be hospitable to guests and how to answer their questions.
He will also be rewarded with a nice little gift for his good behavior with guests.
A child cannot be obedient to others outside the home if he is not taught obedience
in the home.
Do not allow children to lock themselves up in their room when guests come, as if
it were mandatory to stay in a cage until the guests leave. This is damaging to the
childs personality and will cause him to fail in his dealings with others; he may then
shun company and become shy and timid, unable to be socially successful.
Do not complain about the child to outsiders, as this will build up a hidden barrier
between him and his parents and will become engraved in his personality, remaining
as an ugly memory of his parents.
Spanking, cursing and restricting his freedom, depriving him of love and other natural
rights will be remembered with bitterness in relation to his parents.
He may even wish them dead, or commit suicide to escape the hell caused by their
stupid ignorance.
Such turmoil may be created in a childs heart by ignorant parents. Though they
may desire to see the face of God, they will not attain to that vision. Beware of
being a stumbling block to your child, for a millstone in the depths of the sea awaits
you! For Jesus said, Whoever causes one of these little ones who believe in Me to
sin, it would be better for him if a millstone were hung around his neck, and he were
drowned in the depth of the sea (Matthew 18:6).
Also, St. Paul says, But beware lest somehow this liberty of yours become a stum-
bling block to those who are weak (1 Corinthians 8:9).
64
4. Obedience to Others Leads to Obedience to God
Obedience to others leads to obedience to God and His laws. The orders of the father,
if they are wise and sensible, will definitely teach the child continual obedience to God
and His words.
See what blessing and means of salvation you can be to your son (or daughter) when
you teach him obedience, however hard this may be.
Obedience may sometimes mean self-sacrifice for the father; this enables emotional
strength and grace to be established in the childs character. As the father sets an
example by love, kindness, generosity, and self-sacrifice, this makes his son content
and at ease.
Our own salvation is established on the foundation of obedience to God; the obedience
of the Son to the Father unto death, the death of the cross.
So Christ made this His path and the only way: Whoever would follow Me, let him
take up his cross and follow Me (Matthew 16:24). How can a man carry a cross
when he hates obedience?
Obedience is indeed the secret of a successful life, because it is the secret of salvation
and the pleasure of the heavenly Father. In Philippians 2:9, we read He humbled
Himself and became obedient unto death, even death on the cross. Therefore God
has highly exalted Him and bestowed on Him the name which is above every name.
So God has bestowed on us the art of obedience in its amazing strength in Christ
Himself with His cross. He called us to carry it, that is to say, to carry His obedience!
Jesus says it so clearly in Matthew [Link] Whosoever loses his life for My sake will
find it. And where are we to destroy and die to self fully? In heaven alone! If we do
not desire to lose our life here by every possible means, then we will not find it there!
65
Making God Real in the Orthodox Christian Home - Part VIII - Obedience of a
Child
1. Introduction
Learning obedience is an important part of child development. This is the tool that
allows you as parents to train your child. Through obedience your child will learn
self-control and develop other positive character traits that he will need as an adult.
However, obedience cannot be forced upon the child. Parents who simply command
their children will foster resentment, which will eventually lead to rebellion. In fact,
some researchers feel that poor parenting techniques contribute to the development
of oppositional defiant disorder in some children.
Although you can punish a child for not obeying, this will not foster any long-term
obedience. When the child reaches his teen years and becomes more independent,
punishment will only serve to destroy the already faltering parent child relationship.
Our goal then is not to force our children to obey us, but to get them to want to
obey us. This willingness to obey will only come about if the parents commands are
based upon the following seven principles.
A child knows quickly whether a parents demands are for the sake of the child or
for the personal convenience of the parent. If the parents primary motive for giving
orders is to make his own life easier, then the child learns to place his own interests
first also.
If you want to be successful in raising your child, then your reason for giving orders
must be for the benefit of your child.
When your child senses that your demands are for his sake, he will much more readily
obey you. He knows that it is for his own good. He will know that any demands
made of him, no matter how unpleasant, come from a genuine concern for his welfare.
66
3. Sincere Respect for the Child
Parents must respect their children. This is a concept that is not well practiced by
our society. Western society focuses on possessions. Somehow in the back of many
parents minds, their children are counted among those possessions.
We must remember that our children are not objects, but people. As people, they
are deserving of respect. We must remember to give respect to our child to the same
degree we would like others to respect us.
4. Patience
Very often our children do things that bother us. This is usually unintentional on
their part and is just a reflection of their immaturity. However, if we show our children
that we are annoyed they will begin to resent us.
This resentment feeds their desire to rebel against our wishes. One of our goals as
parents must be to try to keep our negative emotions in check.
5. Speak Softly
Nothing gains a childs cooperation more than a gentle tone of voice. Speaking softly
helps us to control our negative emotions, especially anger.
A soft voice soothes and is more likely to be met with cooperation. It creates a
relaxed atmosphere and is reassuring to children.
When we speak in a soft voice it also conveys strength. We show our children that
we are in control of the situation and not merely reacting to it.
If the only step you take is to control the volume of your voice, particularly in stressful
situations, that alone will foster better child compliance. You will find that everything
around you goes more smoothly.
No one likes having demands placed upon him. Children are no different. Yet we are
constantly commanding our children.
67
We feel that as parents we must take steps to correct every misdemeanor that we
see. When the orders become excessive or arbitrary, the parent becomes more like a
dictator than an educator.
If you place a lot of obligations on your child, then your child is going to resent and
resist your authority.
One of the most important steps in getting your child to listen to you is to reduce
the amount of demands that you place upon him. This will require you to stay calm
and overlook a lot of childish behavior.
Commands should be made thoughtfully and be within reasonable limits. The general
rule is that if a certain behavior is not something your child will be doing as an adult
and if it is not sinful or dangerous, then you should not make it a priority to correct.
7. Follow Through
Even if you do all that has been mentioned so far, you will still need to give your
child orders.
When you do so, you must be firm and make sure that your child obeys. If you give
your child an instruction you must insist that he fulfill it. Jesus says, let your Yes
be Yes and your No, No (Matthew 5:37).
Often it will be easier or more convenient to just overlook disobedience. This, in the
end, will erode your authority as a parent.
You should only make moderate and well thought out demands on your child. How-
ever, when you do make those orders, your child must fulfill them.
If we want our children to take our words seriously, then we must show them that we
are serious.
We must try to grant every reasonable request our children make of us. They should
feel that we are giving to them freely and in overflowing abundance at all times.
You should make it a rule to give your child whatever he wants unless you have a
good reason not to do so. This is the way that Jesus treats us. Jesus says, If you
ask anything in My name, I will do it (John 14:14).
68
In addition, we should try to temper our use of No. Try to avoid saying No
whenever possible. For example, if your child wants to have a treat before dinner and
you want him to eat first, rather than say No or Not now say, Yes, after dinner.
This small change in the way you use the words Yes and No will change your childs
perception from the feeling that most of his desires are being denied to that most of
them are being granted.
8. Conclusion
Applying these seven keys will help you to make it easier for your child to obey you.
69
Bless the Crown of the Year with Your Goodness O Lord
As we begin a new Coptic year in the Sunday School, there are several spiritual goals that
we should strive for so that our own spiritual life can grow, and our service become fruitful.
As Sunday School servants, we must work towards strengthening and developing our God
given virtues so that we can serve effectively and fruitfully.
1. Humility
The Church Fathers say that humility is the pillar of Christianity and in particular,
the pillar in service and is single most important virtue in service.
The humble person never fails in their service. In contrast, the person who lacks
humility fails in every aspect of their service.
Every single problem, disagreement, tension, etc.. can always be traced back to a
lack of humility of one servant or the other.
The reason we have the devil in the first place is because of a lack of humility. When
one lacks humility, they are full of pride and arrogance, and this was precisely the
problem of Lucifer.
Humility immediately leads to other holy virtues and spiritual living, such as love,
patience, forgiveness, unselfishness, the recognition of our sins, and repentance.
Servants, be humble in your service! As love never fails, humility also never fails in
service.
2. Obedience
Obedience is a key element in service. Every servant must not only be obedient to
the Lord, but also obedient to the church doctrine, church hierarchy, and church
authority.
70
The obedient person in service always says as Samuel did when they are called: Here
I am Lord (1 Samuel 3:4).
All of the successful people in the Bible became successful because of their total
submission and obedience to God.
Obedience requires total and unconditional surrender to the will of God in our life,
including our service life.
The humble person is always obedient. The obedient person is not necessarily humble.
Thus, humility indeed leads to obedience.
The obedient person who is not humble is obedient with resentment and feels com-
pelled to be obedient in order that they not lose their status, position, or prestige in
the world.
Humility and obedience are the two pillars on which service is based.
3. Hypocrite! First remove the plank from your own eye, then you will see clearly
to remove the speck from your brothers eye (Matthew 7:5)
A critical aspect of service is that we must not be judgmental of others, whether they
be Sunday School kids, fellow servants, the congregation, or whomever.
We must constantly examine ourselves instead of examining others.
The judgmental person can never grow spiritually, and is doomed for failure in their
service. Such a person is arrogant and a hypocrite.
Thus, let us indeed remove the plank from our eye before we say anything about
anyone, so that we can see clearly and think clearly in our service.
There is a great verse in the Bible that says, And from the days of John the Baptist
until now the kingdom of heaven suffers violence, and the violent take it by force
(Matthew 11:12).
Our spiritual life is a struggle. We have many temptations and setbacks. We have
to fight the devil and work through our circumstances take the kingdom of God by
force.
It was said of Saint Moses that Black that he took the kingdom of God by force.
71
We cannot let our circumstances, the environment we are in, or the people we en-
counter bring us down in our service and lead us down the path of despair, despon-
dency and loss of hope. We have to fight and take the kingdom of God by force.
Sometimes servants lose hope and become ineffective in service because they depend
too much on others to build and uplift their spiritual life. They depend too much on
the environment around them for their spirituality. We should depend only on Jesus
and fight to take His kingdom by force.
Jacob wrestled with God so that he could take the kingdom of God by force.
The dependence of the environment around us for building our spiritual life is a subtle
deception from the devil. Lets us look at two examples in the Bible.
Adam and Eve - Adam and Eve lived in the most perfect environment in the
history of the world. They walked and talked with God. Yet, in this most
perfect environment, they sinned and were rejected from the Garden of Eden.
Noah - The entire world surrounding Noah was bad, except for his family, yet
Noah lived in righteousness and was faithful to God. The entire world around
him was wicked and died in the flood.
The person who is is a hearer and lover of the word of God is one who takes the
kingdom of God by force, exerting all earnestness and desire to enter the Kingdom.
5. We not I: Unselfishness
Servants must always be unselfish in everything they do, and refrain from using the
word I, which is the shortest but most destructive word in the English language.
We must get into the habit of saying we and put it into action by doing things
together as we and not as I.
If we take the letter I and cross it out, it makes a plus sign, +. The plus sign is a
cross which represents Jesus. Thus + = we = Jesus and I.
In our service, we can never achieve good anything by ourselves. Our service is always
done with the partnership of Jesus Christ. Every fruit and blessing in our service can
only be done in a partnership with Jesus Christ. The person who does things alone
72
without giving God the glory never receives the blessings and fruits in their service.
Every good gift and every perfect gift comes from above, and comes down from the
Father of lights (James 1:17).
The servant who has a strong personal relationship with Jesus always serves with joy.
Such a servant always has a smile on their face and has peace in their heart.
A joyous servant never feels burdened or overwhelmed by their service. They love
their service and enjoy their time in church and being with the Sunday School kids.
The joyous servant never feels that service occupies too much of their time.
Let us serve with the joy that St. Paul and Silas had in the Philippian jail, where
the word joy appears more than 15 times in St. Pauls epistle to the Philippians.
Spiritual unity is a major component of service. Jesus met with his disciples often in
the Upper Room.
As servants, we must all serve with one accord for our service to grow and be suc-
cessful.
We all must be like-minded, having the same love, being of one accord, of one mind
(Philippians 2:2).
We read in Acts 1:14, They continued with one accord in prayer and supplication.
This is a key verse for unity in service.
Also, in Acts 2:1, we read, When the day of Pentecost had fully come, they were
with one accord in one place. These verses serve as model verses for unity in our
service.
Also, we read So continuing daily with one accord in the temple, and breaking bread
from house to house, they ate their food with gladness and simplicity of heart (Acts
2:46).
73
Purification of the Heart
1. Introduction
According to the Bible, the heart is the source of all of the potentiality of the spiritual
and physical life: Keep your heart with all vigilance; for from it flow the springs of
life (Proverbs 4:23).
This applies not only to good potential but to evil ones as well: For out of the
heart come evil thoughts, murder, adultery, fornication, theft, false witness, slander
(Matthew 15:19).
So the heart has become the expression of the final condition of man, whether he be
good or evil: The good man out of the good treasure of his heart produces good,
and the evil man out of his evil treasure produces evil (Luke 6:45). This means that
the inclinations of the inmost heart set the tone of the whole man - they color his
thoughts, his words, and his deeds.
Purity of heart is critical in our own personal spiritual life as well as our service life.
We cannot grow spiritually nor serve effectively without a pure heart.
God always looks to the heart when he evaluates the condition of man. When God
rejected Saul and told Samuel to anoint David king, He said Do not look at his
appearance or at his physical stature, because I have refused him. For the Lord does
not see man as he is; for man looks at the outward appearance, but the Lord looks at
the heart (1 Samuel 16:7). We must learn to do the same. It is too easy to evaluate
and judge people based on external things, rather than the internal. We must learn
to look at the heart of others, and this requires time as well as a relationship with
them.
We can often know that state of ones heart by the words they speak. Jesus says,
For out of the abundance of the heart, his mouth speaks (Luke 6:45). So mans
words usually testify to the state of his heart. They can justify or condemn him:
For by your words you will be justified, and by your words you will be condemned
(Matthew 12:37).
74
One of the best ways to examine our spiritual condition is to examine every single
word we say: Do we speak kindly? Do we speak humbly? Do we speak respectfully?
Do we gossip? Do we slander? Do we condemn? Do we degrade? Do we mock? Do
we ridicule?
The relationship between ones heart and ones lips is defined by St. Paul as follows:
For man believes with his heart and so is justified, and he confesses with his lips
and so is saved (Romans 10:10). So when the heart believes, the lips must confess
what kind of faith is in the heart.
The Bible tells us that it is possible for two kinds of heart to exist side by side in man,
one expressing his true nature and another falsifying his thoughts, words, and deeds.
In the latter case, a person talks of good deeds and actually does them to give people
the false impression that he is virtuous, while in fact, he is wicked: You brood of
vipers! How can you speak good, when you are evil? For out of the abundance of the
heart the mouth speaks (Matthew 12:34).
Jesus tells us here that it is impossible for man to speak good words out of himself
while being wicked. Good words coming from an evil source could only occur with
the help of an additional power - or of another heart implanted by the devil to mimic
good deeds.
Thus, the devils work, with regard to the heart, is not merely confined to contami-
nating it with evil desires. The devil hides evil and keeps his intentions secret through
good works and deeds by wicked men in order to guarantee that they will be carried
out and have a lasting effect.
Hence, first among mans struggles and concerns is to purify his heart. He must
overcome the deviations of the will and to correct the inclinations and instincts that
have been subjected to the rule of evil. This means that he has to confront the
tendency of his heart toward evil activity. He has to bridle it, curb it, and finally
destroy its tendency.
75
As for Gods work concerning the heart, it is the complete removal of the evil heart
and the creation of a new heart that He implants into man.
When mans heart is transformed by God, he becomes, out of necessity, another man:
Then the spirit of the Lord will come mightily upon you, and you shall prophesy
with them and be turned into another man.... When he turned his back to leave
Samuel, God gave him another heart (1 Samuel 10:6,9).
In the Bible, the reality of creating a new heart for man goes hand in hand with three
basic actions:
We find these three elements in Psalm 50 (Psalm 51 in the Bible) in Davids confession.
We also find these three elements in the Sacrament of Baptism (see Acts 15:9, Acts
2:38).
Thus, the central element of purification of the heart is faith and repentance.
Through faith and repentance, the Holy Spirit works within us through baptism to
create a new heart within us. This is a divine mystery and power that enable us to
be transformed in our spiritual life.
With this transformation, we are able to hate wickedness and evil, we are able to
dispel evil thoughts and passions, and we are able to embrace the power of holiness.
Indeed, we put off the old man and put on the new: Seeing that you have put off the
old nature with its practices and have put on the new nature, which is being renewed
in knowledge after the image of its Creator (Colossians 3:9-10).
God gives the highest honor to those who are pure in heart: Blessed are the pure
in heart, for they shall see God (Matthew 5:8). There is no higher honor in the
beatitudes than seeing God.
76
Why did God especially choose the heart of man to set apart exclusively for Himself
and not any other part? My son, give me your heart, and let your eyes observe my
ways (Proverbs 23:26). Also, the first commandment is You shall love the Lord
your God with all your heart (Deuteronomy 6:5).
Man has nothing deeper than the heart as far as compassion, tenderness, mercy, and
love are concerned. The heart expresses the center of the most tender and sincere of
mans emotions. However, it is not for this that God seeks the heart of man.
For there exists another characteristic of the heart that transcends kindness, tender-
ness, mercy, or love. This consists in its being the wellspring of mans personality,
from which all its main characteristics flow.
The Church Fathers say that the heart is mans holy of holies. It is exclusively this
feature that makes it fit for the indwelling of God. For if man loves God with all his
heart, it means that he loves him with all his being. He has given himself unreservedly
to God.
6. Conclusion
Hence, the purification of the heart is to those who love God a matter of overriding
importance.
For God never seeks nor is ever satisfied with half-hearted or partial love. The whole
heart must be dedicated to Him.
The word whole-hearted means clearing the heart completely from the impurities
of human emotions, for such emotions stem from the bonds of flesh and blood or
sensual inclinations and affections.
It also means cleansing entirely from all secret idols and gods, for the holy of holies
should be consecrated and adorned for God alone.
77
Wisdom
1. Introduction
Wisdom is an important gift from God that is vital in effective and fruit-bearing
service.
Wisdom is given to those who servants who are truly are humble and obedient, and
servants who seek an honest and deep intimate relationship with Jesus Christ.
The Bible speaks much about the importance of wisdom. Several books in the Bible
are dedicated to that topic alone, including Proverbs, and the Wisdom of Solomon.
The Bible also talks about the wisest man who ever lived, Solomon, who wrote Song of
Solomon, Proverbs, Wisdom of Solomon, and Ecclesiastes. All of these books contain
major sayings and instructions about living and acting wisely.
In the book of Proverbs, we are encouraged to seek wisdom, as Solomon says, Wis-
dom is the principal thing; therefore get wisdom. And in all your getting, get under-
standing (Proverbs 4:7).
Likewise in the New Testament, we are also expected to walk in wisdom, as the
Apostle Paul says, See then that you walk circumspectly, not as fools but as wise,
redeeming the time, because the days are evil (Ephesians 5:15). We also read,
Therefore do not be unwise, but understand what the will of the Lord is (Ephesians
5:17).
In James 3:13-18, we also learn that there is more than just one kind of wisdom. St.
James says, Who is wise among you? Let him show by good conduct that his works
are done in the meekness of wisdom. But if you have bitter envy and self-seeking in
your hearts, do not boast and lie against the truth. This wisdom does not descend
from above, but is earthly, sensual, and demonic. For where envy and self-seeking
78
exist, confusion and every evil thing are there. But the wisdom that is from above
is first pure, then peaceable, gentle, willing to yield, full of mercy and good fruits,
without partiality and without hypocrisy. Now the fruit of righteousness is sown in
peace by those who make peace.
The dictionary definition of wisdom is knowledge and good judgment. It is some-
thing intellectual in nature, something obtained through learning and experience.
But wisdom in St. Jamess view is a moral rather than intellectual quality.
St. James in these verses (James 3:13-18) explains that wisdom is different from
knowledge. Wisdom is knowledge that is obeyed and applied.
Earthly wisdom is not from above (James 3:15). St. James says that the origin
of mans wisdom is earthly, sensual, and demonic. In the absence of God, mans
wisdom is drawn from the three enemies: the world, the flesh, and the devil.
Earthly (worldly) wisdom is wisdom according to the worlds standards. St. Paul
says that this type of wisdom is foolishness to God: Where is the wise? Where
is the scribe? Where is the disputer of this age? Has not God made foolish the
wisdom of this world? (1 Corinthians 1:20).
Mans wisdom is sensual in the sense that is is guided by what is appealing to
the senses, the emotions, and the passions. It is wisdom according to what feels
right, but is not necessarily right in the eyes of God.
Mans wisdom is demonic in the sense it the exact wisdom that is possessed by
the devil and his angels. It is a wisdom that originates from the influences of
Satan.
In contrast, heavenly wisdom is from above (James 3:17). It is a wisdom that comes
from God.
It is a wisdom that comes through prayer, as St. James says, If any one of you
lacks wisdom, let him ask God, who gives to all liberally and without reproach,
and it will be given to him (James 1:5).
It is a wisdom that comes through guidance: But when the wise is instructed, he
receives knowledge (Proverbs 21:11). And a man of understanding will attain
wise counsel (Proverbs 1:5).
It is a wisdom that is first and foremost an attribute of Jesus Christ, in which
St. Paul says, In whom are hidden all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge
79
(Colossians 2:3). St. Paul also says, Christ the power of God and the wisdom
of God (1 Corinthians 1:24).
Earthly Wisdom
Earthly wisdom full of bitter envy, and stems from a lack of love, that is, hatred.
Earthly wisdom possesses self-seeking in the heart. It is self-serving, selfish, and
egotistical.
Earthly wisdom seeks power and prestige.
Earthly wisdom is the kind of wisdom that prompted Satan and his angels to
rebel against God.
Earthly wisdom is the wisdom that prompted the disciples to argue who would
be the greatest in the kingdom of heaven.
The wisdom of the world is good for nothing, and is inherited through our sinful
nature. We do not have to teach anyone worldly wisdom for they are born with
it.
80
Heavenly Wisdom
Heavenly wisdom is pure. It is true to Gods will. We are called to be 100% pure.
Heavenly wisdom is peaceable. Holding firm to the truth, it makes every effort
to be at peace. St. Paul says, If it is possible as much depends on you, live
peaceably with all men (Romans 12:18). It speaks the truth in an attitude of
love: Speaking the truth in love (Ephesians 4:15).
Heavenly wisdom is gentle. It is never harsh, especially in dealing with others
whose opinions differ from us. As the Apostle Paul says, And a servant of the
Lord must not quarrel but be gentle to all, able to teach, patient, in humility cor-
recting those who are in opposition, if God perhaps will grant them repentance,
so that they may know the truth (2 Timothy 2:24-25).
Heavenly wisdom is willing to yield. It yields not in matters of truth but rather
in matters of opinion. St. Paul says, Receive one who is weak in the faith, but
not to disputes over doubtful things (Romans 14:1).
Heavenly wisdom is full of mercy. It is quick to forgive the offenses of others.
It wisely understands ones own need of mercy from God. St. James says, For
judgment is without mercy to one who has shown no mercy (James 2:13).
Heavenly wisdom produces good fruits. St. James says, Who is wise and un-
derstanding among you? Let him show by good conduct that his works are done
in the meekness of wisdom (James 3:13). Heavenly wisdom takes one beyond
being a hearer to being a doer But be doers of the word, and not hearers only,
deceiving yourselves (James 1:22).
Heavenly wisdom is without partiality. St. James says, My brethren, do not
hold the faith of our Lord Jesus Christ, the Lord of Glory, with partiality (James
2:1). St. James also says, But if you show partiality, you commit sin, and are
convicted by the law as transgressors (James 2:9).
Heavenly wisdom is without hypocrisy. Heavenly wisdom comes from those who
have a heart desiring to please God and not man.
As St. James has correctly pointed out, wisdom is different from knowledge. We must
be careful to never think that by accumulating knowledge, we gain Godly wisdom or
can solve problems.
81
In our spiritual life, knowledge must be balanced by wisdom. Knowledge becomes
destructive if it is not balanced by Godly wisdom. Jesus makes this clear when He
says, For unto whomsoever much is given, of him much shall be required (Luke
12:48). Another way of thinking about this verse is For everyone to whom much
knowledge is given, from him much wisdom will be required.
As we have now studied carefully in James 3:13-18, wisdom is closely tied to our
speech.
It is not a coincidence that James 3:1-12 is about taming the tongue, of which he
then discusses wisdom in James 3:13-18.
Just as speech reveals what is in our heart, our speech also reveals our wisdom in
dealing with others and dealing with situations. St. James says that the wise are
meek, pure, willing to yield, gentle, without partiality, peaceable, without hypocrisy,
and produce good fruits.
Before we say anything to anybody, we must ask ourselves the following three ques-
tions: i) Is it true?, ii) Is it necessary?, iii) Is it kind? We should speak only if the
answer is Yes to all three questions.
Silence is an important virtue we must all practice to make us more spiritual and
more wise. The wise person, out of humility, is slow to speak up and speaks only
when called upon and out of necessity.
Silence is a virtue that the church fathers constantly encourage and it is Step 27 in
the Ladder of Divine Ascent by St. John Climacus.
82
The Church fathers often talk about the importance of the virtue of discernment. It
is Step 26 in the Ladder of Divine Ascent by St. John Climacus.
St. John Climicus says, Among beginners, discernment is real self-knowledge; among
those midway along the road to perfection, it is a spiritual capacity to distinguish
unfailingly between what is truly good and what in nature is opposed to the good;
among the perfect, it is a knowledge resulting from divine illumination, which with
its lamp can light up what is dark to others.
St. John Climacus then says, To put the matter more generally, discernment is,
and is recognized to be, as solid understanding of the will of God in all times, in all
places, in all things; and is found only among those who are pure in heart, in body,
and in speech.
7. Conclusion
Those who have earthly wisdom boast in their wisdom (James 3:14)
Those that have heavenly wisdom show their wisdom by good conduct and meek-
ness (James 3:13).
If earthly, then no effort is necessary: Just do what the world tells you and do
what feels right to you.
If heavenly, then we must be diligent and seek the wisdom which comes only from
God. We demonstrate such wisdom by our conduct.
Solomon says, Happy is the man who finds wisdom, and the man who gains
understanding (Proverbs 3:13).
83
The Human Personality - Part I
1. Introduction
The human personality is one of the most difficult but yet one of the most important
things to understand and study in Sunday School service.
It is well known in education that the high school age is the age of personality for-
mation while the college age is that of intimate friendship.
The period from graduation from college until the age of 40 is called the stage of
fertility because it is then that marriage takes place. It is also the time of spiritual,
scientific, and material development, as well as the acquisition of work experience. It
is the period of greatest productivity in life.
This is why is it important to achieve an integrated personality during the early
years of youth in order to reach a maturity that is useful to the individual, his family,
his church, and his country.
A key element in Sunday School service is to help kids achieve their potential in
developing this integrated personality.
The two fundamental factors that contribute to the development and formation of the
human personality are man and his environment. The human personality traits are
molded though the interaction of man with his environment.
Man: The are four basic components of human nature. These are the spirit, the mind,
the soul, and the body.
The Spirit
The spirit is the immaterial part of man. It is through this element that man
transcends his finiteness to penetrate the infinite and what is beyond matter, the
universe, time, nature, and death.
It is only through the spirit that we can have a relationship with God and an
indwelling of God in us. The spirit is what distinguishes man from all other living
84
things. Animals and all other living things do not have a spirit, and thus cannot
have a personal relationship with God.
The spirit is what enables us to move towards God, know Him, love Him, and
ascend towards Him. Our faith in God and its growth is grounded in our spirit.
When a person gets closer to God, we say that he grows spiritually.
The Mind
The Soul
The soul contains the instincts (or psychological motives) that are essential for
the survival of the human species, such as: hunger fear, sex, curiosity, etc.. It
also contains the various psychological needs, such as the need for love, security,
appreciation, and belonging.
St. Paul makes it clear that soul and spirit are in fact different. He says, For
the word of God is living and powerful, and sharper than any two-edged sword,
piercing even to the division of soul and spirit, and of joints and marrow, and is
a discerner of the thoughts and intents of the heart (Hebrews 4:12).
The soul is also responsible for behaviors that reflect these needs, from breast
feeding to other behaviors that are necessary for the survival of man.
The soul is also responsible for the general motives of man: liking, imitating,
etc... It also includes other acquired elements (not inherited) such as feelings,
85
habits, and inclinations.
The soul has undoubtedly a vital role in determining personality traits including
those that can benefit and those that can harm. We must recognize the necessity
of controlling emotions or getting rid of certain drives such as harmful habits,
and acquiring useful ones or of examining tendencies.
The soul also has a vital role in anxiety, depression, confusion, and fear.
The body
3. The Environment
86
family. There is a difference between a child who was educated in a good school and
one who was educated in a school that neglected him.
Childrens games, the media, poverty or wealth, level of education, and geography
are all factors in the development of personality.
Therefore, intentional and unintentional factors in the upbringing of children have a
great impact on determining personality traits. That does not mean, for example,
that poverty or a poor neighborhood are necessarily bad, nor does it mean that
wealth is necessarily good. There are good and bad values and influences in every
environment. What is significant is that all of these factors leave their imprint on the
human personality.
The environment consists of five basic elements. These are
The home, the family, and the neighborhood
preschool, school, and college
The church and its influence
Society and geography (country or state of residence)
The world through travel and communication
The interaction between the elements of the individual and the components of the
environment produces the personality types and determines its traits.
It is important to note that negative aspects of personalities can be changed into
positive ones which are acquired through Christian upbringing in the home, school,
church, and in society. This is one of the critical roles of the Sunday School servant.
4. Conclusion
The Sunday School servant should pay special attention to the development of the
childs life in the 4 basic elements that make up man: the spirit, the mind, the soul,
and the body.
The servant must nourish the spirit with prayer, the mind with reading, the soul
through control, the body through purity, and relationships through holy love.
The servant must also provide a good environment for the kids to grow in Sunday
School and the servant must understand the role and the impact of the childs envi-
ronment (family, school, church, friends, media) in shaping his personality.
87
Discipleship
1. Introduction
The life of discipleship is a very important aspect of a servants life. Servants need to
Discipleship is not just a matter of learning particular facts, but rather, is a way of
life.
88
Discipleship has certain conditions which should be fulfilled in practical aspects of
life. Jesus said to His disciples: If you abide in My word, you are My disciples
indeed (John 8:31). So then simply listening to the words of a teacher does not
mean that one is his disciple. One has to be firmly grounded in his teaching. This
means converting the teachers words into a way of life, so that they become principles
that are firmly established in the one who is learning.
The Lord Jesus gave us a sign and a practical example when He said to His disciples:
love one another as I have loved you, that you also love one another. By this all
men will know that you are My disciples, if you have love for one another. (John
13:34,50).
Here the Lord Jesus is laying down a necessary qualification, a standard, without
which they would not be considered His disciples. No matter how much they had
learned from Him in theory about life. If people did not find in the Lord Jesuss
disciples that mutual love, then those disciples had no right to say that they were
disciples of Christ! It was an essential sign. Just as Christ loved everyone, so His
disciples must be like Him. They, too, should behave and to walk just as He walked
(1 John 2:6).
This reminds us of what the Lord said to the Jews who prided themselves on being
sons of Abraham: If you were Abrahams children, you would do the works of
Abraham (John 8:39). So true discipleship, then, is a discipleship of life which is
manifested in a practical way in a persons way of living.
It also reveals itself as being a discipleship according to a particular teacher who was
himself distinguished by that quality of life and type of teaching. This is why the
Lord Jesus provided examples of people who could not be considered His disciples.
For instance, He said: If anyone comes to Me and does not hate his father and
mother, wife and children, brothers and sisters, yes, and his own life also, he cannot
be My disciple. And whoever does not bear his cross and come after Me cannot
be My disciple. And So likewise, whoever of you does not forsake all that he has
cannot be My disciple (Luke 14:26,27,33).
In this way Christ laid down the foundation for those who would be His disciples,
which was that they should renounce the world in whole hearted dedication to Him,
and love of God, above their friends or family relations.
89
And in taking this point further when His disciple Peter asked him: we have left
all and followed You. Therefore what shall we have? (Matthew 19:27), the Lord
answered, with the same kind of spiritual instruction: And everyone who has left
houses or brothers or sisters or father or mother or wife or children or lands, for My
names sake, shall receive a hundredfold, and inherit eternal life (Matthew 19:29).
So it is a basic principle, then, in discipleship for the Lord, that you leave everything
for His sake, or that you are at least ready in you heart to leave everything, without
feeling any regrets.
This is why the Lord added another necessary condition, which is that: No one,
having put his hand to the plow, and looking back, is fit for the kingdom of God
(Luke 9:62). Being a disciple of the Lord needs steadfastness upon the way, with
no turning back. It requires that a person be ready to endure for the sake of the
Lord and His ministry, and that he should work hard for that purpose. Thus the
Lord says: And whoever does not bear his cross and come after Me cannot be My
disciple (Luke 14:27).
There are other necessary conditions of discipleship such as commitment and hard
work. Anyone who wants to be a disciple of the Lord Jesus must take on what he
has heard and been taught as his duty, and carry it out, thereby transforming what
he has learned in theory into his practical life.
Everyone needs a spiritual counselor and spiritual father to guide them in their spir-
itual life and give them counsel on life in general.
Happy is the person who has a spiritual father who is on the level of giving him
spiritual guidance. What this means is a father of confession who not only listens to
him and recites the absolution, but who also guides and teaches him, and explains the
spiritual road, and who gives his spiritual son or daughter, in his or her confession, the
gift of discernment and discretion. This kind of father is a teacher who has studied
the spiritual path and experienced it who has studied the human soul and come to
know its weaknesses, its impulses, its tendencies and what motivates it. He will also
have studied the attacks of the devil and the tricks, cunning and deceptions of evil
spirits and knew how to overcome them. From such a father, one can learn as a
disciple.
90
In addition to this, it often quite valuable and critical to have spiritual guides in the
form of fellow servants or friends in the Church who are role models in the church
and ones who can give us guidance and spiritual advice according to church teachings
and doctrine.
Some points on spiritual guidance include:
(a) The guide must be secure in his belief, sound in his directives and guidance,
and he should be experienced, otherwise it will be as the Bible says: if the blind
leads the blind, both will fall into a ditch (Matthew 15:14). This is the situation
which our Lord criticized in relation to the Scribes and Pharisees, when He said
that they were blind guides (Matthew 23:16,24). And when He rebuked them
saying: For you travel land and sea to win one proselyte, and when he is won,
you make him twice as much a son of hell as yourselves (Matthew 23:15).
(b) If the spiritual guide should go astray or deviate from his correct position, he
ought not to be obeyed, nor should his guidance be accepted. So a person should
seek guidance, but at the same time keep his eyes open, and make sure that his
conscience feels comfortable with the advice that he receives. The spiritual guide
should not be content just to give instructions but should try to convince, and
reinforce his teaching by verses from the Bible, or by stories and sayings of the
saints.
(c) There is nothing wrong with a person asking his teacher or guide or spiritual
father about something. The disciples of our Lord Jesus Himself used to ask Him
questions, and ask Him to explain things to them. And He used to interpret
things for them and give them parables and mention some of the verses of the
Scriptures and explain them (Luke 24:27). If someone should ever find, though,
that the advice given by his guide is contrary to the word of God, then he should
remember what the Bible says: We ought to obey God rather than men (Acts
5:29).
(d) It is not a good idea for the son or daughter to try to be a copy of his or her
spiritual guide in everything. For what suits their father may not suit them at all.
And perhaps their guides circumstances, capabilities, and psychology might be
completely different from theirs. But what they should do is to take the principles
and apply them, as far as they are able to spiritually, and in accordance with
what is appropriate for them and best suits their character. At the same time, the
91
spiritual guide should not try to cancel out the character of the one who follows
him as a disciple. Nor should the guide make that person follow a course against
his or her will, which can happen if the guide doesnt take into consideration that
persons circumstances, psychology and inclinations. If the spiritual guidance, for
example, involves calmness and solitariness, he shouldnt put pressure on all his
pupils to be like that, for some of them might be sociable in character, and prefer
serving people and being with them, helping them and gaining benefit from them
in doing so.
(e) Also, a person can have more than one guide, so that he can ask them individually
for guidance concerning whatever aspects of life they are particularly experienced
in, providing he does not fall into any contradictions in the advice he is given.
If this or something like this should happen, then he can take it as an area for
questioning, study and finding out more information. He should also be prepared
to confront one view with another, without embarrassment, and to do so without
mentioning any names. The saint Anba Antonius the Great used to take lessons
from all the hermits around him, when he was starting out on his monastic life.
He learned humility from one, silence from another, piety and asceticism from a
third, how to pray and contemplate from a fourth and wisdom from a fifth etc...
(f) A person might also need to make a step by step approach to the things that
he learns from his guide, or from books. Not all the virtues are easy to put
into practice. It probably needs time, and a long time at that, because the soul
is unaccustomed to practicing this new virtue, and might put up opposition to
it. It might also need a long time because of attacks by Satan, who always
tries to obstruct those who are on the road to God, and these people might also
encounter obstacles from their home life or from their surrounding environment,
which hinder their progress on the spiritual road. Something which one grasps
easily, may just as easily be lost! What is important is not that a person just
practices a particular virtue, but that he makes it so firmly rooted in him that
it becomes an integral part of his character. Therefore, every virtue which one
does not persevere at acquiring over a period of time, is not likely to take root
in ones life, and is liable to be inconsistent. So it is not good for a person to
jump rapidly along the spiritual road, and try to cover it too soon, but rather
he should take it calmly and deliberately, in a balanced way, and he must take
92
it one step at a time, until his footsteps are firm and steady, remembering the
apostles advice Not to think [of] [himself] more highly than he ought to think
... (Romans 12:3). Nor must he go rushing to the next particular step, until he
has mastered the one before. And he should not try to put pressure on his guide
or spiritual father to allow him to go too quickly.
(g) One should not consider their spiritual guide merely as a means of implementing
your spiritual desires. Dont present him with decisions that you have already
made up your mind that you are going to carry out, but rather, present him with
your desires, or better still, with suggestions, questions, or aspirations, so that he
can tell you whether they are good for you or not. Do not press him to allow you
to do something, and do not get angry if he doesnt give you permission. If you
do, then the guidance given will be superficial, and in such a situation, you will
become like someone following his own whims, just wanting his father to agree
with him in order to give those whims or fancies spiritual legitimacy.
(h) Before one seeks spiritual guidance, we must pray that God will give your guide
the right thoughts which will be most appropriate for our life. This means that
you pray that Gods will be done in your life, through the guidance of this father
or guide, and that God will lead you to receive the guidance that He wants to
give you, by guiding your spiritual father or guide in what advice to give to you.
(i) Realize that any virtues which you might practice according to your mood may
lead you to seek or feel a false sense of glory. The church father say, If you
find a young man climbing to heaven on the strength of his own fancies, pull
him back down to earth. The point to watch here is that the person is acting
according to his own understanding, and the Bible says: Trust in the Lord with
all your heart and lean not on your own understanding... (Proverbs 3:5). A
person might cling to that path which seems to him to be straight, but by doing
so he might bring upon himself a lot of harm. That road which appears to be so
straight, might well be part of Satan s deception.
(j) But what a dangerous situation it is when someone says that he receives his
knowledge directly from God, and that he learns directly from Christ! Because
of this, that person refuses to learn from others. And at the same time, he cannot
be sure whether that thought which has come to him, is from God or not! The
surprising thing is that people who have said that they have received knowledge
93
directly from God, have not been prophets, nor of the twelve disciples. Nor have
such people been able to say, as the apostle Paul said: For I received from the
Lord that which I also delivered to you... (1 Corinthians 11:23).
(k) Instruction from God may mean learning from divine sources. We learn from
God through the Holy Bible. We learn from our Lord Jesus from His holy life.
Even so, we need somebody to explain these books and these examples to us,
and we need somebody to lead us on the spiritual path. Learning is not just
theoretical understanding, as much as it is actually putting that new knowledge
into practice. If this were not the case, then why did God create teachers and
guides? Why did the Lord say to the disciples: Go therefore and make disciples
of all the nations, teaching them to observe all things that I have commanded
you (Matthew 28:20).
(l) Whoever seeks to learn directly from God, or learn directly from Christ, probably
lacks the humility to accept instruction from a teacher or guide, and has probably
forgotten the words of the apostle: Remember those who rule over you, who
have spoken the word of God to you (Hebrews 13:7). And he goes on to say:
Obey those who rule over you, and be submissive, for they watch out for your
souls, as those who must give account. Let them do so with joy and not with
grief, for that would be unprofitable for you (Hebrews 13:17). St. Paul praised
his disciple Timothy, the bishop, saying: But you have carefully followed my
doctrine, manner of life, purpose, faith, .... (2 Timothy 3:10). If learning from
a teacher were unnecessary, then Paul would just have advised Timothy that his
instruction and way of life would come to him directly from God.
(m) The kind of thought or idea which rejects learning from the church and which
wants to learn directly from God, is not an Orthodox one, nor is it one that is
based on the gospels or the Bible. (By which I mean in the light of the Biblical
texts which we have mentioned, and many others like them, which include all
the verses which speak of teaching, spreading the gospel, guidance and preaching
and the churchs duty to instruct). The spiritual life calls for a humble heart, and
in being a disciple there is humbleness. Anyone who insists on learning directly
from God, might run the risk of falling into pride. And pride can hand him
over as an easy prey to Satan, who will give him whatever teaching he likes. All
those who have ever invented new sects, and all heretics in the history of the
94
Church, have refused to learn from the Church and instead followed their own
ideas, imagining that those ideas were from God. St. Macarius the Great had
the idea of visiting the anchorite fathers in the very heart of the desert, and this
great saint said: I fought that idea for three years to see if it were from God or
not!
(n) Sometimes we imagine that the Holy Spirit speaks to us to do this and that. The
Bible says: ..Beloved, do not believe every spirit, but test the spirits, whether
they are of God; because many false prophets have gone out into the world
(1 John 4:1). And St. Paul also says: Test all things (1 Thessalonians 5:21).
There are probably many sources of ideas which you imagine are from God. There
are your own ideas, or your personal fantasies. And there are those ideas which
have sunk into your mind when it was empty, which have come from things that
you have read or heard before. This may be a trick of the Devil though, and so
you need to proceed slowly and cautiously, to read the Bible, ask questions and
seek guidance. We need to be humble and be disciples, and remember our guides
who have spoken the word of God to us.
95
A Complete Surrender to Gods Will: The Life of Abandonment
1. Introduction
The single most important element in our spiritual life and our service life is total
submission and surrender to Gods will.
Such total surrender to Gods will is referred to by the early Church Fathers as
abandonment.
In order for our service life and personal spiritual life to be fruitful, we must live the
life of abandonment.
There is a prayer called the whatever prayer which represents this notion of aban-
donment. It goes like this:
Jesus Himself prayed the whatever prayer in the Garden of Gethsemane just before
His crucifixion. Jesus prayed, My Father, if this cup cannot pass unless I drink it,
Your will be done.
Gods will was done. The crucifixion led to the Resurrection, which opened the door
of salvation for us.
96
Sometimes we prevent Gods will in our lives when we try to dictate to God what to
do and when. We try to take matters into our own hands and leave God out of the
picture due to our impatience, discouragement, and frustration. When we prevent
God from carrying out His will in our lives, we prevent good things from happening
in our lives. As an example, when a certain woman was sick with tuberculosis, she
languished in bed for months, and the months turned into years. As her body grew
weaker, she stopped struggling. She stopped beseeching God to do as she asked. She
prayed that God do with her life whatever He desired. She prayed, Do with me,
Lord, whatever You want. Whatever You wish. From that point on, she says, she
began to recover.
It is only in the life of total surrender to God, abandonment, that Gods work can
be done and wonderful things can happen in our service life, spiritual life, and life in
general.
When a devout Christian who was told that he was coming down with Alzheimers
disease, he said, All my life I have given everything to God. If He wants my mind,
He can have that too. Whatever Lord, whatever!
There is no limit to what God can do with someone who prays the whatever prayer,
the prayer of total surrender to God. Here are some further examples:
A simple virgin named Mary became the Mother of God when at the Annuncia-
tion she said Be it done to me according to Your will. She prayed the whatever
prayer.
Simon Peter the fisherman became Simon Peter the rock on whose confession of
the faith, that Jesus is Lord, the Church was built.
A tax collector named Matthew became an evangelist who wrote the first of the
four Gospels.
Mary Magdalene, who had been a prostitute, became the first to proclaim the
resurrection of Jesus.
A persecutor named Saul became Paul, the great apostle to the Gentiles and the
greatest missionary who ever lived.
97
The sure and solid foundation of our spiritual life is to give ourselves to God and
put ourselves entirely in His hands, body, and soul. To forget ourselves completely so
that He becomes our whole joy and His pleasure and glory, His being, our only good.
To think of ourselves as objects sold and delivered, for God to do with what He likes.
With this foundation laid, souls have but to spend their entire existence rejoicing
that God is God, surrendering themselves so completely that they are happy to obey
His commands whatever they may be and without question.
Someone came up with the following answer as to why we should pray the whatever
prayer.
Many years ago, when I was trying to make a difficult decision, I turned to God for
guidance. As I prayed, I came up with the following thoughts, and Ive referred to
them again and again when faced with a problem:
God is. God is good.
God is good to me.
God loves me - even more than I love myself.
God knows me - even better than I know myself.
God knows what is best for me
and lovingly works to make that happen.
Since God is good and loves me
and wants the best for me,
I can say a wholehearted yes to what God calls me to
be or do.
There is a great verse by St. Paul in times of anxiety that is consistent with the
whatever prayer. It is, Have no anxiety about anything, but in everything by prayer
and supplication, with thanksgiving, let your requests be made known to God. And
the peace of God which surpasses all understanding will guard your hearts and minds
in Christ Jesus (Philippians 4:6-7).
98
There is a beautiful story about the German theologian Dietrich Bonhoffer. Bonhoffer
was in prison during the second world war in Hitlers Germany. He was separated
from his family until the time of his execution. He was certainly no stranger to
anxiety. But through Christ, he had learned to overcome his anxiety, and he wrote
in his diary these beautiful words: From the moment we wake until we fall asleep,
we must commend our loved ones wholly and unreservedly to God, and leave them
in His hands, transforming our anxiety for them into prayers on their behalf. Total
surrender, and abandonment to God.
In the Old Testament, there is a beautiful example of total surrender from the life
of Hezekiah in 2 Kings 19:14. Hezekiah received a very disturbing letter from his
enemy. We read, And Hezekiah received the letter from the hand of the messengers,
and read it; and Hezekiah went up into the house of the Lord and spread it before
the Lord (2 Kings 19:14). So whatever our invading anxiety is, we can always do as
Hezekiah did, spread it before the Lord in prayer. Total surrender and abandonment
to God.
When St. Paul says, Have no anxiety about anything, he does not mean that we
ought to be careless and indifferent about life. Of course, there are many things that
we ought to be concerned about and be anxious about. But what St. Paul is saying
here is that, after we have done all we can for them, we are to cast these burdens,
every detail of them, upon the Lord, for He cares for you, says the Apostle Peter.
Total surrender and abandonment to God.
6. Conclusion
For us to grow in our spiritual life, we must live the life of abandonment to God.
For our service to become fruitful, we must constantly seek Gods will and serve in
total obedience and surrender (abandonment) to God.
We close with this prayer: Lord, help me not to dread what might happen, not to
worry about what could happen, but to accept what does happen. Because You care
for me and You love me more than I love myself. Whatever Lord, whatever! Amen.
99
Knowing Gods Will
Introduction
Knowing and doing Gods will is essential for our spiritual journey. It is the only way
we can experience the fullness of God in our life.
Does the Bible give us a formula for discovering Gods will? The scriptures do not
describe a precise approach for finding Gods plan. However, they clearly indicate
our need to rely on our Lord Jesus for guidance. We are to rationally seek His will in
our lives (our part), and we must depend on the Lord Jesus for guidance (His part).
The reason that there is no formula for discovering Gods will is because God does
not want to lead us with a bridle like a horse or a mule that has to be reigned
in. He wants to lead us intelligently by the Holy Spirit according to the Word. As
Psalm 32:8-9 says, I will instruct you and teach you in the way you should go; I will
guide you with My eye. Do not be like the horse or like the mule, which have no
understanding, which must be harnessed with bit and bridle, else they will not come
near you.
There are many, many ways God can reveal His will to us. We certainly cannot
enumerate all of them because God cannot be fully comprehended or understood,
but we we describe below several steps in discovering Gods will.
The first step in knowing Gods will is that we have to be in harmony with the Bible,
the Church, and the church teachings. We have to love what the Bible says and what
the church says, and believe it is correct and the absolute truth. Psalm 40:8 says, I
delight to do Your will, Your law is within my heart.
The Bible is the cornerstone for knowing Gods will. If we read and meditate on the
Bible daily, we will have a new way of thinking. When we are seeking Gods guidance
in a given situation, we will have the advantage of recalling what the scripture says
about this situation.
100
The Bible is Gods revelation and love letter to us. Without the Bible, we would
not know about salvation, for example.
The Bible describes Gods moral values such as the Ten Commandments. Isaiah
8:20 says, To the law and to the testimony! If they do not speak according to
the word, it is because there is no light in them.
The Bible provides spiritual guidance and truths that will come into play when
making decisions. Psalm 119:105 says Your word is a Lamp to my feet and a
light to my path.
The Bible is where Gods promises are revealed.
In order to know Gods will, we must first have the desire and be willing to do
Gods will. To do Gods will, we must surrender our life to Jesus Christ. When we
surrender our life to Jesus, there is a merging of wills, and His will becomes our will.
In the Garden of Gethsemane, Jesus gives us a great example, O My Father, if it
is possible, let this cup pass from Me; nevertheless, not as I will, but as You will
(Matthew 26:39).
Knowing Gods will is not relevant for us if we have no desire to do it.
God most often reveals His will when we turn our life over to Him and totally de-
pend on Him for guidance. Surrender requires developing an intimate and faithful
relationship with Jesus.
Thus, in order to know Gods will, we must first have the desire to do His will, and
this comes by developing a deep and intimate relationship with Him and surrendering
our life completely to Him.
Jesus is a great example of surrender. He came to do His Fathers will. For I have
come down from heaven, not to do My own will, but the will of Him who sent Me
(John 6:38).
If we are willing to do Gods will, God will reveal His will to us. If anyone wills to
do His will, he shall know concerning the doctrine, whether it is from God or whether
I speak on My own authority (John 7:17).
St. James tells us that we should not be planning our life and that we should be
trying to do Gods will. Come now, you who say, Today or tomorrow we will go to
101
such and such a city, spend a year there, buy and sell, and make a profit; whereas
you do not know what will happen tomorrow. For what is your life? It is even a
vapor that appears for a little time and then vanishes away. Instead you ought to
say, If the Lord wills, we shall live and do this or that (James 4:13-15).
In the Book of Jeremiah, we read that Gods will is much more beneficial than our
own. For I know that thoughts that I think toward you, says the Lord, thoughts of
peace and not of evil, to give you a future and a hope (Jeremiah 29:11).
Also, we read in Proverbs that our will leads to sorrow, death, and destruction. There
is a way that seems right to a man. But its end is the way of death (Proverbs 16:25).
Prayer is perhaps the main key to knowing Gods will. There is nothing more personal
to God than prayer. Prayer is our dialogue with Jesus. We can only get to know Him
personally through prayer.
With Gods infinite knowledge, He already knows what we need. However, we still
need to ask God for His help in a specific situation because we need the spiritual
discipline of asking in order to be reminded that everything happens through His
will.
Jesus says, If you Ask anything in My name, I will do it (John 14:14). Thus, God
guarantees us that His will always be done if we seek it for our life.
When we pray for guidance or for anything, we should always ask in faith. St. James
says, If any of you lacks wisdom, let him ask of God, who gives to all liberally and
without reproach, and it will be given to him. But let him ask in faith, with no
doubting for he who doubts is like a wave of the sea driven and tossed by the wind
(James 1:5-6).
Praying for others also facilitates Gods will to happen in our lives as well as the
lives of those we pray for. Confess your trespasses to one another, and pray for one
another, that you may be healed. The effective, fervent prayer of a righteous man
avails much (James 5:16).
We should always have confidence that if we ask anything in prayer according to
Gods will, He will hear us. Now this is the confidence that we have in Him, that if
we ask anything according to His will, He hears us (1 John 5:14).
102
4. Do What Lies Nearest You First
A great way of knowing Gods will is to look around us and use our circumstances
and the opportunities that come our way and are most feasible and realistic for us.
For example, we can serve and minister in our own church rather than look far away
and try to serve elsewhere. We should seek friendships and relationships that are
near by and within our grasp. We should look for opportunities that are close by.
God puts us in certain places for a reason, to carry out His will. Gods will is always
close by.
We should do things step by step and not try and do too much at once, or look too
far ahead into the future. God usually only reveals the part of His will for us that is
necessary at the time, and thus we should only focus on that and not extrapolate out
into the future. Examples include where to live, children, friends, career, marriage,
relationships, service, etc...
In John 16:12, we read that Jesus has many things to tell us, but we cant bear them
now. Jesus says, I still have many thing to say to you, but you cannot bear them
now (John 16:12). We should do what we can do and what we know to be correct,
right now. Then He will show us what to do next.
In Proverbs 3:6, we read In all your ways acknowledge Him and He will direct your
path
Luke 16:10 tells us to be faithful in the least first and God will give you more. We
read, He who is faithful in what is least is also faithful in much (Luke 16:10).
In Jeremiah 12:5 we read that if we dont obey God in the small things how will we
obey during the big test? If you have run with footmen and they have wearied you,
then how can you contend with horses? (Jeremiah 12:5).
5. Always Take the Option that Will Bring the Most Glory to God
103
The decisions we make in our daily life indicate whose side we are on.
Mark 9:42 says Dont hurt ever, the least of Gods children.
One of the greatest ways of knowing Gods will is to seek counsel from parents,
priests, church elders, mentors, godly people, or trusted Christian friends. The Book
of Proverbs says, Prepare plans by consultation (Proverbs 20:18).
When seeking such counsel, we will most often find Gods will coming in the form
of consistent advice from several different sources. In Proverbs 11:14, we read that
There is safety in a multitude of counselors.
It is good to seek several sources of counsel when pondering a decision or issue in life.
We read, In abundance of counselors there is victory (Proverbs 24:6).
We must however, be careful with who we counsel with. St. Paul says that many
people have a form of Godliness, but they deny its power (2 Timothy 3:5-8). St.
Paul also spoke of many false teachers in these verses.
Psalms 1:1-2 says Dont follow the counsel of the ungodly. Jeremiah 17:5-10 says
cursed is the man that puts his trust in man.
A good Christian counselor should always point us to a Thus says the Lord. A
mans counsel is sweet to his friend (Proverbs 27:9).
Some of the areas that need great Christian counsel are dating, marriage, relation-
ships, purity, choosing a career, choosing where to live or where to go to school,
children, choosing friends, relationships with parents, service, and Church doctrine.
Some examples of counselors: Timothy and St. Paul, St. Antony and St. Athanasius.
These are examples of mentor and disciple. The Apostles Council in Jerusalem (Acts
15) is an example of Christian counsel provided by the Church.
104
7. Listen to the Voice of the Holy Spirit
Gods will is revealed to us many times through the voice of the Holy Spirit who
speaks to us. When we are willing to listen, we can hear His voice.
When we are at peace and ready to do Gods will, we hear the voice of the Holy
Spirit. It is a peaceful voice within that we keep hearing until we have conviction to
do Gods will.
Isaiah 30:20-21 tells us that though we go through adversity and affliction, God will
talk to us. We read, And though the Lord gives you the bread of adversity and the
water of affliction, yet your teachers will not be moved into a corner anymore, but
your eyes shall see your teachers. Your ears shall hear a word behind you, saying,
This is the way, walk in it, whenever you turn to the right hand or whenever you
turn to the left (Isaiah 30:20-21).
That still small voice that makes us feel uncomfortable sometimes is the Holy Spirit
speaking to us. The voice that makes us feel peace and comfort is the Holy Spirit
speaking to us. In 1 Kings 19:11-12, we read that God doesnt speak to us in a
earthquake or fire, but in a still small voice. Then He said, Go out, and stand
on the mountain before the Lord, And behold, the Lord passed by, and a great and
strong wind tore into the mountains and broke the rocks in pieces before the Lord,
but the Lord was not in the wind; and after the wind and earthquake, but the Lord
was not in the earthquake; and after the earthquake a fire, but the Lord was not in
the fire; and after the fire a still small voice (1 Kings 19-11-12).
Patience is a key virtue in knowing Gods will. As God is patient with us, we must
also be patient in knowing and discovering Gods will. Patience is a fruit of the Holy
Spirit.
Patience requires that we not jump to conclusions and make spontaneous, impulsive,
emotional, and irrational decisions. Decisions made under those circumstances can
never be Gods will.
We read in Proverbs, Wait on the Lord, and He will save you (Proverbs 20:22).
In Psalm 37:4-7, we read, Delight yourself also in the Lord, and He shall give you
the desires of your heart. Commit your way to the Lord. Trust also in Him, and He
105
shall bring it to pass. He shall bring forth your righteousness as the light, and your
justice as the noonday. Rest in the Lord, and wait patiently for Him.
God cannot forget us or forget our problems or struggles. God thinks about us
constantly. Isaiah 49:15-16 says, Can a woman forget her nursing child, and not
have compassion on the son of her womb? Surely they may forget; yet I will not
forget you. See I have inscribed you on the palms of My hands; your walls are
continually before Me.
In Revelation 14:12, we read Here is the patience of the saints; here are those who
keep the commandments of God and the faith of Jesus. Thus, those who overcome
the beast and his mark have an identifying characteristic of patience. They keep
Gods commandments and they humbly wait for Jesus.
Doors opening and doors closing is perhaps our most common experience in learning
and knowing Gods will. We have all experienced open and closed doors. This is
perhaps the easiest way that God can clearly reveal His will to us.
We have to learn from our experiences in life on which doors open and which doors
close so that we can better understand Gods will. When we encounter obstacles in
life, we should learn from it, and when we see things going smoothly, we ought to
learn from it as well.
When God opens a door for us to accomplish His will, it is accompanied by peace,
joy, security and Gods confidence, no obstacles or friction whatsoever, and victory.
When God closes doors it is quite often accompanied by friction, obstacles, anger,
loss of peace and joy, hostility, injustice, sadness, loss of hope, and despair.
When a door becomes closed for us, we should not fight it. Things will become worse.
When a door is opened, we should go in and not fear what is on the other side.
St. Paul tells us to watch for open and closed doors in our life. We read, Further-
more, when I came to Troas to preach Christs gospel, and a door was opened to me
by the Lord (2 Corinthians 2:12).
When doors become open for us, we should not worry about what is on the other
side of the door. We move forward with our eyes on Jesus and watch for His lead and
make sure that we do not violate His Word as we move forward.
106
In Isaiah 45:1-3, we read that God will open doors and break in pieces the gates to
accomplish His will for our life. We can count on it! We read, Thus says the Lord
to His anointed, to Cyrus whose right hand I have held - to subdue nations before
him and loose the armor of kings, to open before him the double doors, so that the
gates will not be shut: I will go before you and make the crooked places straight; I
will break in pieces the gates of bronze and cut the bars of iron. I will give you the
treasures of darkness and hidden riches of secret places, that you may know that I,
the Lord, who call you by your name, am the God of Israel (Isaiah 45:1-3).
Even the mighty city and nation of Babylon was no match for our Lord. All through-
out the Bible we can see incident after incident of Gods will being accomplished by
the opening and closing of doors. Here are some more examples:
Jonah - God swiftly closed the door to Tarshish when Jonah disobeyed God, and
later opened the door to Nineveh when Jonah repented and obeyed.
Balaam - God closed the door on Balaam when Balaam disobeyed God, and we
read And the Angel of the Lord took His stand in the way as an adversary
against him (Numbers 22:22).
Saul - Jesus closed the door on Saul on his way to Damascus and this closed door
transformed Sauls life.
Moses - God opened the doors for Moses and the Israelites to leave Egypt.
Peter - Jesus forgave Peter for his denials and opened the doors for him (John
21) by forgiving him and asking him to tend His sheep.
One of the methods that God uses in opening and closing doors and to accomplish
His will is that He turns peoples hearts. The turning of hearts is a very common
device God uses to accomplish His will.
God hardened the heart of Pharaoh, and in the end God was glorified and the
Israelites were freed.
On Palm Sunday, as Jesus rode through Jerusalem, He was treated like a king,
and then moments later, their hearts were turned and Jesus was treated like a
criminal.
Some verses showing Gods control on the heart are:
just as it is written, God gave them a spirit of stupor, eyes to see not and ears
to hear not, down to this very day. (Romans 11:8).
107
In Mark 4:11-12, we read And He was saying to them, To you has been given
the mystery of the kingdom of God; but those who are outside get everything in
parables, in order that while seeing, they may see and not perceive; and while
hearing, they may hear and not understand lest they return and be forgiven.
In 2 Thessalonians 2:11, we read And for this reason God will send upon them
a deluding influence so that they might believe what is false.
In Romans 9:18, we read So then He has mercy on whom He desires, and He
hardens whom He desires.
In Exodus 4:21, we read And the Lord said to Moses, When you go back to
Egypt see that you perform before Pharaoh all the wonders which I have put in
your power; but I will harden his heart so that he will not let the people go. See
also Exodus 7:3; 9:12; 10:1; 11:10; 14:4 where God hardens Pharaohs heart.
In Exodus 8:32, we read But Pharaoh hardened his heart this time also, and he
did not let the people go.
In Exodus 14:17, we read And as for Me, behold, I will harden the hearts of
the Egyptians so that they will go in after them; and I will be honored through
Pharaoh and all his army, through his chariots and his horsemen.
In Deuteronomy 2:30, we read But Sihon king of Heshbon was not willing for
us to pass through his land; for the Lord your God hardened his spirit and made
his heart obstinate, in order to deliver him into your hand, as he is today.
In 2 Chronicles 25:20, we read But Amaziah would not listen, for it was from
God, that He might deliver them into the hand of Joash because they had sought
the gods of Edom.
In Isaiah 6:10, we read Render the hearts of this people insensitive, their ears
dull, and their eyes dim, lest they see with their eyes, hear with their ears,
understand with their hearts, and return and be healed.
In Deuteronomy 29:4, we read, Yet to this day the Lord has not given you a
heart to know, nor eyes to see, nor ears to hear.
In Jeremiah 24:7, we read, And I will give them a heart to know Me, for I am
the Lord; and they will be My people, and I will be their God, for they will
return to Me with their whole heart.
In 1 Samuel 10:9, we read, Then it happened when he turned his back to leave
108
Samuel, God changed his heart; and all those signs came about on that day.
We must be careful with this issue of open and shut doors, because Satan himself
can also open and shut doors of opportunity. St. Paul says that Satan himself
transforms himself into an angel of light (2 Corinthians 11:14).
After we have gone though all these steps, now we move forward in the Lord. We
must have courage that the Lord is with us! (Joshua 1:5-6)
You have wholly followed the Lord. He has kept you alive to do His will. Now go
after it! Be like Joshua and say Give me this mountain! (Joshua 14:9-12).
109
Holy Zeal
Introduction
What is Holy Zeal? Zeal is a fire that burns: Holy zeal is a fire burning in the heart
of a believer which impels him, with great enthusiasm, to strive his hardest for the
purpose of saving others and building the Kingdom. This is the kind of zeal we should
have in our service life and Sunday School service in particular.
Just as it was said about our Lord and Master, that He desires all men to be saved
and to come to the knowledge of the truth (1 Timothy 2:4) so too, the person who
is aglow with holy zeal wants everybody to be saved.
He not only wants it, but works for it with all his might and all his feelings, without
letting up, like David the prophet, who said: Surely I will not go into the chamber
of my house, Or go up to the comfort of my bed; I will not give sleep to my eyes
Or slumber to my eyelids, Until I find a place for the Lord, A dwelling place for the
Mighty One of Jacob (Psalm. 132:3-5).
Thus someone whom holy zeal has set ablaze, never lets up or rests, until he finds a
place for the Lord in the heart of everyone, so that by all possible means he might
save some (1 Corinthians 9:22).
Holy Zeal is that fire about which our Lord Jesus Christ said: I came to send fire
on the earth, and how I wish it were already kindled! (Luke 12:49)
How beautiful are the words of the Psalm: Who makes His angels spirits, His min-
isters a flames of fire (Psalm 104:4).
It is impossible to have zeal and spiritually burn within if God is not the number one
priority in our life. For God to be the number one priority in our life, we must
develop an intimate relationship with Jesus and make that relationship the most
important relationship in our life, through prayer, reading the Bible, coming to
church, taking communion, living a life of purity, and doing good deeds.
110
surrender our life to Jesus Christ, putting everything in His hands and letting
Him be in charge of our life in every possible way.
truly feel that the cares of the world are secondary to God in our life, including
our careers, school, making money, entertainment, worldly pleasures, and even
family.
always reorganize our schedule to make our service to God our number one pri-
ority, and then honestly carry out the tasks that we were assigned to do.
The only way a person can fly in their spiritual life, is to literally unload all of their
troubles and spread all of their concerns, troubles, and anxieties before Jesus.
In the Old Testament, there is a beautiful example from the life of Hezekiah in 2 Kings
19:14. Hezekiah received a very disturbing letter from his enemy. It was the kind of
letter that would cause a person much anxiety. We read, And Hezekiah received the
letter from the hand of the messengers, and read it; and Hezekiah went up into the
house of the Lord and spread it before the Lord (2 Kings 19:14). So whatever our
invading concern or anxiety is, we can always do as Hezekiah did, spread it before
the Lord in prayer.
St. Paul says, Have no anxiety about anything, but in everything by prayer and
supplication, with thanksgiving, let your requests be made known to God. And the
peace of God which surpasses all understanding will guard your hearts and minds
in Christ Jesus Finally, brethren, whatever things are true, and whatever things are
noble, whatever things are just, whatever things are lovely, whatever things are of
good report, if there is any virtue and if there is anything praiseworthy - meditate on
these things (Philippians 4:6-8).
The person who constantly carries their troubles and problems becomes enslaved to
them and is unable to move forward and grow spiritually. Their troubles always weigh
them down like chains, and their troubles always increase, eventually choking them.
The zeal of a servant can be assessed by the parable of the sower. Seeds either fall by
the wayside (lacking understanding or interest in spirituality), on stony ground (no
roots to our spirituality), thorns (we get choked up from the cares and problems of
this world), or on good ground.
111
Jesus says, Come to Me all you who labor and are heavy laden, and I will give you
rest (Matthew 11:28). And if we have no rest today, it is because we do not bring
our problems and troubles to Jesus. We try to carry them alone, or we take them
elsewhere, and they literally choke us.
Now it is interesting when we look at the life of Jesus, we see that He Himself was
certainly no stranger to anxieties or concerns. He was terribly anxious, for example,
in the Garden of Gethsemane right before His crucifixion. Just before His crucifixion
recall that Jesus was so anxious that His sweat became like great drops of blood
(Luke 22:44). And we hear Jesus spreading His anxieties before the Lord in prayer
in Gethsemane, as He says to God the Father, Now My soul is troubled (Matthew
26:38). Then He said, Father save Me from this hour. Remove this cup from Me
(Matthew 26:39). But then after prayer came relinquishment (surrender), as He was
able to say, Nevertheless, not My will but Yours be done heavenly Father (Matthew
26:39). So we see how Jesus dealt with His anxiety. First there is prayer, then there
is relinquishment, and then comes peace, as Jesus says, Father, forgive them for
they know not what they do (Luke 23:34). Father into Your hands I commend My
spirit (Luke 23:46).
So we see the steps that Jesus teaches us in dealing with anxiety, as He did in the
Garden of Gethsemane:
David the Psalmist followed these three steps. Nearly every Psalm he wrote starts
out with prayer about his anxieties, then he surrenders his life to God, then he finds
peace.
In addition to our problems, we must not get caught up in our day to day affairs and
let worldly cares consume our time, thinking and energy. Such worldly cares include
taking care of things in the house, food, our jobs, school, clothing, entertainment,
computers, hobbies, etc...
112
the peace that comes from the Holy Spirit. It is the peace from God that surpasses
all understanding as St. Paul says.
We must have peace in our life to be filled with Holy Zeal. This peace can only come
when we have a real and loving relationship with Jesus Christ.
We read, Turn away from evil and do good; seek peace and pursue it (Psalm 34:14).
Also, Great peace have those who love your law; nothing can make them stumble
(Psalm 119:165).
The person who is peaceful is slow to anger, is very careful with their words, and
seeks to build up and encourage.
The person who has true inner peace remains peaceful when criticized, insulted,
slandered, despised, or unjustly treated.
The person who has inner peace is also a peacemaker. Jesus says, Blessed are the
peacemakers for they shall be called sons of God.
So a person becomes peaceful when he loves the law of God, as David says. Also, a
person becomes peaceful when he trusts in the Lord. You keep him in perfect peace
whose mind is stayed on you, because he trusts in you (Isaiah 26:3).
Setting our sights on God gives us peace. For to set the mind on the flesh is death,
but to set the mind on the Spirit is life and peace (Romans 8:6).
St. Paul said For the kingdom of God is not a matter of eating and drinking but
of righteousness and peace and joy in the Holy Spirit. Whoever thus serves Christ
is acceptable to God and approved by men. So then let us pursue what makes for
peace and for mutual upbuilding (Romans 14:17-19).
Jesus says My peace I leave with you; my peace I give to you. Not as the world
gives do I give to you. Let not your hearts be troubled, neither let them be afraid
(John 14:27).
Jesus says I have said these things to you, that in me you may have peace. In the
world you will have tribulation. But take heart; I have overcome the world (John
16:33).
4. Contentment
113
For a servant to move higher on the spiritual ladder, they must be content with their
life. We cannot have zeal while we are resentful, envious, jealous, feeling insecure, or
bitter. We must be content with our circumstances and conditions.
St. Paul says, Not that I speak from want, for I have learned to be content in
whatever circumstances I am (Philippians 4:11). St. Paul goes on to say, I know
how to get along with humble means, and I also know how to live in prosperity; in
any and every circumstance I have learned the secret of being filled and going hungry,
both of having abundance and suffering need (Philippians 4:12).
We read Some soldiers were questioning Him, saying, what about us, what shall
we do? And He said to them, Do not take money from anyone by force, or accuse
anyone falsely, and be content with your wages (Luke 3:14).
St. Paul saysBecause of the surpassing greatness of the revelations, for this reason,
to keep me from exalting myself, there was given me a thorn in the flesh, a messenger
of Satan to torment meto keep me from exalting myself! Concerning this I implored
the Lord three times that it might leave me. And He has said to me, My grace
is sufficient for you, for power is perfected in weakness. Most gladly, therefore, I
will rather boast about my weaknesses, so that the power of Christ may dwell in
me. Therefore I am well content with weaknesses, with insults, with distresses, with
persecutions, with difficulties, for Christs sake; for when I am weak, then I am strong
(2 Corinthians 12:7-10).
Thus, the person who is truly content remains content when insulted, slandered,
criticized, or unjustly treated.
St. Paul also says But godliness actually is a means of great gain when accompanied
by contentment. For we have brought nothing into the world, so we cannot take
anything out of it either. If we have food and covering, with these we shall be
content. But those who want to get rich fall into temptation and a snare and many
foolish and harmful desires which plunge men into ruin and destruction (2 Timothy
6:6-9).
St. Paul again says Make sure that your character is free from the love of money,
being content with what you have; for He Himself has said, I will never desert you,
nor will I ever forsake you (Hebrews 13:5).
114
The true servant greatly seeks a balance between faith and works in their life. They
heed the words of St. James in the verse faith without works is dead.
Doing good deeds and being active in church works is a great tool for building up
ones spiritual zeal. This is why we must encourage servants to seek those who need
help in various ways whether it be in school, finding a job, writing a letter, listening
to ones problems or concerns, etc... These are all examples of good works and deeds.
St. Paul says, And let us consider how to stir up one another to love and good
works (Hebrews 10:24).
Examples of works include physical work for the church, such as cleaning, mainte-
nance, cooking, or other needs. These are great tools for building ones zeal. They
can serve as igniters and energizers.
Giving to others is one of the greatest deeds we can do. We must learn and enjoy
giving to others. Jesus said, It is more blessed to give than to receive (Acts 20:35).
Those people who truly follow Jesus are above all, givers. Giving is therapy for the
soul. It keeps our hearts open to others, and sensitive to their needs. Giving is the
secret of a mentally and emotionally healthy life.
We need to give for our mental and physical well being. A child becomes an adult
when he or she stops taking and starts giving. In fact one of the best signs of maturity
is the ability to give. So Jesus was indeed correct when He said, It is more blessed
to give than to receive.
During a church retreat once, one of the servants complained to the priest that Chris-
tianity is one continual give, give, give! And the priest replied, Thank you for the
finest definition of Christianity I have ever heard! Christianity is indeed one constant
and continual give, give, give. Thats the way it all began. God gave, He gave His
only Son. His Son gave, He gave His life on the cross so that we might have eternal
life. His disciples gave. They left their homes and their businesses to devote them-
selves full time to Christ as spreaders of His good news throughout the world. And
nearly all of the twelve apostles died a martyrs death. They gave their very lives for
the Lord Jesus. And through the ages, the the work of Christ has prospered to the
extent that Christians have been willing to give, give, give.
6. Encouragement
115
Encouragement is key tool for building zeal. We must learn to encourage one another.
We must learn in our service life to be positive thinkers and always view the cup as
half full rather than half empty.
It is much easier to be negative rather than positive. Negativity destroys and tears
down. We have to practice and gain the spiritual virtue of encouragement. The right
encouragement can really ignite and elevate ones spiritual level. Encouragement is
what is needed to build Holy Zeal.
Brothers, I do not consider myself yet to have taken hold of it. But one thing I
do: Forgetting what is behind and straining toward what is ahead, I press on toward
the goal to win the prize for which God has called me heavenward in Christ Jesus
(Philippians 3:13-14).
Do not let your hearts be troubled. Trust in God; trust also in me. In my Fathers
house are many rooms; if it were not so, I would have told you. I am going there to
prepare a place for you. And if I go and prepare a place for you, I will come back
and take you to be with me that you also may be where I am. You know the way to
the place where I am going (John 14:1-4).
Let us not become weary in doing good, for at the proper time we will reap a harvest
if we do not give up (Galatians 6:9).
Finally, brethren, whatever things are true, and whatever things are noble, whatever
things are just, whatever things are lovely, whatever things are of good report, if
there is any virtue and if there is anything praiseworthy - meditate on these things
(Philippians 4:8).
Concluding Remarks
If we are not hot, then we must be either cold or lukewarm. Lukewarmness is the
most dangerous spiritual condition to be in. Jesus says, So then, because you are
lukewarm, and neither cold nor hot, I will vomit you out of My mouth (Revelation
3:16).
We become lukewarm towards God when we make worldly things our priority in
life. Jesus warns us of this when He says, Everyone therefore who acknowledges
Me before others, I also will acknowledge before My Father in heaven; but whoever
116
denies Me before others, I also will deny before my Father in heaven. Do not think
that I have come to bring peace to the earth; I have not come to bring peace, but
a sword. For I have come to set a man against his father, and a daughter against
her mother, and a daughter-in-law against her mother-in-law; and ones foes will be
members of ones own household. Whoever loves father or mother more than Me is
not worthy of me; and whoever loves son or daughter more than Me is not worthy
of me; and whoever does not take up the cross and follow Me is not worthy of Me.
Those who find their life will lose it, and those who lose their life for My sake will
find it. Whoever welcomes you welcomes Me, and whoever welcomes Me welcomes
the one who sent Me (Matthew 10:32-40).
117
Spiritual Maturity
Introduction
Spiritual maturity a key element in service. The servant who is spiritually mature
is a fruitful servant and a great ambassador for Jesus Christ. Here, we describe the
major criteria in spiritual maturity.
One cannot grow or mature spiritually without a deep, intimate, and real relationship
with Jesus Christ. This is by far the most important and fundamental element in
service. Jesus says, without Me, you can do nothing (John 15:5).
What does it mean to have a relationship with Christ? There are five key elements:
118
Jesus says, Whoever eats My flesh and drinks My blood has eternal life, and
I will raise him up at the last day (John 6:54). Christ abides in us when we
take Holy Communion, as He says, He who eats My flesh and drinks My blood
abides in Me, and I in him (John 6:56). Repentence and confession is another
essential aspect of our relationship with Christ.
Works - Our relationship with Christ develops as we do good works and good
deeds. Works puts our relationship with Christ into action. Our relationship
with Christ is proved and demonstrated by our works and actions. St. James
says, But do you want to know, O foolish man, that faith without works is
dead? (James 2:20)
Fasting - Fasting and prayer go hand in hand, and our relationship with Christ
cannot be fully developed without fasting. Jesus consistently puts fasting and
prayer hand in hand in the Gospels, as He repeatedly says, However, this kind
does not go out except by prayer and fasting (Matthew 17:21).
The person who is spiritually mature always puts others before himself. He tries
to comfort others first before he seeks comfort for himself. The sacrificial person is
content with being last. Let nothing be done through selfish ambition or conceit,
but in lowliness of mind let each esteem others better than himself (Philippians 2:3).
The spiritually mature person is one who is totally unselfish, and always seeks what
is best for the church service through prayer and guidance, showing total impartiality
at all times. I charge you before God and the Lord Jesus Christ and the elect angels
that you observe these things without prejudice, doing nothing with partiality (1
Timothy 5:21).
One of the greatest signs of spiritual maturity is when a person stops taking and
starts giving. Jesus said, It is more blessed to give than to receive (Acts 20:35).
119
of the Jews (Acts 20:19). Also, St. Paul says, Therefore, as the elect of God,
holy and beloved, put on tender mercies, kindness, humility, meekness, longsuffering
(Colossians 3:12).
The one who is emotionally unstable can never be spiritual mature. Spiritually mature
people are predictable, strong, and steady. They dont go up and down in their moods
not do they have mood swings. They are not pouters, nor do they have instantaneous
flaring and then calming of temper. For let not that man suppose that he will receive
anything from the Lord; he is a double-minded man, unstable in all his ways (James
1:7-8). Also, we read as also in all his epistles, speaking in them of these things, in
which are some things hard to understand, which untaught and unstable people twist
to their own destruction, as they do also the rest of the Scriptures (2 Peter 3:16).
The spiritually mature person does not go in and out of depression. For it is quite
often the case that the person who is depressed is greatly lacking and may be weak in
his relationship with Christ. Christ is the one who puts us in our right mind. Then
they came to Jesus, and saw the one who had been demon-possessed and had the
legion, sitting and clothed and in his right mind (Mark 5:15).
120
4. Wisdom
Wisdom is an important gift from God that is vital in effective and fruit-bearing
service.
Wisdom is given to those who servants who are truly are humble and obedient, and
servants who seek an honest and deep intimate relationship with Jesus Christ.
The wise person always sees the big picture in service, handles matters with care,
love, and respect.
The wise person knows when to speak and when to say silent and how to diffuse a
difficult situation with the right speech or actions. The wise person always knows
how to unite people and be a peacemaker.
The wise person has a sharp and alert conscience, which is inspired by the Holy Spirit,
and speaks as the Holy Spirit commands him.
In the book of Proverbs, we are encouraged to seek wisdom, as Solomon says, Wis-
dom is the principal thing; therefore get wisdom. And in all your getting, get under-
standing (Proverbs 4:7).
Likewise in the New Testament, we are also expected to walk in wisdom, as the
Apostle Paul says, See then that you walk circumspectly, not as fools but as wise,
redeeming the time, because the days are evil (Ephesians 5:15). We also read,
Therefore do not be unwise, but understand what the will of the Lord is (Ephesians
5:17).
St. John Climacus says, To put the matter more generally, discernment is, and is
recognized to be, as solid understanding of the will of God in all times, in all places,
in all things; and is found only among those who are pure in heart, in body, and in
speech.
5. Unity
The spiritually mature servant is one who always strives for unity and harmony in
their service, and in their relationships with others.
121
Spiritual unity is a major component of service. Jesus met with his disciples often
in the Upper Room. Also, we read in Acts 1:14, They continued with one accord in
prayer and supplication. This is a key verse for unity in service.
Also, in Acts 2:1, we read, When the day of Pentecost had fully come, they were
with one accord in one place. These two verses serve as model verses for unity in
our service.
The desire for unity comes when we are filled with the Holy Spirit, as were the
disciples before and after Pentecost. Thus, we become united in our service when our
spiritual life is alive and inflamed by the Holy Spirit.
Saint Paul also says fulfill my joy in being like-minded, having the same love, being
of one accord, of one mind. Let nothing be done through selfish ambition or conceit,
but in lowliness of mind let each esteem others better than himself (Philippians
2:2-3). Saint Paul tells us here that unity in service requires humility and obedience.
The servant who strives for unity is also a peacemaker. Peacemakers are mentioned
in the beatitudes, where Jesus says, blessed are the peacemakers, for they shall be
called sons of God (Matthew 5:9).
Thus, the servant who stirs up divisions, quarrels, arguments, or babbles things with-
out knowing their meaning (idle babblings), is one who is not seeking unity in
service. St. Paul says, O Timothy! Guard what was committed to your trust,
avoiding the profane and idle babblings and contradictions of what is falsely called
knowledge (1 Timothy 6:20).
Indeed, Saint Paul says, But avoid foolish and ignorant disputes, knowing that they
generate strife. And a servant of the Lord must not quarrel but be gentle to all, able
to teach, patient, in humility correcting those who are in opposition, if God perhaps
will grant them repentance, so that they may know the truth, and that they may
come to their senses and escape the snare of the devil, having been taken captive by
him to do his will (2 Timothy 2:23-26).
6. Obedience
122
Impartiality in Service
1. Introduction
A critical part of service is to be impartial with all those whom we serve, that is, to
be unbiased, just, and fair.
The impartial servant is one who is spiritually mature and one who is able to always
use wisdom in their relationship with others. It is the person who seeks unity and
oneness in service. It is a person whose actions and decisions are guided by the Holy
Spirit. Impartiality is a sign of unselfishness and humility.
Partiality creates division, disharmony, and discontent from others in our service.
St. Paul makes this issue abundantly clear when he says in Romans 2:11, For there
is no partiality with God. He says this in the context of salvation for Jews and
Gentiles.
God doesnt look at the person, but at his conduct to see if it is righteous or un-
righteous. The issue is not whether a person is poor or rich, Jew or Gentile, man or
woman, educated or uneducated, wise or foolish. Gods sentence is based strictly on
character as manifested by our deeds. He is impartial and cannot be bribed. This is
the way we should all serve.
Impartiality by God means that God does not look at the outward appearance but
rather at ones heart. First Samuel 16:7 says, Man looks at the outward appearance,
but the Lord looks at the heart. God is not partial. Partiality is the sin of judging
outward circumstances and not inward merit. To have respect for a persons appear-
ance is to rule in favor of what you see on the surface rather than what you know to
123
be true in the heart. Only an evil judge would so violate justice. God cannot and
will not do that.
God does not have a chosen people. Jesus came equally for everyone. Likewise, we
should serve everyone equally. There is no one chosen for service nor is anyone special
in being served. Were all the same and we must treat all of the kids in the same
manner.
Partiality creates division and disharmony in service, as it did at one point with St.
Peter.
Jesus taught St. Peter a great lesson about impartiality in Acts Chapter 10 when
Peter had his vision in which he was told to eat all of the four-footed animals, etc...
This was Gods way of teaching Peter that Christianity is not only for the Jews, but
for the Gentiles also. Peter then went on to preach the Gospel to Cornelius and to
baptize him and his family.
We thus learn from Peters experience that our service is not only to a select group
of people, but rather to all. This is the way God intended it, and God does not bless
our service unless it is done with impartiality.
As another example, our impartial God requires the same conditions of repentance
for each and all. God has given one plan of salvation for all mankind. St. Peter gave
the terms of salvation when he stated, Repent and let everyone of you be baptized
in the name of Jesus Christ for the remission of sins; and you shall receive the gift of
the Holy Spirit (Acts 2:38).
In Acts 17:30, St. Paul states Truly, the times of ignorance God overlooked, but
now commands all men everywhere to repent.
Thus God did not give you one command and to me a different command. Each and
all, that is, everyone of us has been given the same commandments. God does not
expect you to do one thing for salvation and for me to do something else. If we are
going to be saved, it will be because we have done the same thing. If not, then God
is not impartial.
One person does not become a Christian one way, and another person becomes a
Christian some other way. Jesus said, Unless one is born of water and Spirit, he
cannot enter the kingdom of God (John 3:5).
124
St. Paul says in Galatians 2:6, But from those who seemed to be something whatever
they were, it makes no difference to me; God shows personal favoritism to no man
for those who seemed to be something added nothing to me.
Also, Do not be deceived, God is not mocked; for whatever a man sows, that he will
also reap. For he who sows to his flesh will of the flesh reap corruption, but he who
sows to the Spirit will of the Spirit reap everlasting life (Galatians 6:7-8).
And you, masters, do the same things to them, giving up threatening, knowing that
your own Master also is in heaven, and there is no partiality with Him (Ephesians
6:9).
In the Book of Revelation, we read, After these things I looked, and behold, a great
multitude which no one could number, of all nations, tribes, peoples, and tongues,
standing before the throne and before the Lamb, clothed with white robes, with palm
branches in their hands (Revelation 7:9).
Here, the Apostle John describes an assembly of redeemed people. This innumerable
assembly transcended every demographic barrier. He saw them stand before the
Supreme Throne indicating their right to stand in proximity to the King of Kings.
He saw them stand before the Lamb which signified the imputation of righteousness
to their life and salvation also. There were not any restrictions placed upon these
people, no biased treatment because of gender, race, age, or native language.
The Apostle James writes My brethren, do not hold the faith of our Lord Jesus
Christ, the Lord of glory, with partiality (James 2:1). Here, St. James is instructing
the people to not possess or embrace the Christian faith in one hand while holding
partiality and prejudicial favoritism in the other. This combination is intolerable.
When St. James addressed this situation, it was an era of thought when wealth and
possessions indicated Gods favoritism. St. Paul says, For there is no difference
between the Jew and the Greek: for the same Lord over all is rich unto all that call
upon Him (Romans 10:12).
125
3. Practical Questions We Should Ask Ourselves
Am I always willing to do the same service for everyone in my Sunday School class?
Do I give the same attention and service to the hard, troubled, and not so popular
kids?
4. Correctives to Partiality
Ask for guidance from the Holy Spirit to give me an alert conscience and to be
sensitive to this issue of impartiality.
Constantly examine my actions towards others and make sure they are consistent,
fair, and impartial.
5. Conclusion
The church service must maintain an attitude of inclusiveness and never exclusiveness.
If we cease to function as impartial and approachable God-fearing servants, our service
is doomed for failure. God will not bless our service and our service will create division
and disharmony in the church.
126
Whom are You Trying to Please?
1. Introduction
There are three types of pleasers in this world: self-pleasers, men-pleasers, and God-
pleasers.
In our service life, we must continually examine ourselves to see who we are trying
to please. Being a self-pleaser or men-pleaser is an extremely dangerous condition in
service, and the servant who is in this condition can become a great stumbling block
to others in their spiritual life.
A servant is at a very high risk of total spiritual decline and losing their salvation as
a result of being a self-pleaser or men-pleaser.
The single most spiritual goal in service is to be a God-pleaser, that is one who truly
seeks to only glorify God in their service, and seeks only to please God in their service.
They do this through the utmost humility, honesty, love, and obedience to God.
2. Self-pleasers
The self-pleaser is one who is selfish. They do things to only please and glorify
themselves. They have various motives for this, including satisfying their ego, their
pride, their self-righteousness, their popularity, and their self-image.
we are lovers of ourselves - St. Paul says that in the last days, For men will be
lovers of themselves, lovers of money, boasters, proud, blasphemers, disobedient
to parents, unthankful, unholy, unloving, unforgiving, slanderers, without self-
control, brutal, despisers of good, traitors, headstrong, haughty, lovers of pleasure
rather than lovers of God, having a form of godliness but denying its power. And
from such people turn away! (2 Timothy 3:2-5).
we please ourselves - We then who are strong ought to bear with the scruples
of the weak, and not to please ourselves (Romans 15:1).
127
we seek our own profit - Just as I also please all men in all things, not seeking
my own profit, but the profit of many, that they may be saved (1 Corinthians
10:33).
For all seek their own, not the things which are of Christ Jesus (Philippians
2:21).
we seek after gain - Yes, they are greedy dogs Which never have enough.
And they are shepherds Who cannot understand; They all look to their own way,
Every one for his own gain, From his own territory (Isaiah 56:11).
we seek glory - And He said to her, What do you wish? She said to Him,
Grant that these two sons of mine may sit, one on Your right hand and the other
on the left, in Your kingdom (Matthew 20:21).
we live to ourselves - and He died for all, that those who live should live
no longer for themselves, but for Him who died for them and rose again (2
Corinthians 5:15).
we neglect the poor - But whoever has this worlds goods, and sees his brother
in need, and shuts up his heart from him, how does the love of God abide in him?
(1 John 3:17).
we serve God for reward - Who is there even among you who would shut the
doors, So that you would not kindle fire on My altar in vain? I have no pleasure
in you, Says the LORD of hosts, Nor will I accept an offering from your hands
(Malachi 1:10).
we perform duty for reward - Her heads judge for a bribe, Her priests teach
for pay, And her prophets divine for money. Yet they lean on the LORD, and
say, Is not the LORD among us? No harm can come upon us (Micah 3:11).
St. Paul gives a beautiful discourse on the God-pleaser when he says Therefore if
there is any consolation in Christ, if any comfort of love, if any fellowship of the Spirit,
if any affection and mercy, fulfill my joy by being like-minded, having the same love,
being of one accord, of one mind. Let nothing be done through selfish ambition or
conceit, but in lowliness of mind let each esteem others better than himself. Let each
of you look out not only for his own interests, but also for the interests of others
(Philippians 2:1-4). These are model verses for a servant. If we could do what St.
Paul says in these verses, our service would be heavenly.
128
3. Men-pleasers
The men-pleaser is the most subtle and perhaps most dangerous condition for a
servant because it is hard to detect and often goes unnoticed by the servant himself
and unnoticed by others.
St. Paul says, Bondservants, be obedient to those who are your masters according
to the flesh, with fear and trembling, in sincerity of heart, as to Christ; not with
eyeservice, as men-pleasers, but as bondservants of Christ, doing the will of God
from the heart, with goodwill doing service, as to the Lord, and not to men, knowing
that whatever good anyone does, he will receive the same from the Lord, whether he is
a slave or free. And you, masters, do the same things to them, giving up threatening,
knowing that your own Master also is in heaven, and there is no partiality with Him
(Ephesians 6:5-9).
Also, we read Bondservants, obey in all things your masters according to the flesh,
not with eyeservice, as men-pleasers, but in sincerity of heart, fearing God (Colos-
sians 3:22).
Characteristics of a men-pleaser:
129
when all men speak well of you, for so did their father to the false prophets,
(Luke 6:26).
The personal priority of every child of God must be, to first and foremost
seek the approval of God, regardless of how men respond to our service.
Our Father is a rewarder of those who diligently seek Him, (Hebrews 11:6).
They yearn for and cling to positions, social standing, and authority
One of the great characteristics of a men-pleaser is that they are people who
love positions, social standing, and authority, and will do anything to cling
to them: thus they become men-pleasers to retain or obtain positions, social
standing, and authority.
This type of men-pleaser puts himself in a very dangerous trap. They become
willing to stray from the truth, backbite, gossip, slander, and act unjustly in
order to please others, so that they can retain their positions, authority, or
social standing.
Their salvation no longer becomes a priority in their life, and they grow to
love the things of the world. They become blind to the spiritual way of life.
The servant must get away from this trap by always speaking and standing
up for the truth in love, obedience, and respect. St. Paul says, Speak the
truth in love (Ephesians 4:15). The servant must constantly examine himself
and place God above the world. He must place God above men!
The classic example of a men-pleaser in the Bible was Pontius Pilate. Pilate
knew Jesus had done nothing wrong, but we read So Pilate wanting to
gratify the crowd released Barabbas to them (Mark 15:15).
Recall how Pilate and Herod became friends. Jesus was sent back and forth
between Pilate and Herod. We read That very day Pilate and Herod became
friends with each other, for previously they had been at enmity with each
other (Luke 23:12). Men-pleasers will go out of their way to be cruel and
unjust to others for worldly gain.
They adapt their message to their audiences
Men-pleasers deliver to their audience (Sunday School kids, fellow servants,
peers, church leadership, clergy, members of the congregation) that which
will elicit their approval. They have made this their priority. They change
130
and adapt their message from audience to audience, not out of conviction,
but to please and to become known as crowd pleasers.
St. Paul and St. Timothy are examples of men who were not willing to do
this. St. Paul told the Corinthians: For this reason I have sent Timothy to
you, who is my beloved and faithful son in the Lord, who will remind you of
my ways in Christ, as I teach everywhere in every church, (1 Corinthians
4:17).
When people will not endure sound doctrine, they should hear it anyway,
regardless of their response or consequences. When sound doctrine is not
the desire of the heart, audiences will heap up for themselves teachers,
and men-pleasers will heap up for themselves a following. Specifically, in
2 Timothy 4:1-5, we read, I charge you therefore before God and the Lord
Jesus Christ, who will judge the living and the dead at His appearing and His
kingdom: Preach the word! Be ready in season and out of season. Convince,
rebuke, exhort, with all longsuffering and teaching. For the time will come
when they will not endure sound doctrine, but according to their own desires,
because they have itching ears, they will heap up for themselves teachers;
and they will turn their ears away from the truth, and be turned aside to
fables. But you be watchful in all things, endure afflictions, do the work of
an evangelist, fulfill your ministry.
This craving to please your audience can quickly lead to language so con-
cerned with diplomacy, it conveys nothing substantial or scriptural, only sen-
timent. This kind of diplomacy often leads to a twist of the truth, deceptions
of the truth, and erroneous Orthodox teachings.
They overlook and neglect the truth
God requires servants to convince, rebuke, exhort, with all longsuffering
and teaching (2 Timothy 4:2). This duty is neglected by men-pleasers in
situations where such wouldnt be welcomed, and therefore, the truth is put
aside and it vanishes from ones conscience.
It is one thing to speak the truth in love, (Ephesians 4:15), but to speak
without truth is not loving, even if praised and applauded by men.
There is the exhibition of this, when servants step so delicately, they trample
over truth to keep people happy.
131
An honest reading of First and Second Timothy and Titus can bring us to a
better understanding of real service, and supply both motive and method to
avoid the immature, frenzied work to gain the good esteem of men, leaving
truth unspoken and sinners lost.
4. Conclusion - Every servant must ask himself the question stated in Galatians 1:10. Do
I seek to please men? St. Paul responds to his own question by saying, For if I still
pleased men, I would not be a servant of Christ. Therefore, the men-pleaser can never be
a true servant of Christ.
To be continued...
132
Christian Communication
1. Introduction
Christian communication is what makes a service thrive and grow in its spiritual
fervor and potential.
The text above says that we must endeavor to keep the unity of the Spirit in the
bond of peace. This word means to give diligence in the matter.
Perhaps one of our greatest failures as members of the church is our lack of commu-
nication skills. The Bible actually contains the principles of communication that we
need to communicate effectively with our fellow man and one another. It is incumbent
upon us to give diligence to make sure that we do communicate appropriately.
Our very unity as a church depends upon our effective communication one with
another.
These principles also apply in the work place, at school, in our families, and anywhere
we interact with other humans in our society.
133
For Bible Study and Spreading the Gospel
We read in Acts 17:2, Then Paul, as his custom was, went in to them, and for
three Sabbaths reasoned with them from the Scriptures, explaining and demon-
strating that the Christ had to suffer and rise again from the dead, and saying,
This Jesus whom I preach to you is the Christ.
In Romans 10:10-17, we read For with the heart one believes unto righteousness,
and with the mouth confession is made unto salvation. For the Scripture says,
Whoever believes on Him will not be put to shame. For there is no distinction
between Jew and Greek, for the same Lord over all is rich to all who call upon
Him. For whoever calls on the name of the LORD shall be saved. How then
shall they call on Him in whom they have not believed? And how shall they
believe in Him of whom they have not heard? And how shall they hear without
a preacher? And how shall they preach unless they are sent? As it is written:
How beautiful are the feet of those who preach the gospel of peace, Who bring
glad tidings of good things! But they have not all obeyed the gospel. For Isaiah
says, LORD, who has believed our report? So then faith comes by hearing, and
hearing by the word of God.
To Work Together
One cannot work with someone else without communicating with them even in
the simplest of tasks.
God did not make us to be mind readers.
Notice how God communicated to Saint Paul in Acts 16:6-10: Now when they
had gone through Phrygia and the region of Galatia, they were forbidden by the
Holy Spirit to preach the word in Asia. After they had come to Mysia, they tried
to go into Bithynia, but the Spirit did not permit them. So passing by Mysia,
they came down to Troas. And a vision appeared to Paul in the night. A man
of Macedonia stood and pleaded with him, saying, Come over to Macedonia
and help us. Now after he had seen the vision, immediately we sought to go
to Macedonia, concluding that the Lord had called us to preach the gospel to
them.
God forbade them to go to Asia.
They wanted to go to Bithynia, but God told them no again.
134
Then God told them to go to Macedonia.
God communicated with them to get the work done.
Notice how the brethren communicated with each other in Acts [Link] Now when
the apostles who were at Jerusalem heard that Samaria had received the word
of God, they sent Peter and John to them,
The apostles heard that Samaria had received the word of God. Someone
had to tell them.
They sent Peter and John. Peter and John had to be told to go.
They communicated with each other to get the work done.
To Settle Disagreements
This is perhaps where communication is the most essential but the most ne-
glected.
Notice in Acts 15
There was a problem in the church.
Some of the Pharisees who became Christians thought that gentiles had to
be circumcised.
Saint Paul and Barnabas opposed this.
The church at Antioch thought that Saint Paul and Barnabas should go to
Jerusalem to talk with the apostles and elders about this matter.
So they did.
Notice Acts 15:6-7, Now the apostles and elders came together to consider
this matter. And when there had been much dispute, Peter rose up and said
to them: Men and brethren, you know that a good while ago God chose
among us, that by my mouth the Gentiles should hear the word of the gospel
and believe.
Finally, Saint Peter spoke and Saint James spoke. In both instances, God
was the one who decided the issue: i) God decided the issue by showing to
Peter that gentiles were to be saved, ii) God decided the issue through the
inspired scriptures of the Old Testament.
Notice that it was concluded in Acts 15:28, For it seemed good to the Holy
Spirit, and to us, to lay upon you no greater burden than these necessary
135
things. Thus, i) Gods word must be allowed to settle matters, and ii) but
even in so settling these matters, Saint Paul still had many years of trouble
from those who would not let go of the idea that one needed to be circumcised
to be saved.
136
In Psalm 15:3, we read, He who does not backbite with his tongue, Nor does
evil to his neighbor, Nor does he take up a reproach against his friend.
Do not assume you know what the other is thinking.
Many times we think we know what the other is getting at, even in innocent
conversation, and we end up being wrong.
How much more should we be willing to listen to others when it comes to
important matters.
Proverbs 15:28 says, The heart of the righteous studies how to answer, But
the mouth of the wicked pours forth evil.
Proverbs 18:13 says, He who answers a matter before he hears it, It is folly
and shame to him.
Stay pure in speech.
Ephesians 4:29 says, Let no corrupt word proceed out of your mouth, but
what is good for necessary edification, that it may impart grace to the hear-
ers.
Colossians 3:8 says, But now you yourselves are to put off all these: anger,
wrath, malice, blasphemy, filthy language out of your mouth.
Control the anger.
When disagreements occur, it is normal to get frustrated and angry.
As Christians, we must make sure that we control those emotions.
Notice what Saint Paul says in Ephesians 4:26, Be angry, and do not sin.
Do not let the sun go down on your wrath.
Proverbs 29:22 says, An angry man stirs up strife, And a furious man
abounds in transgression.
Keep the arms down.
Keep the voice calm.
We must use wisdom in choosing the proper time to communicate with people.
137
Matthew 10:16 says, Behold, I send you out as sheep in the midst of wolves.
Therefore be wise as serpents and harmless as doves.
Luke 16:8 says, So the master commended the unjust steward because he had
dealt shrewdly. For the sons of this world are more shrewd in their generation
than the sons of light.
James 1:19 says, So then, my beloved brethren, let every man be swift to hear,
slow to speak, slow to wrath.
Proverbs 15:28 says, The heart of the righteous studies how to answer, But the
mouth of the wicked pours forth evil.
James 1:19
Proverbs 21:23 says, Whoever guards his mouth and tongue Keeps his soul from
troubles.
Proverbs 15:1 says, A soft answer turns away wrath, But a harsh word stirs up
anger.
Proverbs 25:15 says, By long forbearance a ruler is persuaded, And a gentle
tongue breaks a bone.
Proverbs 15:2 says, The tongue of the wise uses knowledge rightly, But the
mouth of fools pours forth foolishness.
Proverbs 25:11 says, A word fitly spoken is like apples of gold In settings of
silver.
Proverbs 25:15
Ephesians 4:2 says, with all lowliness and gentleness, with longsuffering, bearing
with one another in love.
5. Conclusion
138
We all have a responsibility to communicate with each other to maintain unity within
the body of Christ. The three key elements we must understand in Christian com-
munication are
139
The Spirit of Encouragement
1. Introduction
Encouragement in service is vital for a healthy and fruitful service. We all need
encouragement! The servant can really thrive in their service if properly encour-
aged, or they may not achieve their full Christian potential if they are not properly
encouraged.
The person who is full of encouragement is full of the Holy Spirit. The person who
finds it difficult and even impossible to encourage others is greatly lacking in their
spiritual life and is in spiritual decline.
We must encourage one another in service! This is the only way that service can
spiritually grow so that all can be of one mind, one heart, and one spirit.
Barnabas was a great leader in the early Christian church. His Jewish name was
Joseph but he was such an inspiration that the apostles gave him the nickname,
Barnabas, meaning Son of Encouragement.
He is first mentioned in the Bible, in the book of Acts, for his outstanding example
of generosity when he sold a field that he owned and then took the money to the
apostles to distribute to those in need (Acts 4:32-37).
In Acts 9:27, Barnabas is seen encouraging Saint Paul. Saint Paul, who was originally
Saul of Tarsus, had made a name for himself persecuting and killing Christians.
After his radical conversion experience, St. Paul went right to work preaching that
Jesus was the Son of God but many Christians were understandably suspicious of his
140
motives. However, Barnabas befriended him and even took him to the apostles in
Jerusalem for an introduction.
Later, Barnabas stood up to St. Paul in defense of a young disciple, John Mark,
who did not meet St. Pauls expectations on an earlier missionary journey. Here, St.
Paul parted with John Mark, taking Silas on his journeys, and it was Barnabas who
took John Mark under his wing. His objective was encouraging and building a future
leader in the church.
As we read about Barnabas, we see a man who had a close walk with God.
He was willing to give his personal wealth to help the less fortunate.
He was confident enough in the Holy Spirit leading that he trusted and befriended
the repentant persecutor of Christians Saul.
He went out of his way to help new believers in their walk with Christ.
He was strong enough to stand up to the dynamic St. Paul, knowing his place
was that of an encourager.
(a) The Cup is Always Half Full - An encouraging person always has a positive
disposition on service and always sees the cup as half full instead of half empty at all
times, especially in difficult or uncertain times. The encouraging person always has an
optimistic disposition and view on service. The discouraging person is always negative
and sees the service as failing or not meeting their unreasonable and hypocritical
standards. The discouraging person always points to the negatives and the weaknesses
in others.
St. Paul himself was also a great example of an encouraging person, especially later
in his ministry. He always opened and closed his Epistles on a positive note. He
always mentioned people by name and how useful they were in his ministry, and he
141
often cited their service. He was especially encouraging of a young Timothy, where
he told him to hold on to his traditions, reminding him of his strong faith.
St. Paul talks specifically about encouragment in Ephesians 4:29, where he says,
Let no corrupt word proceed out of your mouth, but what is good for necessary
edification, that it may impart grace to the hearers.
(b) Always Optimistic and Supportive of New Services and Ideas - Another
great sign of an encouraging person is their creativity in starting new and ambitious
services, or expanding existing services for growth and fruitfulness in service. The
encouraging servant always thinks big, and plans services that may seem impossible,
whereas the discouraging person loves the status quo and to go backwards. The
encouraging person is always seeking to attain a higher level in their service, to do
things that they have not done before. They love hearing ambitious and creative
ideas from others.
(c) Always Seeks and is Eager to Give Words of Encouragement to Others -
The encouraging servant finds joy in uplifting and comforting others. He finds joy
and spiritual satisfaction in lifting others to a higher spiritual level by his encouraging
words. The encouraging servant loves seeing spiritual success in service, whereas the
discouraging servant is content with and may even desire failure in others service.
(d) Spiritual Confidence and Security - The encouraging servant does not fall into
the trap of pride, sinful anger, the satanic attack of creating a lack of self-esteem
and inferiority complex, envy, or jealousy. These are the great sins that lead to
discouragement. It is impossible to be in one of these states and encourage others.
The encouraging person has the confidence of the Holy Spirit, as did Barnabas. The
Apostle John says, This is the confidence we have in approaching God: that if we
ask anything according to His will, he hears us (1 John 5:14). The encouraging
person is also emotionally and mentally stable. Those who are emotionally unstable
find themselves in constant depression and unable to encourage anyone. St. Paul
says, In Him and through faith in Him we may approach God with freedom and
confidence (Ephesians 3:12).
(e) Encouragement is a Measure of our Spiritual Level - Summed up, encourage-
ment is a measuring stick of our spiritual level and relationship with God. The more
we encourage, the higher our spiritual level and love for Christ. The love of Jesus
Christ shines through us in how we treat and encourage others.
142
Sins are Forgiven: A Meditation on Mark 2:1-12
Gospel Reading - And again He entered Capernaum after some days, and it was heard
that He was in the house. Immediately many gathered together, so that there was no longer
room to receive them, not even near the door. And He preached the word to them. Then they
came to Him, bringing a paralytic who was carried by four men. And when they could not
come near Him because of the crowd, they uncovered the roof where He was. So when they had
broken through, they let down the bed on which the paralytic was lying. When Jesus saw their
faith, He said to the paralytic, Son, your sins are forgiven you. And some of the scribes were
sitting there and reasoning in their hearts, Why does this Man speak blasphemies like this?
Who can forgive sins but God alone? But immediately, when Jesus perceived in His spirit that
they reasoned thus within themselves, He said to them, Why do you reason about these things
in your hearts? Which is easier, to say to the paralytic, Your sins are forgiven you, or to say,
Arise, take up your bed and walk? But that you may know that the Son of Man has power on
earth to forgive sins. He said to the paralytic, I say to you, arise, take up your bed, and go to
your house. Immediately he arose, took up the bed, and went out in the presence of them all,
so that all were amazed and glorified God, saying, We never saw anything like this!
Today the Gospel tells us about a paralytic man who Jesus healed after the man was
brought by four of his friends through a roof of a house. There are 6 great spiritual elements in
this story.
The Paralysis and The Stretcher - When the paralytic man was brought to Jesus on
the stretcher (bed), Jesus knew right away that the paralysis was due to his sin. This
teaches us that sin is a paralysis. Sin paralyzes us and makes us slaves. Sometimes rather
than coming to Jesus and seeking the forgiveness of our sins and freedom from the bondage
of sin, we stay in our paralyzed state and stay on the stretcher.
Rather than seek forgiveness and a new way of life, we punish ourselves for our sins, that
is, we stay on our bed - a symbol of self-punishment, as if the punishment of ourselves can
atone for our sins. We feel that as long as we are suffering, then we are paying for our sins.
Our thinking is that this self-induced suffering lessens our agony and guilt for our sins.
The one thing that we must realize is that no stretcher can atone for sins. It is only the
Cross of Jesus that atones and cleanses. Not all of the worlds stretchers or suffering can
143
wipe away a single sin. Only Jesus can do that. As we read in Romans 5:20, Where sin
abounded, grace abounded all the more.
The Great Desire - The paralytic wanted to be cured. He wanted to get off his stretcher
and be forgiven for his sins. He had a great desire to be forgiven. This is where we often
differ from the paralytic. We lack the desire to be forgiven, and we lack the desire for a
new way of life, and a renewal of our spirituality.
The paralytic would have never allowed his four friends to bring him to Jesus if he did not
want to be cured, to be forgiven for his sins, and to get off his stretcher. When Jesus told
him your sins are forgiven, the man believed Jesus immediately. And when Jesus told
him to take up your bed and walk, the man believed him immediately. He did not argue
with Jesus or ridicule Him like the thief on the cross and the pharisees, who doubted the
power of God. Rather he immediately rose to his feet.
How many of us doubt Jesus when He comes to us and offers us to take up our bed and
walk from our sinful life, from our mountain of mistakes and errors, and our erroneous
way of life.
The Great Faith - The healing of the paralytic man came about not only because of the
great desire to be forgiven but also because of the great faith of his friends and the faith of
the paralytic himself. The Gospel says, When Jesus saw their faith. Whose faith? The
faith of the four or the five? It is the faith of the five. For if the paralytic lacked faith, he
would never have been there in the first place, for the love and forgiveness of God cannot
be forced on anybody.
This also tells us about the importance of faith of others and those who pray and have
faith on our behalf. Jesus does miracles for us based on the prayers and faith of others.
Recall the mother of St. Augustine, how after she prayed 20 years for him, Jesus turned
his life around. How about the prayers and faith of our parents. They are praying for us
right now.
One question that we must always ask of ourselves is how strong is our faith? We are all
experts at giving lessons on faith, guiding others on faith, and preaching about faith. We
are all scholars on faith! But the moment our faith is tested by God, our faith crumbles,
we cave in, and become very weak spiritually. When we go through hardships, suffering, or
pain, we must remember the great words of St. Paul, For I consider, that the sufferings
144
of the present time, are not worth comparing to the glory that will be revealed in us
(Romans 8:18).
The Great Friends - This story also tells a great deal about friendship. The paralytic
truly had four great friends who cared about him. They risked their lives for him. They
tore the roof of a house for him. They risked financial loss for him. They were diligent
and persistent. They never gave up. How many of us have friends like that? Are we that
kind of friend to others?
It is very difficult to find a friend today. The worlds definition of friendship is someone you
can benefit from materially. Someone from which I can reap financial benefit, authority,
worldly power, influence, or status. This is not the Bibles definition of friendship. These
four men men had nothing to gain and everything to lose from a material perspective. This
is the Bibles definition of a friend: nothing to gain and everything to lose. The worlds
definition is just the opposite: nothing to lose and everything to gain. In Exodus 33:11 we
read God spoke to Moses face to face as a man speaks to his friend.
Remember the man at the pool of Bethesda? How many friends did he have? For 38 long
years, nobody paid attention to him and no one would help him in the pool. When Jesus
asked him if he wanted to be made well the paralytic responded Sir I have no man to
put me in the pool when the water is stirred up (John 5:6). In other words, he had no
friends!
What kind of friends are we to others? Do we seek friends and help them like the four
friends in this Gospel, or are we users of others and make friends only when we need
something? How many paralytics do we know today who might be healed through our
help? People paralyzed by fear, guilt, discouragement, weakness, or frustration. People
who need affection, encouragement, an understanding and listening ear, appreciation and
recognition.
The Great Misery - There are those who can never be satisfied or pleased. When the
scribes and pharisees saw Jesus heal the paralytic and tell him that his sins were forgiven,
they complained. They said, Why does this Man speak blasphemies like this? Who can
forgive sins but God alone? (Mark 2:7).
There are those who always choose to be miserable in life, always complaining about
everything, never being content, never satisfied, never happy, always in doubt, always
145
negative about everything. Such people can never establish a meaningful relationship
with God and will be a stumbling block to others in their spiritual life.
Recall what Jesus said in Matthew 11:16-19. To what shall I liken this generation? It is
like children sitting in the marketplaces and calling to their companions, and saying: We
played the flute for you, And you did not dance; We mourned to you, And you did not
lament. For John came neither eating nor drinking, and they say, He has a demon. The
Son of Man came eating and drinking, and they say, Look, a glutton and a winebibber, a
friend of tax collectors and sinners!
And when Jesus cast out demons, the pharisees accused Him of casting out demons by
Beelzebub, the ruler of the demons. There are those who see every Godly thing as negative,
and it is such people who can never accept the love, forgiveness, and mercy of God.
The Great God - By Jesus saying to the paralytic your sins are forgiven, Jesus proves
again that He alone is the great God of the universe, as He alone has the power to forgive
sins.
As we read this story then, we learn about how sins paralyzes us, and we learn about getting
off our stretcher and seeking forgiveness of our sins and seeking a new way. We learn about the
great importance of faith and friendship, and we see once again the great power of God at work
as He alone has the authority to forgive sins.
146
Crucifying The Ego
The ego plays a fundamental role in every aspect of our personality. For the servant, it is
ever so critical to control and eventually crucify ones ego to achieve a true state of humility.
Here, we discuss seven steps to crucifying the ego and allowing the Truth to set you free.
1. Never rely on your own wisdom or might or on human strength in any of your works.
Otherwise, your mind will become dim and your insight blurred, thus blocking the way for
grace to enter you and show you the way of God. You will thus be led astray from truth
and fall into the enemys trap. At the end, you will be enslaved to your own ego and to
the desires of other people, Woe to those who are wise in their own eyes, and shrewd in
their own sight! (Isaiah 5:21).
2. Beware of thinking highly of yourself. Never feel that without you the world would stop.
For your self would seem great and grand in your own eyes. Know instead that God can
use another to do the work better than you. He can make the weak mighty and the mighty
weak, the wise foolish and the foolish wise. Everything good and useful in you is from
God and not from you. If you do not hand it over to God and with conviction attribute
it to Him, He will tear it away from you. If you boast of your intelligence or virtue, God
will leave them to you as merely human gifts. They will then turn into corruption, loss,
and damage.
3. Your ego might hate submitting to God. It might escape surrendering to Him. In the
meantime, you would be making much of your own power attributing your intelligence,
virtue, and success to yourself. In this case, God will deliver you to continual discipline;
discipline after discipline, tribulation after tribulation, until you succumb and surrender
in brokenness. But if you reject discipline and cannot stand tribulation, God will forsake
you forever.
4. Take heed then and open your ears: Either count yourself as nothing in word and deed
and make up your mind to surrender yourself to God with all your might and you will
then gladly be released from your ego by the grace of God; or, you will be delivered to
discipline until you are set free from your ego in spite of yourself. So if you wish to opt for
147
the easier way, take that of voluntary submission. Count yourself from now on as nothing,
and follow the path of grace wherever the Spirit may wish to lead you.
5. Know for certain that submission to God and total surrender to His will and divine plan
are a free gift of grace. It thus demands, besides prayer and supplication, a trusting faith
to receive this gift. This should be coupled with a longing springing from ones heart that
God may not deliver us to discipline for our folly, nor abandon us to our own wisdom.
For this reason, we should have an extremely resolute will to renounce our own self at all
times and in all works. This should not be done ostentatiously before people but within
our conscience. Blessed is the man who can discover his own weakness and ignorance and
confess them before God to the last day of his life.
6. If you fall under discipline, know for sure that this is a great profit, for God chastises the
soul that has forgotten its weakness and has been puffed up by its talents and success.
This is carried on until it realizes its weakness, especially when God does not provide in
tribulation a way to escape. He besieges the soul from all sides and embitters it with inward
and outward humiliation, whether by sin or by scandal, until it abhors itself, curses its own
intelligence, and disowns its counsel. Finally, it surrenders itself to God, feeling crushed
and lowly. At such a time, it becomes easy for man to hate himself. He even wishes to be
hated by everybody. This is the way of true humility. It leads to total surrender to divine
plan. It ends up with freeing ones soul from the tyranny of the ego, with its deception,
its stubbornness, and its vanity.
7. If you wish to free your soul by the shortest and simplest way, sit down every day under the
discipline of grace. Examine your thoughts, movements, intentions, purposes, words, and
deeds in the light of Gods word. It is then that you shall discover the corruption of the
ego, its imposture, slyness, deception, vanity, and lack of chastity. If you persist in doing
this regularly in contrition, you will manage to sever yourself from your false and devilish
ego. You will then be able to overpower it bit by bit until you can deny it altogether, hate
it, and break jail from its tyranny. You will at last discover the catastrophe into which
your ego has led you for obeying it, finding peace in its shelter, boasting of it, and seeking
its respect.
The moment you realize at the bottom of your heart that you are nothing and that God
is everything, then the truth shall have set you free.
148
The Rich Young Ruler - Part I
The Gospel reading for the fourth Sunday of Hatoor is about the rich young ruler whom
Jesus met on the road. The Gospel reading is Mark 10:17-31. This story is also found in Matthew
19:16-30 and Luke 18:18-30. Here in Part I, we focus on the meaning of the ten commandments.
Gospel Reading - Now as He was going out on the road, one came running, knelt before
Him, and asked Him, Good Teacher, what shall I do that I may inherit eternal life? So Jesus
said to him, Why do you call Me good? No one is good but One, that is, God. You know
the commandments: Do not commit adultery, Do not murder, Do not steal, Do not bear false
witness, Do not defraud, Honor your father and your mother. And he answered and said to
Him, Teacher, all these things I have kept from my youth. Then Jesus, looking at him, loved
him, and said to him, One thing you lack: Go your way, sell whatever you have and give to
the poor, and you will have treasure in heaven; and come, take up the cross, and follow Me.
But he was sad at this word, and went away sorrowful, for he had great possessions. Then Jesus
looked around and said to His disciples, How hard it is for those who have riches to enter the
kingdom of God! And the disciples were astonished at His words. But Jesus answered again
and said to them, Children, how hard it is for those who trust in riches to enter the kingdom
of God! It is easier for a camel to go through the eye of a needle than for a rich man to enter
the kingdom of God. And they were greatly astonished, saying among themselves, Who then
can be saved? But Jesus looked at them and said, With men it is impossible, but not with
God; for with God all things are possible. Then Peter began to say to Him, See, we have left
all and followed You. So Jesus answered and said, Assuredly, I say to you, there is no one who
has left house or brothers or sisters or father or mother or wife or children or lands, for My sake
and the gospels, who shall not receive a hundredfold now in this timehouses and brothers and
sisters and mothers and children and lands, with persecutionsand in the age to come, eternal
life. But many who are first will be last, and the last first (Mark 10:17-31).
In this gospel reading, the rich young ruler asks, Good Teacher, what shall I do that I
may inherit eternal life? And Jesus replied, You know the commandments: Do not commit
adultery, Do not murder, Do not steal, Do not bear false witness, Do not defraud, Honor your
father and your mother. Jesus in effect here, was placing His Divine seal of approval on the ten
commandments given to Moses in the Old Testament (Exodus 20:1-17).
149
St. Augustine once said, Love God and do as you please. Now St. Augustines statement
is excellent, but its far too general. Its like a football field without goalposts. Love God and
do as you please sounds great, and it is great, but the truth of the matter is that love needs
to be defined. The boundaries of love need to be established and this is exactly what the ten
commandments do! They define love. They establish the boundaries of love!
The ten commandments help make love concrete. Each one of the commandments expresses
love in its own way:
1. Love God by acknowledging the one true God as God - 1st commandment.
3. Love God by spending time with Him on the Lords day - 3rd commandment.
6. Respect marriage and the gift of sexuality - 6th and 9th commandments.
Jesus was asked one day (Matthew 22:34) which of the commandments was the greatest.
And Jesuss response was, Love God with all your heart, all your mind, and all your soul. That
is the first. The second is like it. Love your neighbor as yourself (Matthew 22:37-39). Somebody
figured out that we have 35 million laws in the books today to enforce the ten commandments.
Jesus on the other hand reduced even the ten to two: love of God and love of neighbor. And
these two boil down to one commandment: love!
Thus, we see that love is the greatest commandment! No one can enter heaven without it,
for heaven is par excellence the place of love! Love shows reverence for God, self, and others.
Love is at the very heart of every single commandment. Whether we read the ten commandments
in Exodus or here in the Gospel of St. Mark, they are the same. It is the call from God to learn
how to truly love!
150
Love acknowledges the one true God as God. Love shows respect. Love spends time with
God on the Lords day. Love honors parents. Love treats oneself and all people with reverence.
Love respects marriage and the gift of sexuality. Love does not steal. On the contrary, love gives
and gives again and again. Love does not kill, even if murder today is euphemistically referred
to as pro choice, love does not kill. Love does not commit adultery, lust does! Love does
not covet, greed does! Love is always honest. As St. Paul says so beautifully, Owe everyone
nothing except love! (Romans 13:8)
Ted Turner of CNN recently made up ten commandments of his own, which someone
jokingly called The Ted Commandments. Ted Turner calls them ten voluntary initiatives.
And in doing so, Ted Turner declared the ten commandments of the Bible to be obsolete.
This is not new, really. Invariably, those who declare themselves against organized religion, for
example, do exactly the same thing. The set themselves up as gods and write not only new
commandments of their own, but also their own new Bible to suit their own tastes and their
own sins. Ted Turner said, Nobody pays attention to the ten commandments anymore because
theyre too old. Well, the law of gravity is even older, but we better not disregard it by jumping
off the Empire State Building. We would be sorry we did!
A very important word in the ten commandments is the personal pronoun thou. God says,
Thou Shalt and Thou Shalt not. It is important to understand that God addresses each
one of the commandments to us very personally with that personal pronoun thou.
God dignifies each one of the commandments with this personal thou. So God is not giving
these commandments to a mass of humanity! He is addressing you and no one else in a very
pointed and personal way - thou shalt, and thou shalt not. We need to realize this, otherwise the
ten commandments may seem very cold and impersonal to us. And if they do seem impersonal,
it is because we do not hear that personal pronoun thou addressed to us by God with each one of
those commandments. Not only do we need to know the commandments, but more importantly,
we must also know personally the Lord Jesus who stands behind these commandments. We need
to fall in love with Him first, then keeping the commandments will be a joy and not a burden.
Someone once gave this speech at a commencement ceremony at Duke University a few
years ago:
We have actually convinced ourselves that slogans will save us: shoot up if you must, but
use a clean needle. Enjoy sex whenever and with whom ever you wish, but use a condom. No!
151
The answer is No, No, No! And not because it isnt cool or smart or because you might end
up in jail or dying in an AIDS ward, no because it is wrong! Because we have spent over 5000
years as a race of rational human beings trying to drag ourselves out of the primeval slime by
searching for truth and moral absolutes. In its purest form, truth is not a polite tap on the
shoulder, it is a howling reproach. What Moses brought down from Mount Sinai were not The
Ten Suggestions!
So the young man says in the Gospel reading today, Good Teacher, what shall I do that
I may inherit eternal life? And Jesus says to him, But if you want to enter into life, keep the
commandments (Matthew 19:17).
Consider the following prayer: We thank you Lord for the goal posts of life. Help us to
hear Your loving thou in each of the commandments. Keep us united to You as the branch
is united to the vine, that we may have the power to love You by keeping the commandments
and to find life in them. And if we havent kept the commandments, help us to repent like the
prodigal son and return to You, the waiting Father, to experience the warm embrace of Your
forgiveness and love.
Finally, we close here with this great verse from the Gospel of St. John: If anyone loves
Me, he will keep My word. Then My Father will love him, and We will come to him and make
Our home with him (John 14:23).
152
The Rich Young Ruler - Part II
The Gospel reading for the fourth Sunday of Hatoor is about the rich young ruler whom
Jesus met on the road. The Gospel reading is Mark 10:17-31. This story is also found in
Matthew 19:16-30 and Luke 18:18-30. Here in Part II, we focus more on the problem of the rich
young ruler and Jesuss proposed solution to his problem.
Gospel Reading - Now as He was going out on the road, one came running, knelt before
Him, and asked Him, Good Teacher, what shall I do that I may inherit eternal life? So Jesus
said to him, Why do you call Me good? No one is good but One, that is, God. You know
the commandments: Do not commit adultery, Do not murder, Do not steal, Do not bear false
witness, Do not defraud, Honor your father and your mother. And he answered and said to
Him, Teacher, all these things I have kept from my youth. Then Jesus, looking at him, loved
him, and said to him, One thing you lack: Go your way, sell whatever you have and give to
the poor, and you will have treasure in heaven; and come, take up the cross, and follow Me.
But he was sad at this word, and went away sorrowful, for he had great possessions. Then Jesus
looked around and said to His disciples, How hard it is for those who have riches to enter the
kingdom of God! And the disciples were astonished at His words. But Jesus answered again
and said to them, Children, how hard it is for those who trust in riches to enter the kingdom
of God! It is easier for a camel to go through the eye of a needle than for a rich man to enter
the kingdom of God. And they were greatly astonished, saying among themselves, Who then
can be saved? But Jesus looked at them and said, With men it is impossible, but not with
God; for with God all things are possible. Then Peter began to say to Him, See, we have left
all and followed You. So Jesus answered and said, Assuredly, I say to you, there is no one who
has left house or brothers or sisters or father or mother or wife or children or lands, for My sake
and the gospels, who shall not receive a hundredfold now in this timehouses and brothers and
sisters and mothers and children and lands, with persecutionsand in the age to come, eternal
life. But many who are first will be last, and the last first (Mark 10:17-31).
1. One Thing You Lack - In this gospel reading, after the rich young ruler told Jesus that
he kept the commandments, Jesus replied, One thing you lack. Just one thing can
make all the difference in the world. It often takes no more than one thing to alter the
outcome of human events. For example, on the night of the Normandy invasion in World
153
War II, Hitler had taken a sleeping pill and left word not to be awakened. One sleeping
pill to a large extent determined the outcome of World War II. Just one thing can make
a difference in our spiritual life as well. It may make the difference between an abundant
life and a futile life. This was certainly true about the rich young ruler who came to see
Jesus in this gospel reading.
2. Inner Discontent - Though he was rich and a ruler, he was not thoroughly satisfied, and
this is precisely why he approached Jesus. Christian psychologists believe that spiritual
dissatisfaction with ones self is often a sign of spiritual growth. They suggest that such
dissatisfaction is being urged by the Holy Spirit within to move us to a new level of spiritual
growth. This means that we must not try to adjust ourselves to the present level but to
heed the spurs within that would drive us upward. In other words, God will not be satisfied
with our current state, but sometimes fills our hearts with a huge emptiness until we begin
to seek what the rich young ruler in the gospel reading called eternal life.
3. What Shall I Do? - The rich young ruler asks Jesus, What shall I do to inherit eternal
life? For the first time in his life, the young man heard someone speak to the deepest needs
of his soul and then he asked, Teacher, what shall I do to inherit eternal life? Then Jesus
responded to him by saying, You know the commandments: Do not commit adultery, Do
not murder, Do not steal, Do not bear false witness, Do not defraud, Honor your father
and your mother. Notice here that Jesus did not recite all of the ten commandments
to the rich young ruler. Jesus only recited 6 of the ten commandments, the ones that
have to do with love and respect of neighbor. However, Jesus did not recite the first four
commandments that deal with the love of God, since the rich young ruler did not keep
these commandments!
When the rich young ruler heard Jesus recite the commandments that deal with love of
neighbor, he responded by saying, All these I have kept from my youth. With what
pride he must of uttered these words! But when Jesus heard this, He said, One thing you
lack: Go your way, sell whatever you have and give to the poor, and you will have treasure
in heaven; and come, take up the cross, and follow Me. Upon hearing these words, the
young man became sad, for he was very rich. He left, never to walk with Jesus again!
4. The Major Test - Just one thing kept the young man away from God: his possessions!
He boasted that he had kept all of the commandments. Then Jesus tested him. Jesus
began with the first of all commandments: Thou shalt have no other gods before Me.
154
This is where the young mans status collapsed. Though the young ruler claimed to have
kept all of the commandments, the fact is that he didnt even keep the first commandment!
The young ruler did have other gods before the true God. Tested at this point, the Gospel
says, But he was sad at this word, and went away sorrowful, for he had great possessions.
Now the young man understood that the way to the heart of God is through the surrender
of all other loves to a first love for God. However, his love, like that of many, lay in material
things. Just one thing stood in the way of his reach for the kingdom, but that one
thing was enough to make him lose it!
5. Sell All that You Have - To solve the young mans spiritual problem, Jesus tells him,
Go your way, sell whatever you have and give to the poor, and you will have treasure
in heaven; and come, take up the cross, and follow Me. It is important to understand
here that this was a prescription for a particular person with a specific need. Jesus was
not laying down poverty as either a requirement or an ideal for everyone. He was not
condemning all possessions. For example, there is no record that Jesus ever told James
and John to give away their fishing boat, or that He told Mary and Martha to sell their
house in Bethany. Jesus was the Good Physician, and did not prescribe the same pill for
every patient!
This young man had allowed his possessions to build a wall between him and God. Jesus,
who saw what was in man, realized this with a glance. And this is precisely why He said,
Go and sell whatever you have. The words of our Lord here are not only a prescription
but they are more like a surgical operation proposed to the young man. For Jesus is not
only the Good Physician, He is also the Good Surgeon! Jesus believed in drastic remedies
when the trouble was deep-seated and acute. So He says, in effect, If your wealth causes
you to sin, cut if off. This young man was so shackled by his possessions that nothing
less than surgery would suffice!
What is that one thing in our life that keeps us from God? Whatever it is, Jesus says
that we should treat it as a cancer. Get rid of it immediately, no matter how painful the
separation, and come and follow Me.
To some, this one thing may be drugs, alcohol, sex, anger, violence, or dishonesty.
Whatever it is, we better leave it alone before it eats into the fiber of our will power and
becomes a fatal illness, killing our capacity to decide for ourselves. To some this one
thing may be success. It destroys the finer strains of character, making them arrogant,
155
snobbish, and ungrateful. To some, this one thing may be money. It can narrow a
persons outlook in life and bring him to the point where he sees everything and everyone
in terms of the dollar!
6. Socratic Versus Platonic Ethics - One thing you lack says Jesus. Why should Jesus
condemn the young man for lacking one thing when he kept everything else? Socrates
claimed that a person was morally acceptable if the evil points in his life were balanced
my good points. In fact, many religions around the world adopt this view. Christianity
does not operate this way! Plato, on the other hand, completely disagreed with Socrates.
Plato taught that personality, like a chain, is only as strong as its weakest link. The ladder
that lacks a rung or two is a useless thing, and a boat may sink if only one plank is rotten,
though all others are sound and watertight. Christianity is very much Platonic and not at
all Socratic. To obey the Lord 99% of the time where it is easy to do so is no great matter.
The real test lies in obeying Him 100% of the time, which is the much harder task. One
sin can ruin an otherwise moral life. This is precisely why the Apostle James says, For
whoever shall keep the whole law, and yet stumble in one point, he is guilty of all For
He who said, Do not commit adultery, also said, Do not murder. Now if you do not
commit adultery, but you do murder, you have become a transgressor of the law (James
2:10-11).
7. The Closed Door - One thing you lack says Jesus. Some of us have a certain room in
our house that we do not want God to enter. We keep it walled up with concrete! For the
young ruler, this room was his world of finance. He did not want Jesus to enter this room.
Perhaps for us, this room may be occupied with this overpowering ambition to plow our
way to success in our career no matter how much time it takes away from our spiritual
life. For some, it may be an old sin that we refuse to confess. For some, it may be lust and
pornography for which we are determined to give free rein no matter what happens and
no matter what the cost. For some, it may be a bottomless hatred towards others which
comes between us and God and robs us of our peace and spirituality. We tell ourselves
that God can have everything, but not this one thing!
In other words, we make religion another one of the departments in life. We have the social
department, the intellectual department, the recreational department, the department of
politics, economics, business, science, and then we have the department of religion! It
seems that the worst possible thing we could do today is to let the department of religion
156
intrude into the other departments. We hear it said, for example, that we should not mix
religion with politics or business. Each one belongs to its own realm. This is precisely
what the young ruler in the gospel reading today was trying to do. He thought that God
belonged only in the temple. God had no business to be involved in the world of finance.
But Jesus insisted that God belongs in every department of our life, that all the rooms
in the house of our life must be open to Him! He keeps knocking on the one closed door.
Christ says, I stand at the door and knock. If anyone hears My voice and opens the door,
I will come in to him and dine with him, and he with Me (Revelation 3:20).
8. Come, Follow Me - When the Lord met Andrew, Matthew, James and John, Peter and
the other Apostles, He extended them an invitation and said Follow Me. We read that
the disciples left everything and followed Jesus. This exact same invitation was extended
by Jesus to the rich young ruler in todays Gospel reading. Jesus did not extend this type
of invitation to everyone He met. There are many who requested to follow Christ after
they were healed and Jesus just told them to Go your way. Invitation to Apostleship
was not for everyone. Thus, Jesuss invitation to the young man here is very special. The
young man was invited to become an Apostle like Matthew, Peter, and John. What an
invitation! However, the young man declined. If the young man had accepted Jesuss
invitation, we would be honoring him today as a great apostle, but as it is, we dont know
even know his name! One thing kept him from God - his love of possessions.
What is that one thing in our life? Is it some sin we refuse to let go? Is it some part
of our life we refuse to surrender to God? Is it some love that we place above our love for
Christ? Whatever it is, Christs message to us is simple: Even one sin, as long as we do
not forsake it and seek Gods forgiveness, can keep us out of the kingdom of heaven! If we
look at that rich young ruler in todays gospel reading and say, thats me, we will then
be made aware of that one thing we still lack and turn it over to Jesus to gain eternal
life!
157
The Parable of the Wise and Foolish Virgins (Matthew 25:1-13)
Then the kingdom of heaven shall be likened to ten virgins who took their lamps and went
out to meet the bridegroom. Now five of them were wise, and five were foolish. Those who
were foolish took their lamps and took no oil with them, but the wise took oil in their vessels
with their lamps. But while the bridegroom was delayed, they all slumbered and slept. And
at midnight a cry was heard: Behold, the bridegroom is coming; go out to meet him! Then all
those virgins arose and trimmed their lamps. And the foolish said to the wise, Give us some of
your oil, for our lamps are going out. But the wise answered, saying, No, lest there should not be
enough for us and you; but go rather to those who sell, and buy for yourselves. And while they
went to buy, the bridegroom came, and those who were ready went in with him to the wedding;
and the door was shut. Afterward the other virgins came also, saying, Lord, Lord, open to us!
But he answered and said, Assuredly, I say to you, I do not know you. Watch therefore, for you
know neither the day nor the hour in which the Son of Man is coming (Matthew 25:1-13).
In this parable Jesus is giving us a warning to be ready for His coming, to always be
prepared to meet Him, for we never know when we will leave this life. He wants us to be ready
for him and not be surprised or stunned when He calls for us. He doesnt want us to dread His
coming for Jesus dreads to be dreaded and this why He warns so often to watch and be ready.
In so many places in the Bible, Jesus and St. Paul tell us to be ready and to be watchful.
In many places in the Bible, it tells us that Jesus will come by surprise at an hour we do not
expect (Matthew 24:42, 44) and St. Paul says that Jesus will come as a thief in the night.
(1 Thessalonians 5:2).
Despite Jesuss many, many warnings in the Bible on being watchful and being ready, most
of us perhaps ignore this warning completely. What are the things that prevent us us from being
watchful and being ready to meet Jesus? What are the things in life that cause us to ignore
these great and serious warnings of Jesus.
1. Do Not Labor for the Food that Perishes - One of the great reasons for not being
ready to meet Jesus that that we often go through life laboring for the food that perishes.
Jesus says in John, Do not labor for the food that perishes, but for the food which endures
to everlasting life, which the Son of Man will give you (John 6:27).
A Christian traveler wrote about a recent trip he had taken to the pyramids of Egypt.
158
He spoke about his experience as follows: We gathered around the tour leader in the
pyramid. Look around you, the tour leader said. At one time, this room glittered with
inconceivable treasures. The kings entire life was spent piling up riches to fill his burial
chamber. Silence fell over the group. I tried to run away the myths of thousands of years
and envision the treasures that once sparkled in the darkness around me. But all I could
see was emptiness, bare walls, musty air, and hollow space. All the treasures had long
been stolen or decayed. Everything gone. Standing there in the heart of the pyramid, I
was struck with how futile lifes treasure hunts were. Not just the Pharaohs, but mine
as well. I too was an accumulator of material things, spending so much time and energy
piling up things: a kitchen full of dumb gadgets, closets stuffed with clothes, a den filled
with unnecessary computer equipment and fancy electronic devices, a garage crammed
with play things, and an attic filled with yesterdays prize objects. My own little pyramid
of treasures. Not as splendid as the kings horde, but just as fragile and transient. How
much better I thought to spend my time and energy on treasures that would last forever.
The eternal treasures that come from giving, caring, forgiving, and ministering. When I
climbed out of that pyramid, I had seen more than just one of the seven wonders of the
world. I had a silent but convincing lesson on treasures. The kind that make a person
rich, and the kind that leave a person poor!
Because we do not really know what is truly valuable and important in life, we often find
ourselves laboring rather pathetically for the trivial things in life, that is, for the food that
perishes instead of for the food that endures to eternal life. One person expressed this so
well in a poem which goes like this: Things, things, things. Things that take our precious
time. Things that hold us from the life sublime. Things that only gather dust. Things
that rot, things that rust. Things that mold, things that creak. Things that harbor foul
disease. Things that mock and defy, till at last we grimly die of things, things, things.
St. Paul warns us in the Pauline Epistle Reading today to use our time wisely and to not
waste our time on unimportant and trivial things, when he says, See then that you walk
circumspectly, not as fools but as wise, redeeming the time, because the days are evil
(Ephesians 5:15).
Someone once said, Man is in love, and he loves what vanishes! The Bible puts it this
way. For all that is in the world - the lust of the flesh, the lust of the eyes, and the pride
of life - is not of the Father but is of the world. And the world is passing and the lust of
it; but he who does the will of God abides forever (1 John 2:16-17).
159
Nine of the worlds most successful financiers recently died as follows: three committed
suicide, one was pardoned from prison so that he could die at home, one died abroad
insolvent, one became insane, one was released from prison, one died a fugitive from
justice, and one died bankrupt living the final years of his life on borrowed money. All
of these men had been multi-millionaires. All of them indeed labored for the food that
perishes and they perished right along with it! Not only does the food we labor for perish,
but we perish along with it if its not the right kind of food.
Isnt that also exactly what happened to those in the days of Noah, when in the Gospel
of Matthew Christ compared the day of His coming to the day the flood came suddenly
to destroy all who were outside the Ark, who were busy with the affairs and desires of the
world.
Isnt that also exactly what happened in the parable of the rich fool in Luke Chapter 12,
who spent his whole life stockpiling and accumulating his goods and possessions. He truly
labored for the food that perishes. Isnt it interesting here how the word fool is used so
often here to describe those who are not watchful or ready and those who do not use their
time wisely.
There is all this focus in the world today on nourishing and pleasing the body, and nothing
at all is ever mentioned on nourishing and pleasing the soul. And this is precisely why
Isaiah the prophet said, Why do you spend money for what is not bread, and your wages
for what does not satisfy? (Isaiah 55:2).
Now what is the food that does not perish? The answer is that it is the food that Christ
gives us. The food that Christ says, the Son of Man will give to you (John 6:27). That
is, the food is Christ Himself! Let us read carefully what Christ says about Himself in
Chapter 6 of the Gospel of John (entire chapter). He says, I am the bread of life. He who
comes to Me shall never hunger, and he who believes in Me shall never thirst (John 6:35).
And in John 6:48-50, Jesus says, I am the bread of life. Your fathers ate the manna in the
wilderness, and are dead. This is the bread which comes down from heaven, that one may
eat of it and not die (John 6:48-50). So Christ tells us in these verses that He Himself is
the food that does not perish, but endures onto eternal life. And He offers Himself to us
in every Divine Liturgy through the Sacrament of Holy Communion.
2. Our forgetfulness - The second reason that we are not watchful and not ready to meet
Christ is that we forget who we really are and where we came from. We read in Genesis
160
2:7 that God in fact made us out of the dust of the ground! We read, And the Lord God
made man from the dust of the ground and breathed into his nostrils the breath of life,
and the man became a living being (Genesis 2:7).
How easily we forget that we are dust! We hide behind the masks of our possessions,
our earthly powers and authority, or our intellectual smartness. We forget that we are
going to die and we push aside our mortality. Forgetting that we are dust, we imagine
ourselves to be more powerful and more capable than we really are. It is precisely this
forgetting that we are dust that lies behind the greed, the selfishness, the injustice, the
hatred, the anxiety, and the brutality that drives our common life. We also forget what
God remembers! God never forgets that we are dust. As we read in Psalm 103:14, For
He knows our frame; He remembers that we are dust. And because God remembers our
dustiness, He surrounds our dust with His massive steadfast love (Psalm 103:11).
Another reason for not being ready that we do not have a spiritual focus and a spiritual
goal. We wander through life aimlessly and recklessly, wasting our time and going with
the flow and being followers of worldly fads and trends.
And our spiritual life lacks authenticity in that we feel that just being around church and
spiritual people is enough for our salvation. That is, we try and borrow our spiritual life
and relationship with God from others. We learn from the parable of the Virgins that we
cannot borrow our relationship with Christ from other people. It must be genuine. We
need our own authentic relationship with Christ. When the five foolish virgins tried to
borrow oil from the five wise virgins, they could not, for a relationship with Christ cannot
be borrowed.
For us to be watchful and ready, we must have a spiritual focus in our life. The following
story comes from the early Christian hermits in the deserts of Egypt (the Desert Fathers):
It seems that a young aspirant to holiness once came to visit the hermitage of an old holy
man who was sitting in the doorway of his quarters at sunset. The old mans dog stretched
out across the threshold as the young spiritual seeker presented his problem to the holy
man. Why is it, Abba, that some who seek God come to the desert and are zealous in
prayer but leave after a year or so, while others, like you, remain faithful to the quest for
a lifetime of prayer? The old man smiled and replied. Let me tell you a story:
161
One day I was sitting here quietly in the sun with my dog. Suddenly a large white rabbit
ran across in front of us. Well, my dog jumped up, barking loudly, and took off after that
big rabbit. He chased the rabbit over the hills with a passion. Soon, other dogs joined
him, attracted by his barking. What a sight it was, as the pack of dogs ran barking across
across the creeks, up stony embankments and through thickets and thorns! Gradually,
however, one by one, the other dogs dropped out of the pursuit, discouraged by the course
and frustrated by the chase. Only my dog continued to hotly pursue the white rabbit.
In that story, young man, is the answer to your question, said the old man. The young
man sat in confused silence. Finally he said, Abba, I dont understand. What is the
connection between the rabbit chase and the quest for holiness? You fail to understand,
answered the old hermit, because you failed to ask the obvious question. Why didnt
the other dogs continue on the chase? And the answer to that question is that they had
not seen the rabbit. For you see, unless you see your prey, the chase is just too difficult.
You will lack all of the passion and determination necessary to perform all the hard work
required to continue the chase!
One of the prime prerequisites in our spiritual growth in general is that we must see the
rabbit. We must have a spiritual goal and focus. We must have a real experience of the
Divine Mystery in some form, if we are to keep up the pursuit for holiness and to have
focus in our spiritual life. Like the dogs in the hermits story we will drop out of the race
if we only follow others - the saints and apostles who have seen the rabbit. Each one
of us must see the rabbit, that is, we must develop a real and authentic relationship
with Jesus, not just being followers or not jut by placing ourselves in the company of good
people.
The fourth and final reason for not being ready is that we do not repent for our sins. When
we do not repent, we cannot change our sinful ways. In order for us to be watchful and
ready, we must repent daily!
According to a legend, God once said to His angels, I want to play a game of hide-and-seek
with humankind. Where you do think I should hide? One angel suggested the deepest
ocean, another the top of the highest mountain. Others the far side of the moon or a
distant star. Finally, one angel came up with the answer that God accepted. He said,
Hide in the human heart. Thats the last place they will think of!
162
Jesus says in Matthew 4:17, Repent for the kingdom of God is at hand. For the kingdom
of God to become a reality for us we must first repent. Repentance is Godly sorrow for
the sins we have committed. Godly sorrow is not like the worldly sorrow which leads to
despair, depression, and even suicide. Godly sorrow leads to repentance, repentance leads
to forgiveness, forgiveness leads to salvation, and salvation establishes the kingdom of God,
the rule of God, in our hearts. Where there is no repentance, no Godly sorrow for our
sins, the kingdom of God will never come. For we cannot have the kingdom of God and
the kingdom of the devil ruling in the same heart.
Repentance is not merely a negative battling against sin and evil; it is also and primarily
a positive progress toward God. Repentance is preparing the human heart for God to
enter. For God came to establish residence not in the moon or the stars but in our heart
and mind. Jesus says, The kingdom of God is within you (Luke 17:21). Here is what
St. Isaac the Syrian says about the kingdom of God within us: Enter eagerly into the
treasure house that is within you, and so you will see the things that are in heaven. The
ladder that leads to the kingdom is hidden in your soul. Dive into yourself and there within
yourself you will find the stairs by which to ascend. The heavenly chamber of which St.
Isaac speaks here is another name for the kingdom of God, the presence and rule of God
in the human heart.
One way by which the kingdom of God becomes a reality in us is by doing Gods will.
Jesus told us so in the Lords Prayer: Thy kingdom come: Thy will be done! Jesus is
telling us here that the kingdom of God comes when we do His will. Kingdom of God and
will of God are tied together. The one does not come without the other. One makes the
other possible. Thy kingdom come! How? It comes when Gods will is done: Thy will
be done.
When Christ comes to rule as King in our heart, He will govern our heart so that we may
love only what He loves. He will govern our mind so that no unholy thought be allowed
to take root within us. He will govern the books we read, the TV shows we watch, the
companionships and the friendships we form, our work and the methods of our business,
our money, the way in which we spend our leisure - all will be under the governance of His
Kingdom. For He will not be King unless He is King of all!
We often put aside our repentance and confession and tell ourselves, there is always tomor-
row. Tomorrow I will read the Bible, tomorrow I will go to church, tomorrow I will repent.
163
Jesus teaches us in this parable of the wise virgins that there comes a point in which it is
just too late and too difficult to turn back to God. The foolish virgins just waited too long,
they slumbered and slept, and thus they could not meet the Bridegroom. It becomes
more difficult to turn to God when we get older, we get used to a certain way of life and it
becomes impossible to change for the better at a certain point in our life, as King Solomon
says in Ecclesiates,
Remember now your Creator in the days of your youth, Before the difficult days come,
And the years draw near when you say, I have no pleasure in them (Ecclesiastes 12:1).
We conclude here with this great quotation from Thomas `a Kempis from his classic book
The Imitation of Christ. `
a Kempis says,
For a small income, a long journey is undertaken (that is, one is willing to take a long journey
just to gain a small amount of money).
For everlasting life, many will scarce once lift a foot from the ground.
The most pitiful reward is sought after and fought for.
For a single bit of money, sometimes there is shameful contention.
For a vain matter and slight promise, people fear not to toil day and night.
But alas, for an unchangeable good, for an inestimable award, for the highest honor, and glory
without end, they grudge even the least fatigue!
164
Who is My Brother?: A Meditation on Mark 3:22-34
Gospel Reading - And the scribes who came down from Jerusalem said, He has Beelze-
bub, and, By the ruler of the demons He casts out demons. So He called them to Himself and
said to them in parables: How can Satan cast out Satan? If a kingdom is divided against itself,
that kingdom cannot stand. And if a house is divided against itself, that house cannot stand.
And if Satan has risen up against himself, and is divided, he cannot stand, but has an end. No
one can enter a strong mans house and plunder his goods, unless he first binds the strong man.
And then he will plunder his house. Assuredly, I say to you, all sins will be forgiven the sons
of men, and whatever blasphemies they may utter; but he who blasphemes against the Holy
Spirit never has forgiveness, but is subject to eternal condemnation because they said, He
has an unclean spirit. Then His brothers and His mother came, and standing outside they sent
to Him, calling Him. And a multitude was sitting around Him; and they said to Him, Look,
Your mother and Your brothers are outside seeking You. But He answered them, saying, Who
is My mother, or My brothers? And He looked around in a circle at those who sat about Him,
and said, Here are My mother and My brothers (Mark 3:22-34).
In the gospel reading today, we read the Jesus as He was sitting with the scribes pharisees,
and the multitude, and the multitude said to Him, Look, Your mother and Your brothers are
outside seeking You. But He answered them, saying, Who is My mother, or My brothers?
And He looked around in a circle at those who sat about Him, and said, Here are My mother
and My brothers.
Jesus, of course, is pointing to the sinners, the rejected, the downtrodden, the outcasts,
the aged, the tired, and the despised. These were Jesuss friends. These were his mother and
brothers.
Jesus loved being with sinners. They were his past-time and his utmost joy. Jesus loved
being in the company of sinners. They were his purpose for coming into the world, as He says
I did not come to call the righteous but sinners to repentance.
In Jesus calling the multitude his mother and his brothers, He is setting a great example for
us to follow. How many of us really imitate Christ and call everyone our mother and brothers.
How many of us reach out to the rejected and the despised and treat them as our mother and
165
brother.
The world today calls someone a brother when he has something it wants from him: people
in authority, those who have influence, those who have money, those with power - these are my
brothers. The world teaches us to be attracted to those who are pretty, those who are funny,
those who are powerful and influential, those who are rich, and those who can help you in some
worldly way.
Isnt it funny that people like that were never the brothers of Jesus.
1. Zacchaeus - he was one of the most rejected people, and Jesus called out to him Zaccheaus,
make haste, come down for I must stay at your house today.
3. The sinner woman who wiped the feet of Jesus with the hair of her head, as the pharisees
and scribes murmured, If this man were a prophet, he would of known in what manner
she was touching him.
4. Mary, Martha, and Lazarus - an extremely poor family in the town of Bethany.
5. The man at the pool of Bethesda - who waited 38 years for someone to throw him into
the pool
6. The adulteress woman who was going to be stoned to death until Jesus said let those who
have no sin cast the first stone.
7. The Samaritan woman who has 5 husbands and was living with a person who was not her
husband.
Are these types of people are brothers and mother? Do we call a person a brother who is
rejected, despised, or an outcast. How often do we seek out such a person? How often do we
befriend such a person?
166
In the parable of the Good Samaritan, we read about a priest and a levite who were walking
and probably on their way to the temple to worship. They see a man wounded in the ditch, and
they walk by and completely ignore him as if he wasnt there. Then we see a Samaritan, who
supposedly has no dealings with Jews, who helps the wounded man (a Jew) and takes care of
him. In this parable, we see that the priest and the levite, who are Jews, are guilty here of a sin
common to all of us. They are guilty of the sin of omission, that is, the sin of doing nothing.
They saw the wounded man lying in the ditch half dead (Luke 10:30) and they walked away.
They did nothing!
Recall the parable of the Rich Man and Lazarus (Luke 16:19-31). In this parable, there
was a very rich man. A poor man named Lazarus sat outside the gate of the rich mans house,
and he was a beggar, full of sores (Luke 16:20). Everyday, the rich man would walk right by
Lazarus, not even noticing him! Even the dogs noticed and cared for Lazarus since we read that
the dogs came and licked his sores (Luke 16:21). So Jesus tells us here that the rich mans
treatment of Lazarus was not even at the level of a dog! Finally, in this parable, we read that
Lazarus died and went to heaven, and the rich man went to hell. Why did the rich man end up
in hell? What did he do wrong? Was he cruel to Lazarus? No he wasnt. Did he verbally or
physically abuse Lazarus? No he didnt. Did he humiliate or insult Lazarus? No he didnt. He
didnt even notice him and but thats precisely the point. He did nothing! And that was the sin
that condemned him to hell!
How great would it be if we could always see the image of God in our neighbor. Someone
once said If we were able to see Gods image in our neighbor, do you think weapons and generals
would be needed? If only the rich man could see the image of God in Lazarus who was sitting
on his doorstep, then he might have helped him.
Jesus talks about his second coming and the final judgment in Matthew 25:1-46. Specifically,
in Matthew 25:41-44, Jesus speaks very strongly about condemning certain people on the last
day when they appear before His judgment. Here Jesus says some very powerful words. He
says, Depart from me you cursed into the eternal fire prepared for the devil and his angels
(Matthew 25:41). Why does Jesus say these terrible words? Jesus Himself tells us why. He says,
I was a stranger and you did not welcome Me, naked and you did not clothe Me, sick and in
prison and you did not visit Me (Matthew 25:43). Here we see how Jesus condemns those who
167
forget their real mother and brothers. The good that we could of done for others, but we did
not. It is for this reason among many others that we repeatedly say in the Divine Liturgy Lord
have mercy.
What a staggering thing it is in Jesuss great discourse here on the last judgment in Matthew
25:1-46 that there is no mention of the so-called great sins: adultery, fornication, murder,
stealing, blasphemy, etc... There is no mention whatsoever of these. But rather Jesus speaks
of those who neglected something and thus did nothing about it. Again, we recite these strong
words. I was a stranger and you did not welcome Me, naked and you did not clothe Me, sick
and in prison and you did not visit Me.
Is this not perhaps the most subtle kind of murder (the sin of omission) in which we overlook
people who are in need and are dying, not just for food, but for a word of encouragement,
friendship, comfort, or a helping hand. Mother Theresa once said, The biggest disease today
is not AIDS, cancer, leprosy or tuberculosis, but rather the feeling of being unwanted, uncared
for, and deserted by everybody. The greatest evil today is the lack of love and charity, the
terrible indifference toward ones neighbor who lives at the roadside assaulted by exploitation,
corruption, poverty, and disease.
Jesus wants us to pay attention here to our real mother and brothers. So on this feast of
St. Mary, let us humble ourselves like the Virgin Mary and pay attention to our real mother
and brothers because thats the only we will get to heaven.
168
Keep Watch: A Meditation on Matthew 24:3-35
Gospel Reading - The gospel reading today is Matthew 24:3-35. In this Gospel reading,
Jesus talks about the end of the world and His second coming. The Gospel reading last
Sunday is identical to this one, but was read from the Gospel chapter 13 of the Gospel
according to St. Mark. So we the same same Gospel readings in the last two weeks that
talk about the the end of the world and the second coming of Jesus.
The church in all its wisdom puts these readings about the end of the world and the second
coming of Jesus at the end of the Coptic church year. We will celebrate the new Coptic
year this Friday September 11.
When we read these Gospels one should not be caught up as to exactly when the end of
the world will come and so on. We get so wrapped up in predicting the end of the world.
Rather the theme and the focus in these readings that Christ is trying to teach us to to
keep watch. Jesus mentions this several times in todays Gospel reading and especially
in the Matins Gospel reading where Jesus uses the word 5 times in 5 verses. He says, But
of that day and hour no one knows, not even the angels in heaven, nor the Son, but only
the Father. Take heed, watch and pray; for you do not know when the time is. It is like a
man going to a far country, who left his house and gave authority to his servants, and to
each his work, and commanded the doorkeeper to watch. Watch therefore, for you do not
know when the master of the house is comingin the evening, at midnight, at the crowing
of the rooster, or in the morning lest, coming suddenly, he find you sleeping. And what
I say to you, I say to all: Watch!
Thus the main theme in the Gospel readings the past two weeks is to keep watch and
pay close attention to our spiritual life. The only thing that is relevant in the second
coming of Jesus for us is the day we die for in that day our world ends and our eternal fate
is determined. Thus, the end of the world that Jesus refers to in these readings is personal.
It is the end of our life that marks the end of the world and Jesuss second coming for us.
So Jesus wants us to be ready for this day for we do not know when the time is. Jesus
comes like a thief in the night and at a time that we do not expect.
The reason that Jesus says watch so many times in these verses and elsewhere in the
Bible is because He knows how easy it is in life to lose focus and not watch. Jesus knows
169
how easy it is to sleep and not be watchful in our spiritual life.
What are some of the things that prevent us from being watchful?
Parable of the rich Farmer - One of the great obstacles in being watchful is that we
spend too much time working and making money, accumulating, wealth, possessions, and
things. We become materialistic and get caught up in fashions, fads, and fame. Recall
the parable of the rich farmer in Luke 12:13-31. In this parable, we have a farmer who
spends his whole life accumulating wealth and made big plans for building bigger barns so
he could make more and retire comfortably. But Jesus called this man a fool. He told
him Fool! This night your soul will be required of you; then whose will those things be?
Life is not about making money, accumulating wealth, and retiring comfortably. When
this becomes our goal, we lose sight of our spiritual life and we lose our spiritual purpose
and focus, and then when we least expect it, Jesus comes calling for our soul. Jesus said in
Luke 12:15, , for ones life does not consist in the abundance of the things he possesses.
Jesus also says in John, Do not labor for the food that perishes, but for the food which
endures to everlasting life, which the Son of Man will give you (John 6:27).
The Parable of the Wise and Foolish Virgins - Another great example that Jesus
gives us about not being watchful in the Bible is found in the parable of of the Wise and
Foolish Virgins. In this parable, 5 virgins were wise and 5 were foolish. The 5 wise virgins
went to heaven, and for the five foolish, we read that the door was shut.
And the foolish said to the wise, Give us some of your oil, for our lamps are going out.
But the wise answered, saying, No, lest there should not be enough for us and you; but
go rather to those who sell, and buy for yourselves. And while they went to buy, the
bridegroom came, and those who were ready went in with him to the wedding; and the
door was shut.
This parable tells that that we can be in church all of our life, we can be servants, deacons,
come to church early and everything, and still not be watchful. Moreover, we learn from
the parable of the Virgins that we cannot borrow our relationship with Christ from other
people. It must be genuine. We need our own authentic relationship with Christ. When
the five foolish virgins tried to borrow oil from the five wise virgins, they could not, for a
relationship with Christ cannot be borrowed. We feel that just being around church and
spiritual people is enough for our salvation and we try and borrow our spiritual life and
170
relationship with God from others. This is not sufficient for our salvation. We need to be
watchful!
Majoring on Minors - One of the great hindrances of being watchful in our life is that
we spend too much time majoring on minors. That is we spend too much time occupying
our minds with minor little things that dont matter in life. Because we do not really
know what is truly valuable and important in life, we often find ourselves laboring rather
pathetically for the trivial things in life. We pursue useless hobbies that occupy our time,
we spend too much time talking, cooking, shopping, watching television, leisure, pleasure,
decorating the house, looking fashionable, reading useless things, or getting wrapped up
in too many activities.
St. Paul warns us to not major on minors and to use our time wisely and to not waste our
time on unimportant and trivial things, when he says, See then that you walk circum-
spectly, not as fools but as wise, redeeming the time, because the days are evil (Ephesians
5:15).
Someone once said, Man is in love, and he loves what vanishes! The Bible puts it this
way. For all that is in the world - the lust of the flesh, the lust of the eyes, and the pride
of life - is not of the Father but is of the world. And the world is passing and the lust of
it; but he who does the will of God abides forever (1 John 2:16-17).
One of the questions we have to ask ourselves is how much of God do we want? Do we
want one pennys worth or do we want the free riches of God. If we were to go into a bank
and the bank teller gives us the keys to the safe which contains a million dollars and tells
171
us to take anything we want and we go in and come out with only 1 cent, whose fault
would that be? Whose fault is it when we take such small portions of the free riches of
God?
So as we begin the new year, let us be watchful in our spiritual life and to totally submit
our life to God. As St. Paul says so beautifully in Philippians 4:19, And my God shall
supply all your need according to His riches in glory by Christ Jesus.
172
Making Disciples: Luke 5:1-11
Gospel Reading - So it was, as the multitude pressed about Him to hear the word of
God, that He stood by the Lake of Gennesaret, and saw two boats standing by the lake; but
the fishermen had gone from them and were washing their nets. Then He got into one of the
boats, which was Simons, and asked him to put out a little from the land. And He sat down
and taught the multitudes from the boat. When He had stopped speaking, He said to Simon,
Launch out into the deep and let down your nets for a catch. But Simon answered and said to
Him, Master, we have toiled all night and caught nothing; nevertheless at Your word I will let
down the net. And when they had done this, they caught a great number of fish, and their net
was breaking. So they signaled to their partners in the other boat to come and help them. And
they came and filled both the boats, so that they began to sink. When Simon Peter saw it, he
fell down at Jesuss knees, saying, Depart from me, for I am a sinful man, O Lord! For he and
all who were with him were astonished at the catch of fish which they had taken; and so also
were James and John, the sons of Zebedee, who were partners with Simon. And Jesus said to
Simon, Do not be afraid. From now on you will catch men. So when they had brought their
boats to land, they forsook all and followed Him.
Discipleship - Todays gospel reading is all about discipleship. Jesus teaches us here how
to be His disciples. Jesus tells us here through Peter that discipleship involves a way of
life, that is, a way of life with Jesus in the center.
They Stayed up all night - In this story, we read about how Peter and the other disciples
stayed up all night and caught no fish. The fish is a symbol of those who follow Jesus.
Jesus tells them to go out into the deep, for they were in shallow water. The shallow water
here represents living a shallow way of life and a shallow relationship with Christ, and the
staying up all night represents that life without Christ is a life of emptiness, frustration,
lack of productivity and no progress. The deep water here represents the depth of our
spiritual life with Christ. When a person develops depth in their relationship with Christ,
that is, a real and personal relationship with Him, things change. They become fruitful,
joyful, and productive.
Peter Falls Down at Jesuss Knees - When we read this story, why does Peter fall
to the knees of Christ after seeing all those fish? You would of thought that he would
173
be happy and rejoicing, but he wasnt. For you see, when Peter saw all those fish, he
immediately realized that Christ was teaching him about discipleship and trying to make
him into a disciple. Peter suddenly recognized Christs purpose for him. Christ wanted
Peter to turn his life over to Him. Turn to Me and Live, says the Lord in the book of
Isaiah.
The Elements of Discipleship - As we see in this story, discipleship requires five basic
elements: humility, repentance, faith, submission, and giving glory to God. The moment
Peter saw those fish, he immediately recognized that he lacked these five attributes, so he
feel at Jesuss knees in repentance, submitting his life to Christ, giving God the glory and
not feeling worthy to be associated with Christ. It was precisely at this point that Christ
reassured him of his discipleship and told him From now on you will catch men. And
then we read that these men submitted their lives to Christ, So when they had brought
their boats to land, they forsook all and followed Him.
How Jesus Deals with us in Difficult Times - This story also teaches a lot about
how Jesus deals with us in times of difficulty and adversity.
The Disciples were Frustrated - There is no doubt that Peter and the other disciples
were frustrated, defeated, worried, anxious, and upset about not catching any fish. Fishing
was the way they earned their living. Their whole livelihood depended on it. They were
so frustrated that they came to shore. As soon as Jesus told them to go to the deep, Peter
impatiently complained that they were up all night and caught nothing.
We are Often Impatient with God - When we are in difficult times, in times of
suffering or loss, we often lose our faith in God, and we often are too impatient with God
to let Him do his work, as Peter was. We try and do things our way and never give God
the chance to do His will. We crowd God out of our situation, trying to use our limited
knowledge and logic to understand our situation. This is why we worry so much and often
174
make a mess out of everything when we go through difficulties, troubles, or suffering in
life.
Overcoming our Troubles - We can only overcome our troubles and difficulties in life
if we see meaning in them. Someone once said, To live is to suffer; to survive is to
find meaning in suffering. We Christians start out with the premise that there is always
meaning in suffering because God loves and cares for us; if a cross falls on our shoulders,
it falls there only because God has permitted it. And He permits it only because of
the good He knows can come out of it. He uses trouble to make us more patient, more
understanding, more faithful, more holy. We cannot always see or understand His purpose.
But we believe it and we live and walk and die by this faith that there is meaning in all
that happens to us once we commit our life to Jesus our Lord.
So when a difficulty faces us, instead of being depressed by it, we should say, I wonder
what God is trying to say to me through this difficulty? I wonder what little nugget of
gold He has hidden for me within this difficulty? By His grace I am going to find it!
Suffering for Gods Glory - God sometimes allows difficulty and suffering in our life
because He wants us to glorify Him in our suffering. God wants the rest of the world to
witness and see His true children. When we go through hardships, suffering, or pain, we
must remember these great words of St. Paul, For I consider, that the sufferings of the
present time, are not worth comparing to the glory that will be revealed in us (Romans
8:18).
Dealing with Anxiety, Worry, and Stress - Peter and the rest of the disciples were
greatly anxious and worried when they did not catch any fish. In times of anxiety, worry,
and distress, we must always remember these comforting words of St. Paul, Have no
175
anxiety about anything, but in everything by prayer and supplication, with thanksgiving,
let your requests be made known to God. And the peace of God which surpasses all
understanding will guard your hearts and minds in Christ Jesus. (Philippians 4:6-7).
Is St. Paul Realistic? So St. Paul says here, Have no anxiety about anything. When
we hear these words, we feel like saying to St. Paul, Come on now St. Paul, be realistic.
Who can live like that? How can someone afflicted with a malignancy or a serious illness
not be anxious? How can someone who is trying to make it through school not be anxious?
How can someone with a demanding job not be anxious? How can someone trying to deal
with peer pressure not be anxious? How can someone who just lost their job not be
anxious? How can we not be anxious when we live in the age of anxiety?
St. Paul Was in Prison When He Wrote These Words - Yet, St. Paul says, Have
no anxiety about anything. So we again talk to St. Paul and say, St. Paul, really, what
kind of advice is that? Maybe St. Paul was writing to people of some other world, some
other planet, or some other life, but certainly not this one. But the fact is, he was not!
When St. Paul wrote these words, he himself was having a pretty rough time of it. You
see, St. Paul wrote these words while he was sitting in a prison cell in Rome! So when St.
Paul wrote these words, he wasnt sitting on a sofa in front of a comfortable fireplace. St.
Paul was no armchair philosopher. He was a realist, who was truly acquainted with life!
For He Cares for You - Yet St. Paul says, Have no anxiety about anything. But the
main thing here is that St. Paul does not stop with these words. He goes on to give us
the secret of how to overcome anxiety, as he says, Have no anxiety about anything, but
in everything by prayer and supplication, with thanksgiving, let your requests be made
known to God (Philippians 4:6-7). So St. Paul says here that we should let our requests,
our needs, our fears, be made known to God. Bring them to God says St. Paul, always,
in everything. St. Paul tells us here that we can talk to God about absolutely anything
that is troubling us. We can do this in the absolute knowledge and trust that He cares
for you (1 Peter 5:7).
Hezekiah - In the Old Testament, there is a beautiful example from the life of Hezekiah in
2 Kings 19:14. Hezekiah received a very disturbing letter from his enemy. It was the kind
of letter that would cause a person much anxiety. We read, And Hezekiah received the
letter from the hand of the messengers, and read it; and Hezekiah went up into the house
176
of the Lord and spread it before the Lord (2 Kings 19:14). So whatever our invading
anxiety is, we can always do as Hezekiah did, spread it before the Lord in prayer.
In John 14:1, Jesus says, Let not your hearts be troubled. Then Jesus goes on to give
us the secret of a trouble-free heart. He says, Believe in God, believe also in Me. So we
should trust God completely and spread it all out before Him in prayer.
Bonhoeffer - There is a beautiful story about the German theologian Dietrich Bonhoef-
fer. Bonhoeffer was in prison during the second world war in Hitlers Germany. He was
separated from his family until the time of his execution. He certainly had a reason for
much anxiety. But through Christ, he had learned to overcome his anxiety, and he wrote
in his diary these beautiful words: From the moment we wake until we fall asleep, we
must commend our loved ones wholly and unreservedly to God, and leave them in His
hands, transforming our anxiety for them into prayers on their behalf.
Prescription for Anxiety - In nothing be anxious, says St. Paul, but in everything
by prayer and supplication, with thanksgiving, let your requests be made known to God.
And this is St. Pauls prescription for anxiety: take it to the Lord in prayer. And one
spiritual writer says about this verse, Tell God every detail of your needs in earnest and
thankful prayer.
Closing - As we close then, we learn about what it means to be a true disciple of Jesus: we
need to have faith and let God do His work in our life, to let God be glorified in our life, to
submit our life to Jesus through repentance and humility, and learn how to deal with our
sufferings, hardships, and anxieties through faith, prayer, supplications, and thanksgiving.
177
The Parable of the Sower: Luke 8:4-15
The Gospel reading for the first two Sundays of Hatoor (yesterday and next Sunday) is
the Parable of the Sower (Luke 8:4-15 and Matthew 13:1-9). Yesterdays Gospel reading was in
Luke 8:4-15 and next weeks is in Matthew 13:1-9.
Gospel Reading (Luke 8:4-15) - And when a great multitude had gathered, and they
had come to Him from every city, He spoke by a parable: A sower went out to sow his seed.
And as he sowed, some fell by the wayside; and it was trampled down, and the birds of the air
devoured it. Some fell on rock; and as soon as it sprang up, it withered away because it lacked
moisture. And some fell among thorns, and the thorns sprang up with it and choked it. But
others fell on good ground, sprang up, and yielded a crop a hundredfold. When He had said
these things He cried, He who has ears to hear, let him hear! Then His disciples asked Him,
saying, What does this parable mean? And He said, To you it has been given to know the
mysteries of the kingdom of God, but to the rest it is given in parables, that Seeing they may
not see, And hearing they may not understand. Now the parable is this: The seed is the word
of God. Those by the wayside are the ones who hear; then the devil comes and takes away the
word out of their hearts, lest they should believe and be saved. But the ones on the rock are
those who, when they hear, receive the word with joy; and these have no root, who believe for a
while and in time of temptation fall away. Now the ones that fell among thorns are those who,
when they have heard, go out and are choked with cares, riches, and pleasures of life, and bring
no fruit to maturity. But the ones that fell on the good ground are those who, having heard the
word with a noble and good heart, keep it and bear fruit with patience.
In todays Gospel reading, Jesus compares the truth, which is His word, to a seed. The
word of God is the seed: His parables, His healings, His miracles, and Jesus Himself who
was cast as a seed into the ground and buried to be raised to new life.
The Soils - The emphasis in this parable is not on the seed or the sower but rather on the
soil which is the final determining factor as to whether or not the seed bears fruit. Jesus
tells us that there are basically four types of soil from which seeds can grow. Therefore,
it is perhaps more appropriate to call this parable the Parable of the Soils. We read that
the seed falls on four types of soil, and three out of four reject it. If we have experienced
178
any kind of crop failure in our life, it is perhaps because Gods word is preached but we
dont accept it.
Let us briefly examine the four types of soil that Jesus talks about in this parable.
1. The Seeds by the Wayside - We have all heard of hardening of the arteries, but a far
more deadly disease is the hardening of the heart toward God. Hardening of the arteries
stops the flow of blood causing physical death, while a hardening of the heart prevents us
from receiving the Bread of Life causing the death of the soul.
Nothing stops the word of God but a closed heart! It stops it completely, it doesnt
penetrate it at all. It is of these hearts that Jesus said, Neither will they be per-
suaded, though one rise from the dead (Luke 16:31).
But when we hear this, we object, saying this cannot be true of me. There is no
way that my heart is hard. We should think again!
How are Hearts Hardened? - First, some are hardened by pride. We sometimes think
that we have the answer to every question. We think that because we have grown
older, that we are wiser and smarter. This is perhaps why Jesus urges us to be like
little children.
Secondly, since we were born into Christianity, we take the truths of our faith for
granted. Our church beliefs make no impression on us any more. We just take them
for granted never pondering what they really mean or imply.
Thirdly, the heart can also become hardened to the word of God through lack of
cultivation. Just as no water hardens the soil, so no prayer, no church, no sacraments,
no relationship with Christ, hardens the soul.
If only once - just once - the word of God could get through, what a transformation
it would bring. If only we could accept the seed, what hope, faith, love, and power it
would bring. But we remain hard.
These are precisely the people who admire the word of God: What a lovely liturgy,
What a great verse, What a moving Bible passage, or What a great Bible study,
179
and then thats the end of it. They receive it with joy, but thats as far as it goes
because they have no roots in themselves.
As strange as it seems, one of the ways of rejecting the word of God is by admiring
it. Let us illustrate this point. A church father once told a make-believe story about
a flock of geese that milled around in a filthy barnyard imprisoned by a high wooden
fence. One day a preaching goose stepped onto an old crate and began to preach. He
criticized the geese for being satisfied to live in that filthy barnyard when God had
given them wings with which to fly into the sky. He spoke of the goodness of God in
giving the geese wings. He urged them to use their wings to fly out of the barnyard
to better surroundings. This pleased the geese. They nodded their heads in approval
and commented on what a great preacher the goose was. They marveled at what he
had said and applauded his eloquence. All this they did. But one thing they never
did. They did not use their wings to leave the barnyard. They went right back to
their old ways.
We can apply this story to ourselves. When we attend a liturgy or read a nice verse
in the Bible, or attend a nice Bible study, we are deeply moved. But then what?
Most of us go back to our old ways. We hear the truth and admire it, but we do
not accept it. And so we continue to live with our hatreds, prejudices, our pride, our
envy, and our wars.
This is probably the saddest part of this parable. The soil that could of produced
greatness produces a jungle. A soil that produces weeds has great potential. It must
be good soil, otherwise weeds would not grow there. Good soil has so much potential
that weeds can actually burst through asphalt and concrete. But as Jesus says, the
thorns grow quick and fast, and they soon choke the seed.
There are a lot of good people represented here in this type of soil. They receive the
word of God and they really want to serve God, but they become involved in so many
other interests that God is gradually choked out. It is not that the things that we are
busy with that are necessarily bad, they actually may be good things, but they drain
our energies and turn our hearts away from Christ. A real-estate salesman once said,
My prayers dont even reach the ceiling before Im thinking about that real estate
deal thats hanging over me.
180
So many activities that are good clutter up our lives that they become the enemy of
Christ. Jesus poses a question to each one of us: what thorns are we permitting to
grow in our own life that choke out our loyalty to God?
The good soil represents those of us who receive the word of God and it becomes a
permanent part of us. We keep it in our heart and bring forth fruit with patience. It
grows and slowly takes possession of our desires, our emotions, our thoughts and our
actions. Little by little, our lives become fruitful and God-like.
We must admit that there are times when we are any one of the three poor types of
soil or perhaps we are a strange combination of all of them. The point that Jesus is
making here is that our soil can always be improved. Hard soil can be plowed; rocks
and thorns can be removed. By care and cultivation, our hearts can become fertile
and productive, like the good soil that produces a hundredfold.
One of the key ways to improve our soil is to improve our hearing. We need to become
sensitive to Gods voice as a sleeping mother is to a cry of her infant.
Listening is a great virtue, really. We pay the highest respect to someone when we
sincerely listen to them.
In our culture, we have the habit of talking too much and listening too little. We go
to social gatherings and everyone is talking at the same time and no one is listening.
A church father once said that we always have the wrong switch on: the switch of
the mouth is always open and the switch of the ears is always closed.
A woman once went to a social gathering and wanted to test how well her friends
listened to her, so as soon as she got to the gathering, she told her friends, I just
shot my husband today. And then her friends said, very nice, good for you dear.
They were not listening to anything she said.
We have to learn to listen to the word of God, and to each other. We have to listen
to the guidance from our parents, our teachers, our spiritual fathers, and the elders.
At the Transfiguration of Jesus, we read While he was still speaking, behold, a
bright cloud overshadowed them; and suddenly a voice came out of the cloud, saying,
181
This is My beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased. Hear Him! Here we see the
importance that God places on being a good hearer and listener.
We must examine ourselves and see what kind of soil we have and how our hearing is
related to that soil. May we always be hearers to the word of God and have the good
soil that Christ is looking for. We close here with this great verse from the Gospels:
If anyone loves Me, he will keep My word; and My Father will love him, and We will
come to him and make Our home with him (John 14:23).
182
Come and See
Gospel Reading - Now Philip was from Bethsaida, the city of Andrew and Peter. Philip
found Nathanael and said to him, We have found Him of whom Moses in the law, and also
the prophets, wrote Jesus of Nazareth, the son of Joseph. And Nathanael said to him, Can
anything good come out of Nazareth? Philip said to him, Come and see. Jesus saw Nathanael
coming toward Him, and said of him, Behold, an Israelite indeed, in whom is no deceit!
Nathanael said to Him, How do You know me? Jesus answered and said to him, Before
Philip called you, when you were under the fig tree, I saw you. Nathanael answered and said to
Him, Rabbi, You are the Son of God! You are the King of Israel! Jesus answered and said to
him, Because I said to you, I saw you under the fig tree, do you believe? You will see greater
things than these. And He said to him, Most assuredly, I say to you, hereafter you shall see
heaven open, and the angels of God ascending and descending upon the Son of Man (John
1:44-52).
We read here that after Philip the Apostle met Jesus, he then found Nathanael and said,
We have found Him of whom Moses in the law, and also the prophets, wrote Jesus of Nazareth,
the son of Joseph. And Nathanael responded by saying, Can anything good come out of
Nazareth? Philips reply was quick, as he said, Come and see. In this gospel reading, we wish
to concentrate on these words: Come and see.
Jesus has always been telling us to come and see. When Thomas said that he would not
believe because he had not seen the resurrected Christ, Jesus appeared to him and invited him
to come and see and even touch His wounds. Thomas came and saw and believed. He was
never the same again. When Peter confessed that Jesus was the Messiah, the Son of the Living
God, Jesus charged him not to reveal publicly the mystery of who He was. He wanted people to
believe in Him not because they heard it second-hand from others. He wanted people to come to
Him personally, first-hand, to see Him, listen to Him, follow Him, and discover by an intensely
personal experience who He is.
Many of us have faith, but it is a second-hand faith that we have inherited from our families.
We need to make it a first-hand, personal faith of our own, like Jobs faith when he said, I had
learned of You O Lord by the hearing of the ear; but now I see You with my own eyes (Job
42:5). This can happen only if we come to Jesus personally, commit our life to Him, and see
183
for ourselves what miracles He can work in our lives, what understanding He can give us, what
power, what love, what grace, what forgiveness, what peace, what joy!
Come and see says Philip. Come and see what a change Jesus can make in our life.
He will destroy the old, sinful nature to allow the image of God in us to shine forth in all its
attractive splendor. He will help us achieve our great potential of becoming partakers of divine
nature (2 Peter 1:4). He will take away our guilt. He will help carry our burdens. He will raise
us when we fall. He will comfort us in our affliction. He will strengthen us in our weakness.
Come and see says Philip. Come and see how He can change your tastes in life. A
modestly paid newspaper reporter turned to magazine writing and became an immediate success.
With a soaring income, her mode of living changed radically. No more scrimping, she spent on
a lavish scale. Then came the stock market crash. Her investments evaporated. Even worse, her
spirits hit rock bottom. Friends tried to get her to rebound, but she did not respond. Come
on now, snap out of it, said a friend. You were poor before and it wasnt so awful. But it
was different then, moaned the writer. Now I have expensive tastes.
After we come to Christ, our sense of taste improves so drastically that we can never be
satisfied any more with the cheap and sordid - not after we have tasted life with Christ! Taste
and see that the Lord is good, says the Psalmist (Psalm 34:8).
Come and see says Philip. Come and see what great things God can do in our life. Come
and see what purpose and meaning He can add to your life. Come and see what a great plan
He has for your life. Come and see what love you will find in Him. Come and see the promises
He has made to you. Come and see what a great victory He has won for you through His death
and resurrection. Come and see how eager He is to give you the kingdom. Come and see what a
great future He has prepared for you. Come and open the door to let Him come to your heart.
He wants to have dinner with you as He did with Zacchaeus. He wants to establish a close
personal, intimate relationship with you.
Come and see. A well known agnostic one day approached a farmer who had a simple and
radiant Christian faith. Tell me what your faith means to you and why you are a Christian,
asked the agnostic. The farmer refused saying, You could demolish my arguments in an instant.
Im not clever enough to argue with you. The agnostic said gently, I dont want to argue with
you; I just want you to tell me simply what this Christ means to you. The farmer did. When he
had finished, there were tears in the great agnostics eyes. Then he said, I would give my right
184
hand if only I could believe that. It was no clever argument that touched the agnostics heart,
just the personal experience of a simple farmer who came to Jesus and saw. Can anything
good come out of Nazareth? Come and see and Taste and see that the Lord is good.
A Scientists Confession - A brilliant scientist said once to his class, Before giving
my lecture, I want to tell you something. I am a Christian. I was brought up in a Christian
home with my brother, and the two of us were the closest pals. We were both at the university
together. My father and mother were deeply religious. My brother and I had no time for religion.
We thought that religion was only for old people, but we were scientists and we thought we had
found our way through by what we were pleased to call scientific methods. Then my brother
was killed. My father and mother had resources, and with their resources they could meet that
shattering loss. But I had no one. I had no resources at all. One night, broken-hearted and
with all my proud science in ruined uselessness at my feet, I knelt down. I did not know how to
pray. I had scorned prayer, but I put out my hand and I found that it was grasped. I knew that
Someone was coming to my help and somehow I knew it was Christ. I have been a Christian
ever since and no one, nothing, will ever take Christ away from me any more.
Come and see and Taste and see that the Lord is good.
185
Lukewarmness in Service - Part I
1. Introduction
186
of a person who is in the church and a servant in the church, who is supposed to be
with and in Jesus. Thus, to be lukewarm, be definition, you must be a person in the
church who is supposed to be spiritually active and is one who shows outer signs of
this activity, but internally this person is far from Jesus. This is why Jesus vomits
this person, or expels this person, signifying that this person is really living apart
from Christ and far from Christ.
Jesus also says that the lukewarm person here lives in a state of delusion and blindness.
Outwardly the lukewarm person projects an image of being spiritually rich, wealthy,
and have need of nothing but internally they are wretched, miserable, poor, blind,
and naked.
Thus, first and foremost, lukewarmness is a total and complete state of hypocrisy.
Secondly, it is a state of delusion and blindness. St. Paul says of the lukewarm person,
They have a form of godliness, but they deny the power thereof (2 Timothy 3:5).
That is, the lukewarm person is outwardly religious but internally denies the power
of God. They are empty within.
As we noted earlier, lukewarmness is the most dangerous and worst spiritual condition
for the servant. In the subsequent discussion, we will first study some attributes and
signs of a lukewarm servant and then discuss the cure and solution to lukewarmness.
187
Lukewarmness is a grave sickness of the soul which can strike at any stage of
ones interior life. We say that a tepid soul has fallen away. It has grown weary
of the interior struggle. It has lost Christ from view. Tepidity always entails a
crisis of faith, hope and love. The afflicted person sees Christ as in indifferent
figure. The soul is loathe to make the same selfless affirmations of earlier times.
It increasingly becomes satisfied with less and less devotion.
One of the church fathers says lukewarmness is a kind of sadness which makes a
person sluggish in the performance of spiritual exercises on account of the effort
they require. That is, a lukewarm person becomes lazy in their spiritual life.
(b) Carelessness
188
they are lifeless in their service. Service becomes a job for them. The servant
may even show a singular zeal in performing these works, but they leave a bitter
aftertaste.
What once was love of God deteriorates more and more into mere love of the law,
just like the Pharisees. What once was love of truth is now merely an acknowl-
edgment of the truth. What once was love for neighbor is now an indifference
towards him.
Lukewarmness also leads to carelessness in the service itself. The servant becomes
unorganized and not careful with attendance, lesson preparation, spiritual activ-
ities, one-on-one service, their personal prayers, and church liturgy and doctrine.
The servant, one way or another, finds himself doing less and less as they decline
on the plane of lukewarmness.
The lukewarm servants carelessness leads to a great indifference in their service:
indifference in the service itself, indifference towards whom they serve, and in-
difference towards their peers and fellow servants. The lukewarm servant really
doesnt care if the service thrives or not, and doesnt care if it succeeds or fails.
Its all the same to him or her! Their minimal effort in service is enough for
them. The never serve beyond expectations but most often serve well below
expectations.
189
The Parable of the Unjust Steward
Gospel Reading - He also said to the disciples, There was a rich man who had a steward,
and charges were brought to him that this man was wasting his goods. And he called him and
said to him, What is this that I hear about you? Turn in the account of your stewardship,
for you can no longer be steward. And the steward said to himself, What shall I do, since
my master is taking the stewardship away from me? I am not strong enough to dig, and I am
ashamed to beg. I have decided what to do, so that people may receive me into their houses
when I am put out of the stewardship. So, summoning his masters debtors on by one, he said
to the first, How much do you owe my master? He said A hundred measures of oil. And he
said to him, Take your bill, and sit down quickly and write fifty. Then he said to another,
And how much do you owe? He said, A hundred measures of wheat. He said to him, Take
your bill, and write eighty. The master commended the dishonest steward for his shrewdness;
for the sons of this world are more shrewd in dealing with their own generation than the sons
of light. And I tell you, make friends for yourselves by means of unrighteous mammon, so that
when it fails they may receive you into the eternal habitations (Luke 16:1-9).
The story of the dishonest steward is a mystery, begging questions that must be answered
in order to get to the truth behind the character. Wise in worldly terms, spiritually he is a
forgerer, thief, and embezzler.
He altered bills in which he reduced the debts of the clients by writing lower rates. Then
when the owner of the goods fired him, the clients who reduced for themselves the rates would
be indebted to him. So he would share with them the difference once he was thrown out.
Clearly, the aim is to say that the sons of light should have the same wisdom as the steward,
but without theft and pilfering. Because this world is unrighteous, all its money is unrighteous.
Man, therefore, must squander this money on the poor and needy so that all he has squandered
may be deposited into a heavenly account. When he goes to heaven, he will find his account
waiting for him; mercy and love from God, just as he has loved and had mercy on Gods poor
on earth.
190
Question Three: What is Saint Lukes purpose in recording this parable?
The evangelist is telling the Pharisees and those like them who love and treasure money in
this world that they will pay for it in the next. Soaking it up for themselves, they did not have
mercy on the poor and needy. In hoarding it, they strove to become great so that the world
would serve and fear them. There is here an evangelical lesson. All money unnecessary for basic
needs should not be hoarded for this age, but rather, sent upwards, for a personal surplus in
heaven.
After the end of the parable comes the ironic commentary of the master. He is the owner
of this world, who is also called the rich land owner and by the steward, my master.
1. He also said to the disciples, There was a rich man who had a steward, and charges were
brought to him that this man was wasting his goods. And he called him and said to him,
What is this that I hear about you? Turn in the account of your stewardship, for you can
no longer be steward.
Christ here is still speaking amidst the multitude, and the scribes and Pharisees are lis-
tening, but Christ is especially directing these words to his disciples.
The rich man had a steward who used to deal with merchants. He sold them olive oil
produced by his oil press and wheat from his fields. A truly rich man, his steward was
legally certified and specialized in selling and collecting the profits. He had special rights
in demanding debts, suing, and even shutting down businesses in the case of delinquency.
Such a working relationship was usually in the form of a brokerage, but sometimes it was
by salary. It appears that the steward favored the traders at the expense of the master,
because he squandered the masters goods, and it was for this reason that the master
dismissed him. The master summoned him immediately and ordered him to deliver the
accounts of the stewardship along with all of the bills.
This will also happen to us when the Prince of this World, who is the devil, finds us
unfaithful to him, because we waste the riches of his unrighteous mammon. The riches
of this world, whether few or many, belong to the unrighteous, regardless of whether they
are gathered honestly or dishonestly. So when the Prince of this World finds us squandering
his money over the children of the Heavenly King, he goes mad. In this world, he takes
191
out his wrath on the saintly children of God when they are generous toward the poor and
helpless, and waste the money of unrighteous mammon on the works of which Christ
has need on earth. Employees, traders or otherwise, they become extremely hateful to the
Prince of this World. Whatever length of time they live, when they die, he will bid them
good riddance with insults and perhaps persecution and illness. This is what Turn in the
account of your stewardship means to the Prince of this World. We turn in the account
of his rotten stewardship and, God willing, approach heaven. There, we discover all the
funds accumulated from our conversion of the unrighteous mammon of the Prince of
this World to pure and holy savings, which are the gifts of Gods graces in heaven. It is a
bold move, converting the impure money of this world into heavenly accounts.
When we are received in heaven we will be asked whether we have been dismissed by the
Prince of this World. The one who has not been given a dismissal will not be received in
heaven. The Prince of this World gives a notice of termination along with a certificate sig-
nifying lack of effectiveness in the world along with many other poor qualities to those who
do not do his bidding on earth. Among them, he might list wasting time in prayer, going
to church, throwing away the precious money of this world on people who are strangers in
this world, such as beggars and the downtrodden, and maintaining strong relations with
his number one enemy and master, the Owner of heaven and his Son.
2. And the steward said to himself, What shall I do, since my master is taking the stew-
ardship away from me? I am not strong enough to dig, and I am ashamed to beg. I have
decided what to do, so that people may receive me into their houses when I am put out
of the stewardship. So, summoning his masters debtors on by one, he said to the first,
How much do you owe my master? He said A hundred measures of oil. And he said to
him, Take your bill, and sit down quickly and write fifty. Then he said to another, And
how much do you owe? He said, A hundred measures of wheat. He said to him, Take
your bill, and write eighty.
The steward was told that he was losing his position and was ordered to put the books
and bills in order. He wondered how he would survive, since work was already so hard
to find. He said to himself, I cannot dig or steal (though he was, in fact, a thief),
nor can I beg, so his thought led him to embezzlement. The first merchant owned one
hundred measures of oil (8.6 gallons or 39 liters according to the historian Josephus, but
archaeological discoveries have shown it to be about 20 liters.) So they sat together and
192
forged the bills, making them 50 measures, which in that time was 500 dinari after the
discount, no small amount.
He called the wheat merchant and did the same thing with him. He owed one hundred
measures of wheat, but he told him, Take your bill and write eighty. As opposed to
the measure of the oil, this was a sack that carried about 48 gallons of wheat. According
to Josephus, one sack sold for 25-30 dinari, meaning that one hundred measures sold for
about 2,500 dinari. In the end, his discount resulted in him stealing 500 dinari from the
original bill, also a significant sum.
The master commended the dishonest steward for his shrewdness; for the sons of this world
are more shrewd in dealing with their own generation than the sons of light.
Since Christ is the one speaking here, clearly by master, he means the rich land owner.
There is here a bit of obscurity. One man he ironically described as the master. In the
other man, the dishonest steward, he found wisdom, albeit unrighteous and not in the
interests of the masters. He managed to live by moving the unrighteous money, which
he, along with the masters clients, had embezzled. Thus, he made a living when he was
welcomed by those same clients when his master dismissed him.
Christ was asking whether it is possible for the children of the light to have the wisdom of
this man, funneling upward the unrighteous money of this world. And I tell you, make
friends for yourselves by means of unrighteous mammon, so that when it fails they may
receive you into the eternal habitations.
Summary
It is evident from the story and from the behavior of the dishonest steward that this way
of dealing with unrighteous money was wise according to the children of this world. Christ is
asking us to act in the same fashion, not as a dishonest steward, but as wise children of the
light.
The unjust and evil world is the master. We, whether we like it or not, have been forced to
be stewards for this master. We work, buying and selling, working in his governmental offices
and in his private companies in agriculture, construction, commerce, banks, manufacturing,
exploring space, setting down on the moon, etc..., all the while gathering money in order to
193
give him what we have collected. For him, we accumulate knowledge, data, and inventions to
hand over to him. The best we can do is sneak what we can from him - from this unrighteous
money - yet doing so with complete honesty, in order to give it to the poor, downtrodden, sick,
and disfigured, that when he finally dismisses us (i.e., death) and we ascend to heaven, he finds
nothing left for himself.
In heaven, we will find that our fund have been transferred from the hands of the poor
and needy into the hands of the angels above. The entire lot is deposited into funds of grace,
wisdom, and spiritual awareness for unveiling the secrets of the kingdom of the great King of
heaven.
So we are qualified to work with God who is rich in mercy. This is better by far.
194
Leading a Child to Christ - Part I
The single most important thing for any Christian is their personal relationship with Christ.
Bringing a child to Christ is the most important aspect of our service.
1. God loves you - The first step is that we must make it clear to the child whom we serve
is that God loves them unconditionally. In 1 John 4:8 we read, God is love. We must be
able to communicate to the child that God loves them. One of the best ways to do this
is by being an example to them, that is, by loving the child ourselves. It is impossible for
us to lead anyone to Christ if we dont love them. We have to have the spirit of love to
be good servants. In 1 Timothy 4:15, St. Paul tells Timothy how to be a good servant.
He tells him, give yourself entirely to them. And he also says in 1 Timothy 5:1 to treat
younger men as brothers.
Thus in order for children to understand Gods love, they must first see it through us. We
have to love them, and this is the start of the process in leading a child to Christ. We
show love by
always smiling at them, listening to them, and always trying to get to know them.
encouraging them
mentoring them (Examples: St. Paul and Timothy, St. Antony and St. Athanasius,
Jesus and His disciples, Barnabas and St. Mark).
2. You have sinned - The second step in leading a child to Christ is to make the child
understand that he/she is not perfect, and that nobody else is perfect either. We must
make it clear to them that they and everybody else makes mistakes, and we must teach
them that we are all sinners. In Romans 3:23, we read All have sinned and fall short of
the glory of God.
195
Teaching kids that we are all sinners early on encourages them to be humble and
not to be full of pride or have a big ego. We have to convey to the kids that i)
yes, cheating on a test will sometimes happen, ii) sometimes one can lie or steal, iii)
sometimes we do not respect our parents.
We have to convey to them that sinning always put us in trouble. That is, sin is a
troublesome state. St. Paul says in Romans 6:23, for the wages of sin is death, but
the gift of God is eternal life in Christ Jesus our Lord.
Though we all sin, we need to make it clear to the kids that God hates sin and does
not accept sin. As a result, we must take our sins seriously and take responsibility of
our sins. God knows everything we do. Things are not OK just because we did not
get caught. We need to make it clear that our life is not going to be OK if we accept
sin and are careless about our sins.
Although we may teach the kids about sin, responsibility, and how God views sin,
kids will still sin and bad things may happen. How do we handle it? Recall St. Pauls
epistle to Philemon. Onesimus was a slave who stole from his master Philemon. St.
Paul was a great mentor to both Onesimus and Philemon. St. Paul converted Ones-
imus to Christianity, and through St. Pauls mentoring, guidance, and perseverance,
Onesimus did not only become a good Christian, but he also became a great Bishop
in the early church. We always have to be patient and persevere, and not get shook
up if kids sin.
3. God paid the price for our imperfection - After teaching the kids that we are im-
perfect, we must teach them that it was God who paid the price for our imperfection. We
teach them that God loves us so much that He paid the price for our sins. When somebody
does bad things, somebody has to pay for them. God bought us at a great price. In 1
Corinthians 15:3, St. Paul says, Christ died for our sins according to the scriptures. In
1 John 4:14, we read, The Father has sent His Son to be the savior of the world. Thus,
Christianity starts with bad news in sin, but it ends with good news in Christs sacrifice
for us. He paid the price for our sins on the cross. Christianity begins with bad news and
ends with good news.
4. Ask God for forgiveness - We must teach the kids that although we sin and Christ
paid the price for our sins, we can ask God for forgiveness for our sins and they will be
forgiven and completely forgotten. Forgiveness offers great hope to a child. If we only
196
tell a child about how bad a sin is and how much God hates it, and we dont offer them
anything else, the child will think that God is mean, inflexible, and unkind. A child needs
hope, and that hope is offered in the concept of forgiveness. We have to make it clear to
the kids that when we repent and ask for Gods forgiveness, God completely forgives sin.
That is, that sin is completely annihilated and erased. We read in Micah 7:19, He will
cast all of our sins into the depths of the sea.
197
Leading a Child to Christ - Part II
We will focus on the basic needs of children. These needs are critical for a childs spiritual
growth. The four fundamental needs of children are:
1. Love, acceptance, security - Every child needs love, acceptance, and a sense of security
from their parents, peers, and Sunday School servants. A child develops a sense of value,
self worth, and a healthy self-esteem when they experience love, acceptance, and security.
Love - A child learns to love by being loved. A child cannot be taught how to
love others by reading a book or through a Sunday School lesson. Love must be
experienced to be learned. Clearly, Christ demonstrated that we only learn how to
love by being loved first, and in fact, He indeed loved us first. We read in 1 John 4:19
that, We love because He first loved us.
Acceptance - Every child needs generous measures of acceptance, that is, feeling
unconditionally accepted, regardless of their behavior or appearance. If a child is
made to feel that he or she must earn acceptance, then feelings of insecurity or
unworthiness may result. This is what brings on low self-esteem. When a child
does not feel accepted, he/she may start feeling rebellious and aggressive as a way
of attracting attention, and this reflects the need to be loved and accepted. This
should be a clear signal to the servant that a child needs acceptance. God accepted
us unconditionally and we ought to do the same. We read in Romans 5:8, But God
demonstrates His own love for us in this: while we were still sinners, Christ died for
us. This verse clearly describes Gods unconditional acceptance of us. The child who
feels loved and accepted by adults finds it easy to feel accepted by God.
198
Love never stops - We should never give the child the impression that God will
not love them if they behave badly. Gods love is free. God never withholds love
in order to secure obedience. God loves so fully and faithfully that obedience to
Him becomes the response of those who accept His love and grace.
Acceptance and Approval Although we should always accept children re-
gardless of their behavior, this does not mean that we approve of their behavior.
Acceptance and approval are two different things. Acceptance means recognizing
another persons feelings without judging or condemning. Acceptance does not
mean permitting that person to demonstrate unacceptable behavior.
Approval - Children have a deep need of recognition and approval. To be noticed
by an adult is of high value to a child. To be approved by peers creates a sense
of belonging and an acceptance by the group. The Sunday School servant is
responsible to see that this approval need is met on a continuing basis. The
children who most need approval often present the greatest challenges to the
servant.
How do we accept the child?
Understand the child
Listen to them
Observe them and be perceptive
Talk and work with the child one-on-one
Develop a one-on-one relationship with them
Arrange a visit to their home: visitations
Call them on the phone
2. Choices and Challenges - A child learns to assume responsibility by being given the
opportunity to make choices. Children who are never allowed to make choices or not
allowed to experience different ways of learning have difficulty in life when adjusting to
a new situation. Not allowing children make choices hurts them badly when they grow
up. When they grow up, they become confused about everything, and they are unable to
make even the simplest decisions. They need others to make all the decisions for them.
199
being able to predict with great accuracy what is going to happen or be said next.
This is a main reason that children become bored in Sunday School.
Creative - We need to be creative with the children in our Sunday School class. We
should plan activities requiring different skills. Once we have offered a choice, we
must be willing to accept that choice. We must state the choices clearly so that the
child understands and does not offer you something that is unacceptable.
200
Honest praise - Praise for an honest attempt must be part of the relationship
with the child. We often express praise only when the final goal is achieved. We
have to recognize and praise the childs efforts who tried, but did not complete a
task. Whatever praise we give, it must be genuine. Children recognize insincerity
very quickly. We should aim to give one honest compliment each Sunday to a child.
Example are: nice answer, youre very good, youve been reading, or I like your
behavior, youre very polite.
Specific praise - Praise must also be specific. We should avoid vague expressions of
praise that leave the child unsure of what was done well.
Assign the child to bring, organize, and distribute Agpeyas, Bibles, song books, etc...
We as servants should give out duties to the kids and check up on them. We should assign
the kids to be in charge of certain things, and we should rotate the responsibility in the
class. This requires additional effort from the servant and so we have to take the extra time
to try and teach kids to be responsible and independent. Teaching kids to be independent
will reflect leadership qualities in the servant rather than the servant being viewed as an
enforcer.
201
The Relationship of a Child with His Parents
Understanding the relationship between a child and his parents is a critical aspect of Sunday
School service. We need to understand what kinds of issues and problems arise and how to help
resolve them.
1. Generation gap - We must realize that there is at least a 25 year difference between a
child and his parents. Thus, parents are not always going to understand what is going
on in a childs life, what is cool, and what is not cool. Parents might not be excited
by the things the child is excited by, such as sports, games, computers, etc... The child
must be patient and not get frustrated by this, and at the same time the parent must
make an extra effort to know what is going on in the childs life and try to understand
and appreciate what the child is exposed to.
2. Culture gap - A childs parents have been primarily raised in a completely different
culture with completely different surroundings, and a different environment. This cultural
gap often creates a big barrier, because parents do not know how other people are raised
and find it hard to judge and evaluate a different culture as well as judge the quality of
the individuals from a different culture. Parents typically react in great fear because of
the culture gap between them and their children. Parents are often confused and unable
to get a good grasp of and understand other cultures. They feel lost, pressured, stressed,
and sometimes out of control.
3. Language gap - Kids that are raised in the U.S. often speak only English, and often do
not speak or understand Arabic. Moreover they often resent, despise, and are embarrassed
by the Arabic language, especially around their friends and at school. Parents sometimes
do not learn English at an appropriate level to communicate with their kids. As a result,
kids will always be saying things that their parents dont understand and vice-versa. The
language gap hurts communication in the family, and can create a great distance between
a child and his parents.
202
4. Religious gap - Although the religion of a child and his parents is identical, there are
gaps. The way religion was taught and practiced, along with the style of the discipline was
very different for the parent as compared to the child. The kinds of things that parents
were exposed to in their religious life is very different from that of the child. For example,
blind obedience was a common way of doing things for the parent, with no discussion,
explanation, or reasoning. Today, kids cannot practice religion this way. They always
want to know why, they need explanations, reasoning, discussion, convincing statements,
and good role models.
5. Scientific gap - Education and school systems are very different between child and parent.
The U.S. is most advanced scientifically, and offers the child much more opportunities in
education, than what was available for the parent. As a result, a child may know a lot of
scientific facts, may be intellectually advanced, have a great knowledge about computers,
etc... This may be intimidating to the parents who were not exposed to such things, even
though they may be well educated.
1. Dialogue - The parent and child, with help from the Sunday School servant, need to make
a special effort to open dialogue between themselves. The Sunday School servant needs
to constantly pray to God to give him, the parent, and the child wisdom to speak and do
what is constructive and right. The child must realize that they need their parents and
the parents must realize that they need their children. We must always encourage and
strive for a friendship between parent and child. Exodus 33:11 says, God spoke to Moses
face to face as a man speaks to his friend. This is the model verse for dialogue between
parent and child. It is this type of friendship that is critical in the relationship between a
child and his parents.
2. Honor your Father and Your Mother - This is the 5th commandment laid down by
God in Exodus 20:12. A child must honor their father and mother regardless of what
they say, as long as it is said in the Lord. St. Paul, says in Ephesians 6:1, Child obey
your parents in the Lord, for this is right. Ephesians 6:1-4 has some very nice verses
on the relationship between parent and child. The relationship between parent and child
can be destroyed when the child does not respect and honor his parents. This disrespect
203
easily comes from television, movies, school, etc... In Exodus 21:17 we read, And he who
curses his father and his mother shall surely be put to death. The child should honor
the sacrifices the parent makes for them and their hard work in giving the child a good
life. In Ephesians 6:2, we read, Honor your father and your mother, which is the first
commandment with promise: that it may be well with you and you may live long on the
earth.
3. Obedience - Obedience is the key to Gods heart, and a child must be obedient to his
parents. Child obey your parents in the Lord, for this is right (Ephesians 6:1).
4. Spiritual growth - Spiritual growth of parent and child enables the fruits of the Holy
Spirit to dictate the parent-child relationship. St. Paul says in Ephesians 6:4, And you,
fathers, do not provoke your children to wrath, but bring them up in the training and
admonition of the Lord. St. Paul also says, Love never fails. (1 Corinthians 13:8).
Spiritual growth enables the child and parent to endure difficult times, have patience,
peace, love, gentleness, kindness, joy, faithfulness, goodness, and self-control (Galatians
5:22). Parents will be judged on how they raise their children. Recall the story of Eli and
his sons. In 1 Samuel 3:13 we read, For I have told him that I will judge his house forever
for the iniquity which he knows, because his sons made themselves vile, and he did not
restrain them.
204
Parental Christian Upbringing of Children (Preschool - Grade 6)
The parents have, by far, the most influence on the spiritual life of their children. It is the
parents who set the tone for their childrens spiritual and church life.
The home is, by far, main source of Christianity, religious training, and spiritually in the
childs life. Our home should be the home of Christ and it should be a place that pleases
Christ and gives Him comfort. How can parents build a strong Christian home for their
children?
1. Pray and Read the Bible together - It is absolutely essential that parents read
the Bible and pray with their kids daily, starting at a very young age, say at 1.5 or
2 years old. Parents should make every effort to pray with their kids at least once a
day, including in the morning, in the evening, and before meals. This is critical in a
childs spiritual upbringing which builds the foundation of their spiritual life. Jesus
says, that For where two or three are gathered together in My name, I am there in
the midst of them (Matthew 18:20). So Jesus is in our midst when we read our
Bible and pray with our children.
2. Watch spiritual videotapes - When the child is young, it is important that they
visualize the things that they pray and read the Bible about. This is why is is
critical to supplement spiritual reading with spiritual videos on saints, and stories
from the Bible. In addition, listening to spiritual songs and reciting spiritual songs
with your children is an excellent spiritual activity. When the child is very young
(5 - 10 years of age), animated (cartoons) Bible stories are a wonderful source of
religious training. Many Christian stores (for example, Lifeway Christian Store on
Capital Blvd) have an excellent and comprehensive set of animated Bible stories
including stories about Adam and Eve, Moses, Noah, Samuel, Daniel, Joseph, David
and Goliath, the Nativity, and so many more. This and other stores also have many
205
other spiritual tools, including Childrens Bibles, coloring books, spiritual songs,
Christian puzzles, etc...
Parents must really limit the amount of television that their kids watch. Cartoons
and other shows are now quite violent, sexual on content, and in general, very destruc-
tive. Video games have also become quite violent. Parents should replace watching
television and playing video games by watching spiritual videos as discussed above.
3. Be Loving - Parents should be loving to their children and they should show it and
say it. Parents must be careful not to constantly criticize and yell at their children.
Parents should deal with problems in a loving way, limit their criticisms, criticize only
in a loving and constructive fashion, and tell their children that they love them on a
regular basis. Children, especially at a young age, deeply need this kind of reassurance
and comfort. It gives them a healthy self-esteem when they are told that they are
smart, well-behaved, appreciated, cared for, and loved.
4. Spend time with your child - Parents have to spend quality time every day with
their children, including reading with them and doing various activities with them.
Reading with your child stimulates their mind and builds up them intellectually as
well as spiritually. In addition to spiritual books, parents should read other types of
books to their children, including childrens developmental books, simple stories from
childrens books, science, history, math, etc... to intellectually stimulate them and
to engage their curiosity. Parents also must spend quality time with their children
doing activities at home, such as doing puzzles, playing games, etc...
5. Take an interest in your childs life - Parents must take an interest in their childs
life and know what they are doing day to day. Parents must take an interest in their
kids school, know what they are studying and learning, take initiative in helping
them with their homework, learn who their friends are and get to know them, take
an interest in their activities and participate in them as much as possible.
6. Be a good Christian role model at home - Kids imitate their parents and they
watch them very carefully. So parents have to watch themselves and be good role
models by leading strong and God fearing Christian lives. The two parents must work
on having a strong Christian marriage and be good to one another. Parents must be
honest, use good language at all times, and treat others in the home in a respectful,
loving, and Christian way.
206
Outside the home, parents also bear a great responsibility in the Christian upbringing of
their children. Here are the parents responsibilities outside the home.
1. Church - It is the parents responsibility to take their children every week to church,
have them attend Sunday School, and take Communion. These three things are very
important. It is not good to be too busy to go to church, or be too tired or too
lay to go to church on any given Sunday. Parents must make every effort to bring
their kids to church every week, attend church with them, and take Communion with
them.
2. Spend time with your kids outside the home - On weekends and other occasions,
parents must make a special effort to do activities with their kids outside the home,
such as go to the park, go to the zoo, play sports, go shopping, etc...
3. Be a good Christian role model outside the home - Parents must be good
Christians outside the home as well as inside the home. They have to be honest in
their work, have good relations with others at church and in their workplace, have
good relations with their relatives and the clergy.
207
The Structure of a Sunday School Lesson
There are six critical areas that we need to emphasize in our Sunday School lessons, and
we should try and emphasize these points in as many lessons as possible.
1. Love of God - This is the single most important message that we could give in any
Sunday School lesson: God loves us. The Gospel of St. John and the first epistle of St.
John are excellent sources from the Bible that talk magnificently about Gods love. In
John 3:16, we read For God so loved the world that He gave His only begotten Son, that
whoever believes in Him should not perish but have everlasting life. Also, in 1 John 4:19
we read, We love Him because He first loved us. In 1 John 4:7-8, we read God is love.
The take home message in every Sunday School lesson is that God, that is Christ, loves
us deeply and cares for us. As St. Peter says in 1 Peter 5:7, for He cares for you.
2. Christ - When giving a Sunday School lesson, we should never talk about God in the
abstract. God must be made real in Christ. For Christ is God. Christ is God in the flesh.
Christ is what we can see, comprehend, and envision. He is something real that can be
touched and loved. We should mention the name of Jesus in every lesson several times,
and always refer to Christ when talking about God.
The mention of the word Christ is what uplifts and exalts an individual spiritually. It
is the mention of Christ that enables us to be filled with the Holy Spirit. The mention
of Christ brings love and peace to the heart. Christ is the answer to spiritual elevation.
A good example of a life totally immersed in Christ is that of St. Paul. We read, in
Philippians 2:21, For me to live is Christ, and to die is gain. And in Galatians 2:20, we
read, I have been crucified with Christ; it is no longer I who live, but Christ lives in me;
and the life which I now live in the flesh I live by faith in the Son of God, who loved me
and gave Himself for me.
We also note the indwelling of Christ in people of the Old Testament. The life of Joseph,
for example, was in complete parallel to the life of Christ. Joseph was sold as a slave.
Christ was sold for 30 pieces of silver. Joseph was imprisoned for 2 years in the house
of Pharaoh. Jesus was numbered with the transgressors. Joseph came to find his lost
208
brothers. Jesus came to find his lost sheep. Joseph was betrayed by his brothers. Jesus
was betrayed by one of his disciples. Joseph was sent by his father Jacob to find his
brothers. Jesus was sent by God the Father to find the lost sheep. Joseph was rejected by
his own. Jesus was rejected by His own. Joseph saves Israel from famine. Jesus saves the
world from eternal condemnation.
3. Relationship with Christ - We must emphasize establishing a true and real relationship
with Christ. We do this by i) keeping the commandments, ii) keeping the sacraments
(confession and repentance, communion) , iii) prayer, and iv) reading the Bible.
These first four points are intrinsically positive aspects of the Christian life. They are
viewed as positive aspects of Christianity regardless of ones spiritual level. We should
always focus on the positive aspects of Christianity to build up the faith.
5. Repentance and Confession - This can never be viewed as a positive aspect of Chris-
tianity unless one feels that love of Christ and the person of Christ in their life. We must
first instill the love of Christ in ones life before they view repentance as a positive experi-
ence. Repentance is a positive experience for those who believe Christ loves them, as we
saw in Zacchaeus, the Samaritan woman, and the sinful woman.
6. Consequences of Sin - This is viewed as positive only when one knows that Christ loves
them. It is important to discuss consequences of sin, and the notion of heaven and hell in
the Sunday School class. The kids must know that there is a judgment, and that Christs
love and forgiveness is not to be mocked (Matthew 25). We do not want the kids to ever
get the impression that Christ is so loving that they can just keep on sinning and sinning,
209
and everything will be OK. They must be told that this behavior and attitude is a mockery
of Christs love for them. One cannot suit Christs love to their needs. It is only when
a person understands Christs love and feels Christs love that they can understand what
mockery of Christs love is, and thus view the consequences of sin in an appropriate way.
210
Serving Sunday School Kids Outside of the Church
1. Introduction
The single most important goal in our Sunday School service is to bring the Sunday
School kids closer to Christ, so that they can develop a lifelong deep and intimate
relationship with Him.
This goal in service cannot be achieved by seeing the kids once a week in Sunday
School. We must also serve them outside of the Church.
Calling the kids at home is a great way of initiating a relationship with them.
When one of our Sunday School kids does not come to church, we should call them
at home and check up on them. We should tell them that we missed them and we
would like to see them. Some things we can talk about to initiate a relationship on
the phone include
School - for kids from 1st - 9th grade, this topic will be most dominant
Work
Important things in their life - ask about something important that is going on in
their life (getting their license, starting college, honors or achievements, hobbies
or school activities, etc...)
211
Social things - Ask about how they spend their free time, ask about trips or
vacations they might of took, people they may have visited, relatives that they
have visited or seen recently, etc...
Never make them feel bad or guilty for not coming to church. Avoid lecturing or
scolding them. Never start off the phone call by telling them that they should come
to church, etc...
Always make the child feel that you care about them. Take an interest in the childs
life.
Dont make the phone call too short. It wont be effective. Always try to have at
least a short conversation when you call a kid at home.
Always end the phone call on a positive note, telling them that you miss them and
would like to see them soon.
3. Visitations
Visitations are probably the most important and deepest element of Sunday School
service. It is the foundational element of one on one service to children.
We should make it our goal to visit each child in the class once per year.
Arrange visitations with the parents early, and let the child know that you want to
visit them. This usually makes the parents and the child excited.
In a visitation, try and sit with the child and his/her parents together, or if the child
requests, sit alone with the child.
Start casual conversations with the child and his/her family, by asking about work,
school, important events in their life, their hobbies, their interests, their talents, etc...
Try to make the child and family feel very relaxed.
Dont preach or lecture or give a lesson at a visitation. Make the child and the family
feel that you care about them and want to be their friend.
Make it your goal to become the childs friend. Speak with them face to face as a
friend. We read in the Bible, God spoke to Moses face to face as a man speaks to
his friend (Exodus 33:11).
Develop the type of friendship with the child that they seek your mentorship and
guidance in life.
212
Always talk on the childs level and never make them feel that you are better than
them, more sophisticated than them, or more knowledgeable than them.
After initial casual conversation, turn to spiritual topics, and talk about the impor-
tance of prayer, reading the Bible, going to church, taking communion, confession,
and attending Sunday School.
Try and bring with you a spiritual gift to give to the child, such as a Bible, Icon,
Agpeya, etc...
Read a small passage from the Bible and briefly discuss it.
End the visitation by prayer.
4. Retreats
Spiritual retreats are vital in the spiritual upbringing of children. Often the fondest
memories for a child are events at retreats.
Retreats often have a deep and perhaps the deepest impact on a childs life.
Thus, it should be our goal to have at least two retreats a year for the class. Kids in
3rd grade or older can spend the night at the retreat house. Younger kids can have
a spiritual day at the church.
Make the retreats creative by having lessons as well as fun activities for the kids. Try
and get to know the kids personally at the retreats by participating in the activities
and spending time with them and talking with them on their level.
Try and create a familial atmosphere at a retreat, by being a father or mother figure
for them, and a true role model.
Let the kids enjoy some flexibility as long as it is within the retreat rules.
5. Outings
Outing include taking your Sunday School kids to a park, picnic, museum, zoo, etc...
At such outings, try and get to know them and socialize with them. Take an interest
in their life. Be casual and relaxed. Not every conversation needs to be centered or
focused on Church.
Again, try to find out the hobbies and interests of the child, what their talents are,
how they like to spend their time, etc...
213
6. Conclusion
Developing a relationship with your Sunday School kids means that you must become
their trusted friend, mentor, and counselor.
Always be a good ambassador for Christ anywhere you go outside of Church, so that
the child sees how you live your life outside of church. Try to make any phone call,
visitation, or outing a spiritual one by your conduct, attitude, and speech.
Always seek to glorify God in your service and never lose focus on what the mission
is: bring the kids closer to Jesus Christ.
Always give God the credit for the fruits in service. Never take credit for any good
thing.
Never let the kids become dependent on you. Do not be the center of the childs
spiritual life, but rather only an instrument for accomplishing Gods work. Always
make God the center of the childs spiritual life.
214
Making Decisions in Life: The Story of Lot
1. Introduction
The examples of the lives of several men and women in the Bible can provide us with
valuable lessons on living. For example, from Abraham, we learn the value of faith
in God. From Joseph, we see the workings of Gods providential care. From Job, we
learn the importance of patience and faith in God under trials and tribulations.
From Lot, the nephew of Abraham, we can also glean valuable lessons in i) decision
making, ii) the importance of seeking Gods will in our decision making, and iii) the
consequences of our decisions in life.
The story of Lot is recorded in the Book of Genesis, Chapters 12, 13, 14, and 19. St.
Peter also mentions Lot in his second Epistle (2 Peter 2:7-8).
2. Who is Lot?
Lot was a man who, like his uncle Abraham, became quite wealthy (Genesis 13:2-5).
Because of the combined wealth of Abraham and Lot, they were forced to separate
since the land they shared could not accommodate both of them (Genesis 13:6-9).
3. Lots Choice
Given the opportunity to choose where he could go, Lot made a choice which on the
surface was a good one, since the land he saw was well watered everywhere like the
garden of the Lord (Genesis 13:10). Lot judged things in a worldly way, in which
his choice was based on seeing the external. Lots choice was based on the lust of
the flesh, the lust of the eyes, and the pride of life (1 John 2:16). Rather than being
humble and yielding to his much elder and humble uncle Abraham to make a choice
where to live, Lot chooses over Abraham out of greed and according to the ways of
the world.
215
Though Lots choice of where to live looked great from the outside, it results in much
sorrow and hardship for Lot! When we make decisions based on lust of the flesh,
the lust of the eyes, and the pride of life, they are always the wrong decisions and
such decisions can never be Gods will. This was precisely the problem with Lot. He
was not seeking Gods will in making the decision where to live. Lot sought his own
will and he paid a very heavy price for it.
All of these things happened despite the fact that Lot himself was a righteous person
(2 Peter 2:7-8). Though Lot was always righteous, there was a time in his life that
his relationship with God was not as strong as it should be, in that Lot did not follow
Gods will and Lots spiritual life was not strong.
Our decisions in life are greatly affected by our relationship with God. If our relation-
ship with God is strong, we will seek to follow Gods will in making decisions. If our
relationship with God is weak, we will follow our own will and the ways of the world
in making decisions, and such decisions can have devastating effects on our lives, as
they did with Lot.
4. Our Spiritual Life is Greatly Compromised When Our Relationship with Christ
is Weak
As we see with Lot, he compromised many things in his spiritual life to win the
support of others.
First, he was willing to give up his virgin daughters to the men who were knocking
on the door in order to be safe (Genesis 19:8).
216
Second, Lot compromised his spiritual life in that he mingled with the bad com-
pany of Sodom to the point that he became one of the leaders, as Lot sat at the
gate of Sodom (Genesis 19:1).
Third, as a result of Lots compromised spiritual life, his sons-in-law thought that
he was joking when Lot told them to get out of Sodom (Genesis 19:14).
Fourth, when the angels literally dragged Lot out of Sodom, he was so attached
to the world and that city that Lot begged the angels that he flee to a city close
to Sodom rather than go to the mountains (Genesis 19:17-20).
Fifth, Lots wife did not look back at the city of Sodom out of curiosity. She
looked back because she was attached to that place, to the things of the world.
Her attachment to the world cost her her life, as she became a pillar of salt the
moment she turned back to look (Genesis 19:26).
5. Our Choices
The story of Lot should impress us with the importance of making proper choices
in our lives. In view of what happened to Lot, we will now consider i) some of the
choices that greatly affect our lives, ii) some suggestions on how to make the right
decisions in life, and iii) what to do when we realize we have made wrong decisions.
217
What Choices Do We Make That Greatly Affect Our Lives?
Following Jesus - The one that will affect our life more than any other is the
choice to follow Jesus. This choice will determine our place in eternity and it
will have a bearing on every choice we make. For as a follower of Christ, we will
be concerned with doing His will, not our own.
Choosing your Spouse - This is the next most important decision in life. This
decision will, to a great extent, determine our happiness in life. The choice of our
spouse can either be heaven on earth or hell on earth depending on whether we
follow Gods will in this most important area. The choice of our spouse will have
a permanent bearing on our children and their emotional well-being. Divorce
is never a solution in the Orthodox Church, and once a married couple have
children, there is no way to reverse the choice they have made as to who is the
mother and father of their children!
Choosing your Career - The choice we make in career can have a lasting effect
on our marriage, family, and our service to God. One needs to be practical and
realistic and follow Gods will in choosing a career. Ones choice of a career
is important from a practical viewpoint since, for example, the job market can
change drastically.
Choosing your Friends - Having close and Godly friends can be a wonderful
blessing (Proverbs 17:17). The right friends can have a very positive impact on
our life, and encourage and uplift our spiritual life. On the other hand, the wrong
friends can be a curse for the righteous (Proverbs 12:16, 1 Corinthians 15:33). As
we saw in the life of Lot, Lot chose the wrong friends and his spiritual life was
compromised and suffered greatly, and so did Lot.
Choosing Where You Will Live - It was in this choice that Lot made a huge
mistake. Lot followed the lust of the flesh, the lust of the eyes, and the pride
of life in choosing where to live. We must never do this. The choice of where
we live can make a huge impact on our own spiritual life, our childrens spiritual
life, our spouses spiritual life, and our family life in general. We cannot afford
to not follow Gods will in this area.
Pray unceasingly to know and follow Gods will, and ask God for wisdom (James
218
1:5-8).
Seek Christian and Godly advice from others, such as parents, elders, priests, spiritual
counselors and church servants, and mature friends.
Consult the wisdom found in the Bible, especially a book like Proverbs.
Whatever you do, do it for the Lords sake (Psalm 37:5-6, 23-26, James 4:15).
Heed the word of God like Lot finally did when he fled Sodom and Gomorrah.
Do what is right without reservation. Recall Lots wife had reservations about leaving
Sodom and Gomorrah and it cost her her life.
Do what Saint Peter did after he denied Christ: i) confess and repent if there is sin
in the choice made and ii) resolve to serve the Lord.
Do what Saint Paul did after persecuting the church: i) accept the forgiveness that
Jesus provides, and ii) determine to live for the Lord the rest of your life to the best
of your ability.
The wrong thing to do is to continue in the wrong choice we have made because of
pride or some other reason.
8. Conclusion
The story of Lot should serve to teach us that making the proper decision is very
important, and to warn us not to make our choices according to our own will. The
choices we make are based on a partnership with Jesus in following His will, since
only He knows what is best for our life and salvation.
We should remember Lot the next time we are faced with an important decision:
i) we should make that decision based on the will of God and not our own, and ii)
our eternal destiny and that of those we love might rest upon our choices.
219
The Work God Blesses
1. Introduction
Every man and woman has a work assigned to them by God. This becomes their
purpose, their reason for being on the earth, their calling, their destiny. Abraham
had an assignment for his life, as did Joseph. Moses was called to perform a specific
life-task. David had a destiny. So did Daniel, Jeremiah, and all the prophets. Esther
was raised up for such a time as this. John the Baptist fulfilled a definite role, as
did Peter and John. Paul had a purpose, a reason for being.
Only a few of these people realized what their work was. Most of them were like you
and me: we only come into an awareness of our purpose slowly. Everything seems
ordinary and mundane; we feel like there is nothing special about us, no calling we
could possibly fulfill. Moses is a striking example. The first forty years of his life
were spent learning how to be a prince of Egypt. The next forty years of his life were
spent in the desert, unlearning everything he had been taught. It seemed like a huge
waste of a life. When God sent him back to Egypt at the age of eighty, Moses still
did not understand or appreciate the full extent of what God was calling him to do.
Neither did the Hebrews. But now we understand that God had a purpose for him
all along.
Or look at Joseph. At an early age he senses Gods call on his life for something
special. But things do not go the way he expects them to go (things seldom do). His
brothers first seek to kill him, but then settle for selling him to the slave-traders. His
situation improves for awhile, but then he is framed for something he did not do and
gets thrown into the dungeon. As the years slipped away Joseph must have believed
hed made a mistake when he thought he heard from God. But when we see the final
result everything makes perfect sense. God used those experiences to shape and mold
his character, and to prepare him for the work he was called to do.
And consider Noah. In Genesis 9:1 we see that God blessed Noah and his sons. The
blessing of the Lord means divine favor and approval. How do you feel when someone
else gets blessed? Are you happy for them? Envious? Frustrated? All we see is
220
the end result - but we do not see all the labor, the sweat, the tears, the pain, the
struggle, the misunderstanding, the confusion, the dark nights, all the things that
person has endured in order to have the blessing of the Lord. we are not saying the
blessing is something we can earn through self-effort; but the blessing of the Lord is
the benefit of fulfilling the work He has called us to do.
Here, we will focus on the life of Noah, learn the universal principles behind the
work that God blesses, and apply those principles to our lives as well. They are
not complicated principles, but very, very simple. We pray they will encourage and
strengthen all of us to persevere in whatever situation the Lord has placed us.
The story of Noah begins over four hundred years before he was born. The Scrip-
tures tell us that Noahs great-great grandfather was Enoch. We know Enoch was
a man who walked with God and suddenly disappeared, for God took him. Exactly
what that means we can only speculate, but this much is clear: Enoch had a close
relationship with the Lord.
Enoch was also a prophet. Jude 14, in the New Testament, records one of his prophe-
cies of a future judgment. But a little closer to his own time, Enoch perceived that
the Lord was about to execute judgment on the earth. So when Enoch had a son
he named him Methuselah. You remember Methuselah is the oldest person in the
Bible, living to the ripe old age of 969. The name Methuselah has prophetic signif-
icance. Most Bible reference books give the meaning as dart man or man of the
spear. A less frequently found definition is of Chaldean origin and means something
a little more intriguing: at his death, the sending forth. The sending forth of what?
Perhaps that makes no sense to us - until we use the chronology provided to us in
Genesis 5. All the generations of Noah are given to us with the exact time frames in
which they lived and died. Enoch had a son named Methuselah, Methuselah had a son
named Lamech, and Lamech had a son named Noah. When we do the calculations
from Enoch to Noah, we find that Noah finished building the ark the same year his
grandfather Methuselah died, just in time for the sending forth of a great flood -
exactly 969 years after Enoch said that it would come.
So this judgment had been building for nearly a millennium. Enoch knew it was
coming. Certainly Methuselah knew. Presumably Lamech knew. But none of them
221
were called to build the ark. That work was reserved for Noah. And even then, he
was five hundred years old before God revealed His purpose for Noah. Think about
it: Noah walked with God for five hundred years before God gave him the plans for
building the ark. If the man is not right then the plans are not right; but after five
hundred years of relationship-building, the Lord finally said, Now I can trust you to
do the work I have called you to do. The survival of all life on earth depends on it.
What an awesome responsibility!
That brings us to the first principle: the work that God blesses is bigger than us. The
ark was not Noahs private little retreat. It was not his personal little ministry, his
private little vision. Of course, Noah and his family were beneficiaries of the work,
but the purpose of the ark was to preserve all living things. Otherwise, Noah would
have built a much smaller vessel.
When the Lord gives us a work to do it will be bigger than ourselves. The size of
a persons heart may be judged by the size of their work. By size we do not mean
numerical or financial strength. We mean this: is the work larger than the person
working? Is it fulfilling a purpose far greater than the people involved? Is the work
we do glorifying God our ourselves?
The work that God blesses is not merely for our own personal benefit, but for the
benefit of the Body of Christ, for the Kingdom of God. Our vision must carry us
beyond ourselves; our vision must survive us. The only vision that is bigger than
ourselves is Christ. If our vision is Christ then we are building upon an eternal
foundation, and the Lord will bless that labor. Noah carried the Messiah in his loins
- the ark was meant to preserve not just physical life, but a spiritual lineage. Thus,
it was bigger than Noah, and the Lord blessed the work.
The second principle is closely related to the first, and it is this: the work that God
blesses is beyond our ability to do on our own. In other words, if I can do it all by
myself, then I do not need the blessing of the Lord. I can simply call upon my natural
talent, experience, and skill to do what needs to be done. Now, work done in this
222
manner may or may not be successful, but irregardless, it is MY work; it is not the
Lords work, and it does not enjoy the blessing of the Lord.
The Lord delights to place us in impossible situations. Noah was no shipbuilder. Yet
God calls him to do the very thing he cannot do and gives him specific and detailed
plans for doing it. The sheer size and scope of the work is astounding. First, Noah is
to build a boat. Not just a little fishing boat, but a floating fortress with three levels
in it. The Living Bible gives the dimensions as 450 feet long, 75 feet wide, and 45
feet high. Nothing this large had ever been constructed. The project would take one
hundred years to complete. But the most amazing thing about this huge boat is that
it was built on dry land. The Bible says Noah had faith (Hebrews 11:7)!
But building the ark was only part of the work. After the ark was complete, there
was the issue of bringing every sort of animal and bird into the boat. In the movies
you see the animals streaming towards the ark of their own accord while Noah looks
on in amazement. Perhaps that is the way it happened. Yet the Scripture says that
the Lord told Noah to go get them and bring them into the ark (Genesis 6:19). He
had to go and gather them. How does one go about gathering one male and one
female of every kind of animal in the world? And with some species God said to get
seven pairs!
Then there is the matter of food. The Lord told Noah to gather samples of every
kind of food that is eaten (Genesis 6:21). The food was for feeding his family and
all the animals, but it was also for future planting. Today we have fruits, vegetables,
nuts, and grains because Noah somehow managed to find them all and store them
in the ark. Now we ask: is it humanly possible to do all the things Noah did? Can
someone with no experience build a boat that large? Can an ordinary person gather
together every kind of beast, bird, and bug? Can anyone gather together every kind
of food in the world, and store it? The Bible says, Thus did Noah; according to
all that God commanded him, so did he (Genesis 6:22). When God asks us to do
the impossible, we can ask for, and expect to receive, the blessing of the Lord on our
work. He will show us what to do, and He will enable us to do it.
The third and final principle is this: the work that God blesses is originated by God
Himself. This is one of the most important lessons we can learn. We spend many
223
years creating and executing our own plans, asking the Lord to bless them. One day
we finally come to understand that instead of always trying to get the Lord to bless
what we want to do, it was much simpler to find out what the Lord wanted to bless,
and simply do that. Instead of trying to get God to come down to my level and do
what I wanted, it was far better to come onto the Lords ground and do what He
wanted. Great synergy and blessing is released when we simply cooperate with what
God has already purposed to do. Heaven backs us up with tremendous power and
authority. Instead of trying to make something happen, we should simply flow in a
current that already exists. The Lord will deny no request that is in agreement with
what He Himself has originated.
Noah could expect the blessing of the Lord on his work because he was simply carrying
out what the Lord had already determined to do. It is so much easier this way. Often
the greatest hindrance to the best is the good. The greatest hindrance to Isaac is
Ishmael. There are many good things we can create, many good things we can do.
But only one thing is needed (Luke 10:42). We have to discover the one thing,
and we only discover it when we are seated at the feet of Jesus. When we are only
motivated by what Jesus wants, not what we want and not what we think we need,
then we are on the path of continual and perpetual blessing.
Noah walked with God, and Noah found grace in the eyes of the Lord (Genesis 6:8,9).
It took five hundred years of walking with God, but Noah found grace, and that made
it all worthwhile. Let us learn to do nothing apart from this amazing grace. It is
better to wait five hundred years for grace than to work for five minutes without it.
What is grace? Grace is simply Jesus living in me, doing what I cannot do. It does
not matter if what I cannot do is save myself, overcome sin, love my neighbor, or
build an ark. I am insufficient; but His Grace (Jesus) is sufficient. His Grace (Jesus)
is more than enough. His Grace (Jesus) is Infinite Supply! But without Me you can
do nothing (John 15:5).
Be encouraged. The Lord has a purpose for you, and a destiny for you to fulfill. But
things will not always go the way you think they should. That is because the Lord
calls you to something bigger than yourself, something beyond your ability, something
you cannot originate or perpetuate without Him. It takes time. Noah walked with
God for five hundred years and spent one hundred years building the ark. Abraham
was one hundred years old before he finally saw Gods promise come true. Moses
224
spent forty years in Egypt, then forty years in the desert, before God sent him to
Pharaoh. Jesus prepared thirty years for an earthly ministry of three and a half years.
Let us focus on being, not doing. And when it is time for you to do something you
can be confident that your labor of love will be the work that God blesses.
225
God Blesses Our Time in Service
1. Introduction
What does the word blessing mean? The word blessing means to consecrate, to
sanctify, to invoke divine care for, to praise, to glorify, to confer happiness upon.
When we serve God from our heart with love, God repays us with both seen and
unseen blessings in our life. He blesses us with good health, the fruit of the Spirit,
mental and spiritual balance, a good spouse, Godly children, a good family, good
friends, a good job, a good church, and many other things.
The fundamental element in blessing is based on giving: when a servant freely, lov-
ingly, and sacrificially gives their time, talents, energy, and money to serve and sup-
port others. Jesus said, It is more blessed to give than to receive. (Acts 20:35).
The servant is really then, above everything else, a giver: one who always seeks to
freely give to others.
When we strive to make Christ our number one aim in life, we receive blessings, as
promised by Christ in the beatitudes. The beatitudes are the only place in the New
Testament where Christ explicitly talks about how we receive blessings as a direct
result of a relationship with Him.
Jesus says in Matthew 5:1-11, And seeing the multitudes, He went up on a mountain,
and when He was seated His disciples came to Him. Then He opened His mouth and
taught them, saying: Blessed are the poor in spirit, For theirs is the kingdom of
heaven. Blessed are those who mourn, For they shall be comforted. Blessed are
the meek, For they shall inherit the earth. Blessed are those who hunger and thirst
for righteousness, For they shall be filled. Blessed are the merciful, For they shall
obtain mercy. Blessed are the pure in heart, For they shall see God. Blessed are
the peacemakers, For they shall be called sons of God. Blessed are those who are
persecuted for righteousness sake, For theirs is the kingdom of heaven. Blessed are
you when they revile and persecute you, and say all kinds of evil against you falsely
226
for My sake. Rejoice and be exceedingly glad, for great is your reward in heaven, for
so they persecuted the prophets who were before you.
Thus, blessings are received for those who keep the beatitudes. Therefore, one first
receives blessings in life when they make their relationship with Christ the number
one aim in their life.
Blessings are also received when we serve and give our time to others, but we must
give our time in service in a certain way to really receive these blessings. The key to
receiving blessings in serving others is that we must give 1) sacrificially, 2) joyfully,
3) voluntarily, 4) persistently, and 5) ourselves. When we follow 1) - 5) God blesses
our time in service.
227
Main point: The best giving (serving) comes from those who give cheerfully.
(c) They Gave Voluntarily
They were freely willing (2 Corinthians 8:3)
This is the kind of giving God requires today: a) we cannot command people
to give against their will (2 Corinthians 8:8), and b) we can only command
how it is to be done to help needy people abroad (1 Corinthians 16:1-4).
Giving must come from a willing mind (2 Corinthians 8:12).
Giving must never be done begrudgingly or because you have to (2 Corinthi-
ans 9:7).
Otherwise, you might as well not give at all.
Main point: The best giving comes from those who give freely.
(d) They Gave Persistently
As St. Paul says, imploring us with much urgency (2 Corinthians 8:4).
They wouldnt take no for an answer (or for an easy way out!).
With the Philippians, their giving to St. Paul persisted throughout his life
(Philippians 4:10-18).
Main point: The best giving comes from those who persist.
(e) They Gave Themselves
Perhaps this explains how they were able to give as they did!
They gave themselves first to the Lord (2 Corinthians 8:5): a) when a person
does this, they do not worry about the cost of giving, and b) for they have
the promise of Jesus in Matthew 6:25-34.
Giving themselves first to the Lord, it is natural they would give then to us
(others): a) for such is a mark of true discipleship (John 13:34-35), and b)
and it is a mark of true love for God (1 John 4:20-21).
Main point: The best giving comes from those who give themselves to God.
228
The grace of God is at work in those who give (2 Corinthians 8:1-2,6-7; 9:8,14)
Main Point: Giving blesses the giver more than the recipient!
5. How God Turns our Service Time and Our Giving into Blessings
Firstly, to believe in and realize Gods blessings in our service requires faith. One
must have faith that our genuine service will be turned into Gods blessings.
229
Secondly, Gods blessings are a mystery and a miracle in our life. Sometimes the
blessings are visibly seen and sometimes not. Most times they are not seen.
God turns our service time into spiritual energy that allows us to get more things
done and get them done more efficiently than had we not served. Through Gods
blessings from our service, we become mentally sharper, more balanced mentally
and spiritually, more efficient, more organized, have more energy and zeal for our
responsibilities and our work, and find greater purpose in everything we do. Moreover,
God eases our path in life and makes things go more smoothly as a result of His
blessings from our service. To believe all this requires and demands faith.
God allows us to do the impossible and enables us to transcend time in getting things
done as a result of His blessings in our service. An example of this is Noah. How
could Noah gather all of the living creatures by himself? This is totally impossible.
God told him From every living thing you shall bring two of every kind into the ark
(Genesis 6:19). When we serve God, God works with us and enables us to do the
impossible. God enables us to transcend time and complete things in a miraculous
and perfect way.
Gods blessings are not always immediate. Sometimes, they come later in life. God
blesses our children, he protects them and makes them His God fearing servants. God
protects us from harm, preserves our sanity and mental well being, and smooths our
ways in our work, school, home, marriage, church, and in our life.
230
How to Read the Bible
1. The Bible is different from all other books. Other books, like science books, technical
books, fictional and non-fictional books are written by people. The Bible was written by
people under Gods divine inspiration.
2. The Bible reveals and introduces God to man and tries to prepare us inwardly to receive
Him. This can be seen from John 14:23, where Jesus says, If anyone loves Me, he will
keep My word, and My Father will love him, and We will come to him and make Our
home with him.
Intellectual - Man puts himself and his mind in control of the text, trying to subject
its meaning to his own understanding. We should avoid reading the Bible in this way
at all costs, as it will never lead to spiritual growth.
Spiritual - Man puts the text on a level above himself and tries to bring his mind into
submission to its meaning. This is the way we should read the Bible, with humility,
awe, and submission.
231
5. Spiritual understanding is granted to us by the Holy Spirit. As we read in John 14:26,
The Counselor, the Holy Spirit, who the Father will send in My name, will teach you all
things and bring to your remembrance all that I have said to you.
There is no way to understand the Gospels intellectually, for the Gospels are spiri-
tual. The Gospels must be obeyed and lived through the Spirit before they can be
understood.
Sincere and humble acceptance of obedience to God is the true way to the knowledge
of God. Thus, we understand the Gospels by being humble and obedient to the words
contained in the Gospels.
The greatest commandment by which we may experience God is that we leave every-
thing and follow Christ. Of course not all of us can do this, and this is not needed
for a deep understanding of the Gospels. We can understand the Gospels through
secret acts of sacrifice, giving alms, giving time and energy to the church, and church
service.
Practical meditation comes through inspiration from the Gospels and is supplemented
from the Holy Spirit.
Academic meditation on the Bible stimulates the mind but leaves the spirit unmoved.
Thus, we should avoid academic meditation when reading the Bible. Jesus comments
on this in Mark 7:6, when He criticizes the pharisees saying, This people honors Me
with their lips, but their heart is far from Me.
232
8. Reading With and Without Practical Application - Our reading of the Bible will
be useless unless we obey the commandments and the Bible becomes the law of life for
us. In Matthew 7:26-27, Jesus says, But everyone who hears these sayings of Mine, and
does not do them, will be like a foolish man who built his house in the sand; and the
rain descended, the floods came, and the winds blew and beat on that house, and it fell.
And great was its fall. The power of the Bible is dependent entirely on ones practical
experience of it, the aid of the Holy Spirit, and a sincere obedience to the Gospels. A good
example in the Bible of a man who was given the gift of prophecy and one who knew God,
but lived an unclean and perverse life far from God is Balaam (Numbers 24:15-16). Thus,
Balaam is an example of a person who knew the word of God but did not live it.
9. Take Heed How You Hear - Before we read the Bible or hear the word of God, we
must look within ourselves to see where the word of God will come to rest in us. A good
example of this is the parable of the sower in Luke 8:12-18. This parable tells us that
there are four types of listeners to the Gospel: i) we can hear the Gospel and let it go by
the wayside, ii) we can hear the Gospel, and through temptation, what we hear falls away
(rocky ground), iii) we can hear the Gospel and get choked up with the cares of this life
(thorny ground), iv) or we can hear the Gospel and keep every single word we hear with
a noble and good heart, bearing fruit with patience (good ground).
10. Forgetting the Word of God is a Psychological Deception - St. James says in James
1:23-24, For if anyone is a hearer of the word and not a doer, is like a man observing
his natural face in a mirror; for he observes himself, goes away, and immediately forgets
what kind of man he was. The analogy here to reading the Bible is this. When we read
the Bible, we might believe every word we read and are moved by these words even to the
point of tears. But once we put the Bible down, we forget everything and do not retain
a single word we have read, as if we have looked in a mirror, went away, and then forgot
ourselves.
11. The Uncircumcised Ear - The Holy Spirit speaks to us through the Gospel, but only
the circumcised ear can hear His voice. The circumcised ear is the ear that is submissive,
and an ear that is ready to listen. St. Stephen talks about this in Acts 7:51 right before he
was stoned to death, when he said to those who were about to stone him, You stiff-necked
and uncircumcised in heart and ears! You always resist the Holy Spirit: as your fathers
did, so do you. Thus, an uncircumcised ear is the one which lacks submission and one
233
that has a heart too far from God to hear His voice. Jesus also talks about this in Matthew
13:13-15, as He makes a reference to Isaiah 6:9. A great example of a circumcised ear and
an ear ready to listen is that of Samuel. In 1 Samuel 3:10, when God calls out to Samuel,
Samuel answers by saying, Speak Lord, for Your servant hears.
12. The Voice of the Son of God Calls us and Invites us to Read the Bible - Jesus
says in Revelation 3:20, Behold, I stand at the door and knock. If anyone hears My voice
and opens the door, I will come in to him and dine with him, and he with Me. Thus,
Jesus gives us a open invitation to read the Bible and dine with Him, and he with Me.
13. Doing Honor to the Reading and Hearing of the Gospel - The person who is alive
to God and does not allow the word of God to slip away from him or be forgotten does
honor to reading the Bible. In respect, reverence, and fear this person makes the Bible as
a crown over his head and sets it over his whole life.
234
Introduction to the Bible
1. The Bible is regarded by the Church as the most important and most accurate spiritual
book. It is our main source for spiritual reading and learning.
2. The Bible is different from all other books. Other books, like science books, technical
books, fictional and non-fictional books are written by people. The Bible was written by
people with the inspiration of the Holy Spirit.
3. The Bible consists of two Testaments: The Old Testament and the New Testament. These
are the main two divisions of the Bible. The Old Testament is the period before Christ
was born, and the New Testament covers the period of Christs birth and after.
4. The Bible covers a period of 5500 years from the creation of Adam to the resurrection of
Jesus. We are now 2000 years beyond the resurrection, so we are now 7500 years after the
creation of Adam.
5. The Old Testament consists of 39 books and the New Testament consists of 27 books.
The Apocrypha includes 7 more books and 2 additions that are to be included in the
Old Testament. The Apocrypha is not included in New King James versions of the Bible.
Only the 39 books of the Old Testament appear in the New King James version. The
books of the Apocrypha are Tobit, I and II Macabees, Wisdom of Solomon, Wisdom of
Jesus the Son of Sirach, Baruch, and Judith. The additions are the additions to the book
of Daniel (The Song of the three Young Men, Susanna), and the additions to the book of
Esther. The Coptic Church refers to the Apocrypha as the Canonical Books, since the
word Apocrypha means false books.
6. The books of the Major Prophets are Isaiah, Jeremiah, Lamentations, Ezekiel, and Daniel.
These books appear in this order in the Old Testament. Lamentations was written by
Jeremiah.
7. The 12 Minor Prophets are Hosea, Joel, Amos, Obadiah, Jonah, Micah, Nahum, Habakkuk,
Zephaniah, Haggai, Zechariah, and Malachi. These are the last 12 books of the Old Tes-
tament, and appear in that order.
235
The Old Testament
1. Genesis - Contains the stories of the creation, Adam and Eve, Cain and Abel, Noah,
Abraham, Isaac, Jacob, and Joseph.
2. Exodus - Contains the stories of Moses, the Israelites leaving Egypt and going into the
promised land, the crossing of the Red Sea, the plagues, the ten commandments, and the
building of the tabernacle.
3. Leviticus - This book contains the laws of sacrifices, laws of worship, laws on what is
clean and unclean, laws of priesthood, and laws of governance.
4. Numbers - This book mainly gives an account of the numbering of the people in Israel,
and a census of the people. It also talks about some of the laws covered in Leviticus. It
gives the story of Balaam.
5. Deuteronomy - The theme of this book is the second law. It is a book that talks about
the clarification and the renewal of the covenant God made to his people. It gives the ten
commandments for the second time. At the end of Deuteronomy, Moses turns over the
leadership of the Israelites to Joshua.
The five books of Moses are thus Genesis, Exodus, Leviticus, Numbers and Deuteronomy.
These five books are called the Pentateuch, which is a Greek word meaning five containers
or five books.
6. Joshua - Joshua was Mosess successor as leader of the Israelites. This book gives the
stories of Joshua, the crossing of the Jordan, the falling of Jericho, the story of Rahab,
and the capture of Ai.
7. Judges - Talks about the 12 Judges of Israel, contains the story of Gideon, Samson, and
Deborah.
8. Ruth - Great book about marriage and relationships between children and their parents
and parents-in-law.
9. First Samuel - contains the stories of Samuel, Saul, and David. It ends with Sauls death.
Contains stories of David and Goliath, David and Jonathan, and David and Abigail.
236
10. Second Samuel - Contains stories about David as king of Israel. It talks about David
and Bathsheba, David and Nathan, Davids sons, the birth of Solomon.
11. First Kings - Davids son, Solomon, becomes king. The book contains stories about
Solomon. Solomon is the wisest man to ever live. It contains stories about Elijah, Elijah
raising the widows son, and the contest on Mount Carmel.
12. Second Kings - Contains stories about Elisha, including Elisha and the Shunammite
woman, the story of Naaman, the story of Hezekiah, Hezekiah consults Isaiah, and Jerusalem
conquered by Nebuchadnezzar.
13. First Chronicles - This book gives genealogies and lists of families. It also gives stories
of the life of David.
18. Job - Story of Job. He was wealthy, lost all, and regained twice as much as what he had
before.
19. Psalms - 150 Psalms, mostly written by David. The Psalms are poetic songs talking
about repentance, Gods love, Gods justice, Gods mercy, and prophecies about Jesus.
Psalm 50 is a Psalm of repentance read at the beginning of every hour in the Agpeya. The
book of Psalms is the longest book in the Bible.
20. Proverbs - A book of wise spiritual saying written by Solomon. A book of guidance and
advice for the young and the old.
21. Ecclesiastes - A book aiming to understand the reason and meaning for human existence
and the good that man can find in life. Chapter 3 is a well known chapter on Everything
Has Its Time.
22. Song of Solomon - A book of poetic songs of love for the Lord.
237
23. Isaiah - Contains the stories of Isaiah, Lucifer (Satan) (Chapter 14), many prophecies
concerning the birth and crucifixion of Jesus (Chapters 49 and 53).
24. Jeremiah - This book contains stories about Jeremiah the priest. It also talks about
rewards for following in Gods ways and the punishment for sin. The sins of the people
are revealed and they are urged to repent. Contains the story of Jeremiah at the potters
wheel.
25. Lamentations - This book contains laments following Jerusalems destruction by the
Babylonians. The lamenting is also a call to repentance for committed sins.
26. Ezekiel - This books talks about Israels sins, Gods judgment, justice and restoration of
Israel. Ezekiel also has the powerful verse on the perpetual virginity of the Virgin Mary
(Ezekiel 44:2).
27. Daniel - Contains stories about Daniel, Daniel in the kings house with his friends, Daniel
in the lions den, and Daniel interpreting dreams. This book also contains many prophecies
regarding the second coming of Christ.
28. Hosea - Hosea was one of the twelve minor prophets. The book gives about prophecies
about Christ and the life of Hosea.
29. Joel - Joel was one of the twelve minor prophets. The book gives about prophecies about
Christ.
30. Amos - Amos was one of the twelve minor prophets. The book gives about prophecies
about Christ.
31. Obadiah - Obadiah was one of the twelve minor prophets. The book gives about prophe-
cies about Christ.
32. Jonah - Jonah was one of the twelve minor prophets. The book gives about prophecies
about Christ. The book also gives the story about Jonah being in the belly of the whale
for three days.
33. Micah - Micah was one of the twelve minor prophets. The book gives about prophecies
about Christ.
238
34. Nahum - Nahum was one of the twelve minor prophets. The book gives about prophecies
about Christ.
35. Habakkuk - Habakkuk was one of the twelve minor prophets. The book gives about
prophecies about Christ.
36. Zephaniah - Zephaniah was one of the twelve minor prophets. The book gives about
prophecies about Christ.
37. Haggai - Haggai was one of the twelve minor prophets. The book gives about prophecies
about Christ.
38. Zechariah - Zechariah was one of the twelve minor prophets. The book gives about
prophecies about Christ.
39. Malachi - Malachi was one of the twelve minor prophets. The book gives about prophecies
about Christ.
239
The New Testament
The New Testament contains 27 books: 4 Gospels, the book of Acts, the 14 Epistles of St.
Paul, The Epistle of St. James, the 2 Epistles of St. Peter, the 3 Epistles of St. John, the
Epistle of St. Jude, and the book of Revelation.
The Epistle of St. James, the 2 Epistles of St. Peter, the 3 Epistles of St. John, and the
Epistle of St. Jude are called the Catholic (Universal) Epistles since the were written to
all churches.
The two Epistles of St. Paul to Timothy and the Epistle of St. Paul to Titus are called
the pastoral epistles since they focus on service and ministry.
1. Matthew - This is one of the four Gospels. Matthew was a tax collector who became
a disciple of Jesus. This Gospel records the birth of Christ, John the Baptist baptizing,
Satans temptation of Jesus, the beatitudes, the sermon on the mount, a record of the
twelve disciples, several parables, the transfiguration, many miracles, the last supper,
the arrest, crucifixion, and resurrection of Jesus. The twelve disciples were Simon who
was called Peter and Andrew his brother, James and John the sons of Zebedee, Philip
and Bartholomew, Thomas and Matthew the tax collector, James the son of Alphaeus,
Lebbaeus whose surname was Thaddaeus, Simon the Canaanite, and Judas Iscariot who
also betrayed Him (Matthew 10:1-4).
2. Mark - Mark was not one of the 12 disciples but he was one of the 70 Apostles. This is
the shortest of the four Gospels. This Gospel records miracles, parables, the last supper,
the arrest, crucifixion, and resurrection of Jesus.
3. Luke - Luke was not one of the 12 disciples but he was one of the 70 Apostles. Luke
records many parables, the birth of Christ, the birth of John the Baptist, John the Baptist
baptizing, Satans temptation of Jesus, Jesus appoints 70 other apostles, the last supper,
the arrest, crucifixion, and resurrection of Jesus.
4. John - John was one of the twelve disciples. This Gospel records many things that the
other Gospels do not. It records the personal encounters between Jesus and Nicodemus,
240
the Samaritan woman, the man at the pool of Bethesda, the man born blind, Lazarus,
Mary, and Martha. It also records many miracles, the last supper, the arrest, crucifixion,
and resurrection of Jesus.
5. Acts - The book of Acts records the Acts and missionary work of the Apostles, mainly
the Apostles Peter and Paul. It records the ascension of Christ, the day of Pentecost (the
coming of the Holy Spirit), Peters sermon in which 3000 were converted to the faith, and
the birth of the church.
6. Romans - This is St. Pauls Epistle (letter) to the church in Rome. The Epistle talks
about faith, salvation, Gods plan for the Jews and Gentiles, our life in Christ: freedom
from sin and death through baptism, and Christian life in the church and in the world.
7. First Corinthians - This is St. Pauls first Epistle (letter) to the church in Corinth.
Corinth is a city in Greece. This Epistle talks about church unity, purity, immorality,
marriage, spiritual gifts and talents, and the resurrection.
8. Second Corinthians - This is St. Pauls second Epistle to the church in Corinth. The
Epistle talks about reconciliation with God, giving, the life and duties of a servant of
Christ.
9. Galatians - This is St. Pauls Epistle to the church in Galatia, which was a Roman
province in Asia Minor. The Epistle talks about the true and false teachings of Christ,
and how to live the true teachings of Christ. This Epistle contains the nine fruits of the
Holy Spirit.
10. Ephesians - This is St. Pauls Epistle to the church in Ephesus, which is a city in Turkey.
St. Paul talks about how to live as a Christian, the work of the Holy Spirit in our life,
the blessings of Christ to the Church, our response to Gods grace, and spiritual warfare:
battling Satan and sin.
11. Philippians - This is St. Pauls Epistle to the church in Philippi, which is a city in Greece.
St. Paul talks about humility, suffering for Christ, giving all for Christ, being joyful, and
how to deal with anxiety.
12. Colossians - This is St. Pauls Epistle to the church in Colosse, which was in Asia
Minor near Ephesus (Turkey). This Epistle talks about doing Gods will in our life, false
spirituality, sacrificing for Christ, and the Christian home.
241
13. First Thessalonians - This is St. Pauls first Epistle to the church in Thessalonica, which
is a city in Greece. The epistle talks about purity, holiness, and eternal life.
14. Second Thessalonians - This is St. Pauls second Epistle to the church in Thessalonica.
This Epistle talks about holding firm onto the faith, preserving and holding on to our
traditions, false traditions and true traditions.
15. First Timothy - This is St. Pauls first Epistle to Timothy. It is one of the three
pastoral Epistles. This Epistle talks about service and ministry, being a good servant of
Jesus Christ, qualifications of deacons and church servants, and honoring the elders.
16. Second Timothy - This is St. Pauls second Epistle to Timothy. It talks about being
strong in the faith, how to overcome difficulties in service, and spreading the Gospel.
17. Titus - This is St. Pauls Epistle to Titus. It is the third pastoral Epistle. He talks about
the qualities of a successful church, dissensions in the church, and church elders.
18. Philemon - This is St. Pauls Epistle to Philemon. It is a personal letter asking Philemon
to take Onesimus back. This Epistle teaches us a lot about love, forgiveness, and unity.
19. Hebrews - This is St. Pauls Epistle to Christians in Palestine who were on the point
of giving up their Christian faith and returning to their Jewish beliefs. The Epistle talks
about faith, hope, and how to make progress in our spiritual life.
20. James - This is the Epistle of St. James. The writer is James, the son of Alphaeus, one
of the twelve disciples. The Epistle talks about overcoming trials and tribulations, faith
and deeds, the tongue, being patient, humility, pride, and being judgemental.
21. First Peter - This is the first Epistle of St. Peter. He talks about being submissive to
Christ, submission in marriage, submission to government, and Christs suffering.
22. Second Peter - This is the second Epistle of St. Peter. He talks about false teachings,
spiritual growth through faith, and Gods promises.
23. First John - This is the first Epistle of St. John. He talks about love of God, love of
each other, knowing God through love, and being children of God.
24. Second John - This is the second Epistle of St. John. He talks about deceivers and those
against Christ, and he talks about how to live according to Christs commandments.
242
25. Third John - This is the third Epistle of St. John. He talks about genuine leadership
and false leadership.
26. Jude - This is the Epistle of Jude. He talks about faith, unbelievers and those who do
not walk in the faith, and maintaining our relationship with Christ.
27. Revelation - The is the book of the Revelation of John. The book talks about the second
coming of Christ, the judgment, heaven, and hell.
The following are descriptions of Christ in the Old Testament given chronologically in time.
3. To Moses, He was the Passover Lamb and the Lifted-up One (Exodus 12:21, 15:2).
7. David called Him Lion of Judah and good Shepherd (Revelation 5:5).
243
13. Jeremiah saw Him at the potters wheel (Jeremiah 18:1-3,5-6).
14. Daniel called Him the Prince and the Smiting Stone (Daniel 2:34-35, 8:25, 9:25).
15. Hosea likened Him to a Bridegroom redeeming a fallen wife (Hosea 3:14-16).
19. Jonah saw Him as our Resurrection and Salvation (Jonah 2:6,9).
24. Haggai said He was the Desire of all Nations (Haggai 2:7).
25. Zechariah called Him the Righteous Branch (Zechariah 3:8, 6:12-13).
27. And John the Baptist said, Look, there is the Lamb of God who takes away the sin of
the world (John 1:19).
244
Timeline of the Bible
As Sunday School servants, it is very important to know the timeline of events in the Bible,
especially in the Old Testament.
The Bible covers a period of 5500 years from the creation of Adam to the birth of Jesus.
We are now 2000 years beyond the birth of Christ, so we are now 7500 years after the
creation of Adam.
The New Testament alone covers a period of about 100 years. Jesus was 33 when He died,
and the Apostle John wrote the Book of Revelation in approximately 95 AD.
We note that BC stands for Before Christ and AD stands for Anno Domini, which
is a latin phrase meaning The Year of the Lord, which denotes the year of the birth of
Christ.
245
Date Event
5500 BC Creation of Adam as calculated by the Orthodox Church
3000 BC Noah is born
2400 BC The Flood
2247 BC The Tower of Babel
2050 BC Abraham
1950 BC Isaac
1900 BC Jacob, who was renamed Israel
1800 BC Joseph in Egypt
1800 BC The Israelites entered Egypt where they remained for over 400 years in slavery
1500 BC Job
1400 BC Moses and the Exodus
1360 BC Joshua and entry into the promised land
1200 BC Period of the Judges
1150 BC Ruth
1100 BC Samuel
1050 BC Saul
1015 BC David
975 BC Solomon
935 BC Division of Israel into 2 kingdoms: Israel and Judah
850 BC Elijah and Elisha
750 BC Amos, Micah, Hosea, Jonah
740 BC Isaiah
721 BC The fall of Israel to the Assyrians
625 BC Jeremiah, Nahum
620 BC Zephaniah, Habakkuk
595 BC Ezekiel
586 BC The fall of Judah to the Babylonians, Babylonian exile
580 BC Daniel, Obadiah
536 BC King Cyrus of Persia allowed the Jews in Babylon to return to Jerusalem
500 BC Zechariah, Haggai
480 BC Esther
460 BC Ezra
450 BC Nehemiah
400 BC Malachi, Joel
0 AD Jesus is born
30 AD Jesus starts His ministry at age 30
33 AD Jesus is crucified at age 33 and resurrected from the dead
66 AD Saint Paul writes his last epistle (2nd Timothy) before his martyrdom
95 AD Book of Revelation is written
The books of the 12 minor prophets were written between 750 BC - 400 BC. The 12 minor
prophets are Hosea, Joel, Amos, Obadiah, Jonah, Micah, Habakkuk, Zephaniah, Haggai,
Zechariah, and Malachi.
The books of the major prophets were written between 850 BC - 580 BC. The books of
the major prophets are Isaiah, Jeremiah, Lamentations, Ezekiel, and Daniel.
246
The period before Abraham is know as primeval (primitive or early development) history,
and the period of Abraham is known as the period of the patriarchs. In particular, the four
patriarchs are Abraham, Isaac, Jacob, and Joseph, which is a period covering about 250
years. Thus, the period before the 11th chapter of Genesis is known as primeval Biblical
history, and the period after the 11th chapter of Genesis is modern Biblical history.
When did the ancient Egyptians inhabit Egypt? It had to be after the flood, in about
2400 BC.
Noah had three sons: Shem, Ham, and Japheth. These sons had many children, and they
became scattered throughout the earth, in the period of 2400 BC - 2200 BC. Chapters 10
and 11 of Genesis give the details on this.
The children of Ham went to Egypt. We read in Genesis 10:6, The sons of Ham: Cush,
Egypt, Put and Canaan. Thus, the ancient Egyptians and the Pharoahs are descendants
of Ham.
We also read in Genesis 11:1, Now the whole earth had one language and one speech.
This was at the time right after the flood. After the tower of Babel, different languages
arose and people were scattered all over the earth.
Abraham was a descendent of Shem. Abraham was the son of Terah, who was a direct
descendant of Shem (Genesis 11:31).
The pyramids of Egypt were built in the period 2300 BC - 1800 BC, which was the period
in which the descendants of Ham went to Egypt. The pyramids were still being built at
the time of Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob. The pyramids were already completed at the time
of Joseph and Moses.
People started inhabiting North America approximately 4500 years ago (2500 BC), which
is consistent with the migration of peoples after the flood, discussed in the 10th and 11th
chapters of Genesis.
247
The Book of Ezra - Part I
Historical Background:
The events in the books of Ezra and Nehemiah occurred around 538 B.C. This is the time
period of the Persian empire, considered to be one of the most impressive empires in the history
of the world. Persia at this time totally dominated the Middle East and was considered the
supreme super-power. The basic stories contained in Ezra and Nehemiah concern the rebuilding
of Jerusalem by the Jews after the city had been completely destroyed by the Babylonian king,
King Nebuchadnezzar. After the destruction of the city, the Jews were exiled to Babylon where
they became servants for the Babylonians. Their exile ended when the Babylonians fell to the
Persians. The king of Persia at that time was King Cyrus, who was a supreme political leader.
It was King Cyrus who agreed to free the Jews from exile so that Jerusalem could be rebuilt.
This historical account is given in the last chapter of II Chronicles, which incidently coincides
with the first chapter of Ezra.
It was Ezra and Nehemiah, two spiritually mature leaders, that led the people to the
rebuilding of Jerusalem. In particular, Ezra concentrates on rebuilding the temple for God, and
Nehemiah concentrates on rebuilding the walls of Jerusalem. The books of Ezra and Nehemiah
give detailed accounts of this rebuilding process. More importantly, the books characterize their
personalities, their leadership, their relationship with God, and their relationship with each
other. I would like to elaborate more on some of these points today.
Here, we see the might of King Cyrus, and that he was indeed an impressive power. We
immediately see that Cyrus is permitting the Jewish exiles to return home to Jerusalem. More-
over, we see that (1:1) Cyrus has the intentions of fulfilling the prophecies by Jeremiah and
Isaiah that Jerusalem be restored, that the word of the Lord by the mouth of Jeremiah might
be accomplished. Thus, whether Cyrus knew it or not he was in accordance with the will of
God for the restoration of Jerusalem. He does say The Lord, the God of heaven, has given me
all the kingdoms of the earth, and he has charged me to build him a house in Jerusalem. Hence,
248
God had brought Cyrus to pre-eminence for the very purpose of the salvation of his people.
We note here that the restoration of the people from exile, the rebuilding of Jerusalem and
the glorious future for the people were indeed the fulfillment of prophecy as given in Jeremiah
29:10, and in various parts of I Isaiah and II Isaiah. Thus we see how Gods plan for his people
is starting to unfold.
We must be careful here in reading Ezra. We must not think that the return of the Jews
from exile is not Gods final act for them. It is just the beginning. As we will see in later chapters,
life was very hard for the returned community. Thus, upon return, the people must have the
need to show continued obedience to God.
In this chapter, we have the names of all the people that returned to Jerusalem from exile.
This same list occurs in the book of Nehemiah (7:6-73). Not all of the people that were in exile
returned right away. Some stayed behind and eventually came later with Ezra (Chapter 7).
We see here in verses 64-70 that the community was by no means impoverished. They
owned much, and offered freely for the house of God, to erect in its place. God blesses the
people who seek him. Ezra makes it clear here that fulfillment of prophecy and the enjoyment
of Gods blessing are provisional, and need to be fed by whole-hearted obedience.
In this chapter, we read that the people gathered as one man to Jerusalem. Here the
people were obeying the law of God as discussed in Exodus (23:16). The alter of the temple is
rebuilt.
1) It signifies their unity as a people. Their gathering together from all parts of the land
249
was a necessary counter-balance to living in small groups. We see here that each individual
belonged to a much larger body, expressing both unity and faith in worship together. This is
very much like how Christians behave today, united together to worship Christ in Church.
2) We see that the worshiping God superseeded anything else. The people hadnt even had
enough time to build houses or to settle in, yet they observed the feasts, prayed and offered
sacrifices . We see that their priority was to worship.
Is this our priority today. In the midst of our turmoil and tribulations, do we take time to
pray and worship ?
Also, the restoration of the temple is begun. We read that the people were singing and
praising the Lord. This is because they had once again reconciled with God, and thus were filled
with the Holy Spirit.
In this chapter, we learn that the exiles had enemies. Enemies which opposed the rebuilding
of the city of Jerusalem. The enemies tried various ploys to stop the exiles from rebuilding.
1) First, they approached Zerubbabel himself trying to convince him that they were similar
to the exiles, and that they had a desire to help. Zerubbabel, of course, knew better. Zerub-
babels resistance came through spiritual insight provided by God. In a similar way, St. Paul
in Romans 12:2 warns Christians to avoid conforming to the worlds standards and ways of
thinking.
2) When a confrontation with Zerubbabel failed, the adversaries tried to discourage the
exiles from building and attempted to frustrate them. When this ploy did not work, the exiles
adversaries then wrote a letter to Artexerxes, who was then the king of Persia. This was the
first of two letters regarding this matter. The commander of the adversaries was Rehum, who
wrote the letter.
250
In his letter, Rehum tries to convince the king that he and his people are loyal to him and
that the exiles are a rebellious people. Jerusalem was historically a rebellious city. Moreover,
he tries to convince the king that if the city is rebuilt, that the exiles will be disobedient to
him. Rehum says they will not pay tax, tribute, or custom, and the kings treasury will be
diminished. Also, The result will be that you will have no dominion over the region beyond
the river.
The king takes the bait. He is obviously troubled by the possibility of lost revenue, and
even more so of the potential for Judah to become larger and more powerful. Thus, the king
orders that the building of the temple be stopped.
Chapter 5
This chapter begins with the prophets Haggai and Zechariah preaching to the exiles about
the prophecies. They insist to the people to continue building. Two elements come from the
preaching of the prophets: They are rebuke and promise.
The rebuke mainly comes from Haggai, who deplores the peoples own concern for their
own comfort than for the House of God. Thus Haggai implies that there was more to the
abandonment of work on the temple than external opposition alone. The exiles had become
complacent, and there was a decline and lack of determination for doing Gods will.
Zechariahs preaching focuses on the glorious future that awaits Judah. The Lord will
again comfort Zion and again choose Jerusalem (Zech 1:17). He pictures the city enjoying
prosperity and peace.
This preaching of Haggai and Zechariah prompted the exiles into action and the continu-
ation of the temple. We note here that these prophets did not simply accuse while remaining
detached. Rather we find them alongside the builders helping them.
The insistence of Haggai and Zechariah to continue building is a very important point.
They had a fear that the people would become like the surrounding nations and they would
cease to be people of God. We teach the same thing in Church today. We counsel people
251
against becoming indistinguishable with the rest of the world, but rather to be distinguishable
and to serve as witnesses to Christ our Lord.
Tattenai, who was the governor of the region saw the exiles continue to build, and he
questioned them. They answered him confidently We are the servants of the God of heaven
and earth, and we are rebuilding the temple that was built many years ago.
We see here that in the statement of the exiles, they provide an explanation and under-
standing of their exile and return. This has two elements, confession and love.
1) They acknowledge that they were exiled by Nebuchadnezzar because they had been
disobedient to God, and they blame themselves for it. They recognize they are guilty, and
express here a confession, thus enabling themselves to get closer to God.
2) The exiles words also testify to a recovered belief that they are the special objects of
Gods love. They show their determination in building the temple by citing the decrees of Cyrus
and what Nebuchadnezzar had done.
Upon hearing this letter, king Darius said to Tattenai: let them continue rebuilding the
temple.
In these first five chapters of Ezra, we see the kind of adversity that the people of God went
through. Throughout the history of the world, God has continually been seeking the obedience
and love of man through various ways. In Ezra, it is the rebuilding of the temple, and of course
his highest act came when he took on flesh and blood in becoming Christ.
How can we relate the troubles of the exiles with the kind of troubles we have today. We,
like the exiles have experienced troubles, and may have expressed doubt about Gods goodness
at some point in out lives.
A Pastor was walking one day with a man who expressed doubt about Gods goodness. I
252
dont know what I shall do with all my worries and troubles he said, and at that moment, the
pastor noticed a cow looking over a stone wall. And he said to the man, You know why that
cow is looking over the wall ? and the man said no. Then the pastor said, Ill tell you why,
because she cant see through the wall. And thats exactly what you must do with your wall of
trouble, look over and above it.
Thus, we should look over and above our wall of trouble to see what possible meaning God
has for us in it. For it is only when we see meaning in our troubles that we can overcome them.
We Christians always start with the premise that there is always meaning in suffering
because of the fact that God loves each and everyone of us very personally, so much that he died
for us.
God only permits trouble because he knows the good that can come from it. God uses
trouble then in order to make us more patient, more understanding, more obedient, more faithful,
more holy. We cannot always see or understand this, when we are in the midst of trouble.
But we live and walk and die by the faith that there is meaning to everything that happens
to us once we commit our life to Jesus as Lord.
There is meaning in suffering when we remember that every defeating situation has in it
a potential victory. As one spiritual writer says God buries at the heart of every difficulty, a
nugget of Gold. Some one once said, you know God has a sense of humor. He likes to play
games with us. You know what he does. When he has a wonderful possibility for you, he doesnt
hand over to you easily, because that would make you soft. He buries it at the heart of a great
difficulty and then he hands you the difficulty. So instead of complaining that God does not
love you, you should thank him for the difficulty because you know that he has buried a bright
possibility at the very heart of that difficulty.
So when a difficulty faces us, instead of being depressed and being overwhelmed by it, we
should say I wonder what God is trying to say to me through this difficulty. I wonder what little
nugget of gold he has in it hidden for me ? By his grace Im going to find it.
253
An example of this kind of attitude toward trouble is Clem Levine, one of the greatest
pitchers of all time. When he was about 12 years old, Clem was already dreaming of becoming
a big league pitcher, nothing less was going to satisfy him. At age 14, he broke his index finger.
An index finger is very important to a ball player and Clem was broken hearted, he thought it
was the end of his baseball future. But a coach whom Clem knew encouraged him. Clem, he
said, When life hands you something real tough, the thing to do is to pray about it , and ask
the Lord to show you what he has in it for you. What could he possibly have in it for me,
Clem wanted to know. How can I use a crooked finger ? I want to be a pitcher. Well said the
coach, lets see what we can do with you. He studied Clems hand and taught him to hold the
ball a little differently. It took effort, it took time, it took patience, it took perseverance, but
before long with his crooked finger, Clem developed the kind of pitch that would go straight
and suddenly just before it got to the plate it would give a twist and sail around the plate right
past the bewildered batter. And Clem Levine did become a big league pitcher, famous for his
jug-handle curve, and he never ceased to thank God for his jug handle finger.
This is how God works with people who are spiritually astute. He puts difficulties before
them. And the difficulties have in them bright and shining pearls of great price. As a great
spiritual writer once wrote Mishaps are like knives, they either serve us or cut us as we grasp
them either by the blade or by the handle.
254
The Book of Ezra - Part II
Chapter 5
This chapter begins with the prophets Haggai and Zechariah preaching to the exiles about
the prophecies. They insist to the people to continue building. Two elements come from the
preaching of the prophets: They are rebuke and promise.
The rebuke mainly comes from Haggai, who deplores the peoples own concern for their
own comfort than for the House of God. Thus Haggai implies that there was more to the
abandonment of work on the temple than external opposition alone. The exiles had become
complacent, and there was a decline and lack of determination for doing Gods will.
Zechariahs preaching focuses on the glorious future that awaits Judah. The Lord will
again comfort Zion and again choose Jerusalem (Zech 1:17). He pictures the city enjoying
prosperity and peace.
This preaching of Haggai and Zechariah prompted the exiles into action and the continu-
ation of the temple. We note here that these prophets did not simply accuse while remaining
detached. Rather we find them alongside the builders helping them.
The insistence of Haggai and Zechariah to continue building is a very important point.
They had a fear that the people would become like the surrounding nations and they would
cease to be people of God. We teach the same thing in Church today. We counsel people
against becoming indistinguishable with the rest of the world, but rather to be distinguishable
and to serve as witnesses to Christ our Lord.
Tattenai, who was the governor of the region saw the exiles continue to build, and he
questioned them. They answered him confidently We are the servants of the God of heaven
and earth, and we are rebuilding the temple that was built many years ago.
We see here that in the statement of the exiles, they provide an explanation and under-
255
standing of their exile and return. This has two elements, confession and love.
1) They acknowledge that they were exiled by Nebuchadnezzar because they had been
disobedient to God, and they blame themselves for it. They recognize they are guilty, and
express here a confession, thus enabling themselves to get closer to God.
2) The exiles words also testify to a recovered belief that they are the special objects of
Gods love. They show their determination in building the temple by citing the decrees of Cyrus
and what Nebuchadnezzar had done.
Upon hearing this letter, king Darius said to Tattenai: let them continue rebuilding the
temple.
In these first five chapters of Ezra, we see the kind of adversity that the people of God went
through. Throughout the history of the world, God has continually been seeking the obedience
and love of man through various ways. In Ezra, it is the rebuilding of the temple, and of course
his highest act came when he took on flesh and blood in becoming Christ.
Chapter 6
(verses 1-13)
This chapter begins with the decree given by king Cyrus is found and its contents are stated.
We see here how much the king supported the rebuilding of Jerusalem. He orders that the gold
and silver vessels be returned and even offers to cover the cost of rebuilding.
After Darius reads the decree of Cyrus, he immediately issues his own decree. The effect of
his decree is to confirm the decree of Cyrus and apply them to this current situation. Cyruss
decree is about 18 years prior to Dariuss.
In this Chapter, we the intentions and the character of king Darius become clear. We
first notice that Dariuss reply to Tattenai is very strong in that he says that building is to be
resumed without delay, and that the adversaries of the exiles would help with the costs. More
256
over, they are to supply the exiles with bulls, rams sheeps for burnt offerings, and salt wine or
oil for the priests. As he says let them be given to them day by day without fail. Failure
to comply with this decree would be costly. He promises that he will severely punish any one
who opposes the rebuilding as he says a beam shall be pulled out of his house, and he shall be
impaled upon it, and his house shall be made a dunghill. This in effects means that who ever
opposes the rebuilding will be killed, and his name erased from the history books.
Thus, we see that Darius was of very strong character who had complete control of his
people. Moreover, he was ruthless and determined. As a result of the adversaries stopping the
rebuilding, he imposed a severe punishment on them. In this way, he was similar to Cyrus.
The irony here, is that Darius himself was not a man of God, but his interests completely
coincided with those of God. He, of course did not know this. Little did he know that the
dwelling of Gods name in Jerusalem was of a significance that would completely outlast him.
Little did he know or possibly understand that God one day would take on flesh and blood and
sacrifice himself in Jerusalem, and initiate an empire which has no end.
verses (13-22)
Here we read that after receiving the decree of Darius, Tattenai did with all diligence what
Darius the king had ordered.
In these verses, we read that the exiles finally completed the building of the Temple. More
importantly, we further read that they prayed and thanked God for his gift. They celebrated and
dedicated the temple to God. Moreover, the observed the Passover feast, and offered sacrifices
to God. This was a joyous occasion for the exiles.
1) The dedication - The exiles know who their God is. They know that he alone is respon-
sible for their freedom and return to Jerusalem. Thus, the dedication resembles this recognition.
The dedication was also a sign of faith that greater things were in store for them.
The joy of the exiles was solemn. It remained in touch with the cause of their sufferings
257
(i.e. lack of obedience and straying from God). The sacrifices they offered took the from of a
sin offering. It was an act of repentance asking for forgiveness from God.
Their celebration thus looks forward and backwards. They recognize their past as that of
being sinful, for which they repent. They see their future as that of having a reconciled and
loving relationship with God. Therefore, its never too late to repent. By Gods love and grace,
he does forgive sin if we confess and come to him.
2) The Passover celebration - The Passover celebration indicates an exclusiveness about the
exiles. By observing the Passover, they distinguish themselves from the others as being Gods
people. It is through them that Gods salvation will be continued. This is not to say that no
one else can belong to God, but rather, everyone who was willing to join the exiles and separate
himself from the rest of the world would also become a child of God.
This is very similar to what the Church believes today. When we celebrate Christmas, we are
celebrating the birth of Jesus. When we observe Good Friday, we are recognizing the Crucifixion
and suffering of Jesus, and when we celebrate Easter, we are recognizing the resurrection. These
recognitions indicate that we are witnesses of Jesus, and they distinguish us from others.
We see that the only qualification to for distinction is that we have a heartfelt commitment
of mind and soul to the God who was in Christ Jesus reconciling the world to himself. (2 Cor.
5:19).
In this chapter and the remaining chapters, we will be able to characterize the personality
of Ezra. We first witness Ezras departure from Babylon and his arrival in Jerusalem. We see
that he didnt come to Jerusalem alone. Some of the other Jews decided to leave Babylon to
join their brothers in Jerusalem.
The first 10 verses in this chapter immediately tell us about the personality of Ezra. We
can characterize this as follows:
258
1) We see that Ezra is a true man of God, well versed on the laws of Moses, and very
spiritually astute. This is indicated by the verse he was a scribe skilled in the law of Moses.
Being called a scribe actually suggests that he was a priest. We read that he was a priest in
verse 11. Moreover, we read that he was skilled, implying that he was well trained in the laws,
and effective in performing services for God.
2) Secondly, we see the desire that Ezra has to serve God. As we read that he had set his
heart to study the law of the Lord, and more importantly to obey and teach these laws. As
we read in verse 10, to teach his statutes and ordinances in Israel. Thus, we see that Ezra
not only studied Gods laws, he also lived them. Further, it was important for him to teach the
people so that they could also live them. Thus, Ezra was a model teacher for his people. He
was a doer of the law, and this is why he was so well respected by his people and the Persian
King as we see in verses 11-26.
Verses 11-26:
Here we see the respect king Darius has for Ezra. He appoints Ezra the leader for the
people of Jerusalem. He gives Ezra complete responsibility of the people, and tells him to lead
the people by the laws of God. Thus the purpose of Ezras mission according to the kings
decree is contained in verse 25 : he was to appoint judges to judge on the basis of Gods laws,
and to ensure that all members of the community were conversant with them. Moreover, he
was appointed to teach the people about Gods laws. This main purpose of Ezras task then is
to educate the exiles on Gods laws, and further to enforce them. This would hopefully build
a more faithful community, thus taking a positive step toward God. Ezra himself must have
thought that this is a marvelous thing that a pagan king instructs him to go lead a people
according to Gods laws. This certainly must have strengthened his believed that the mission
he was to go on was planned entirely by God. Here we really see God at work. Our Faith really
feeds on seeing God at work, and we can imagine that Ezras faith was made much stronger by
this. God continues to work in the same way today in our lives.
Chapter 8
This chapter gives a more detailed account of Ezras journey from Babylon. Again this
259
chapter confirms that Ezra did not come alone. He was accompanied by fellow Jews. In this
chapter, Ezra is speaking in first person.
(verses 21-36)
More light is shed on Ezras personality as we read about his journey. We see more of
Ezras faith and holiness as he proclaims a fast, so that they could have a safe trip. Verses 21-23
contain several terms which speak of proper devotion to God. We read that the people were
to humble themselves and seek God. And when they had fasted and prayed, he had
listened. Here, Ezras spiritual maturity really comes out. He is fully aware that God, though
full of love and always making the first move, does not dispense favors carelessly, but rather
seeks to build and bless the people who know him and his ways.
Ezra demonstrates this to his people by refusing to accept soldiers and horsemen from
the king. He has refused to accept help from the king, feeling that if he did, he would give a
bad impression about God to the king. He wanted to show the king and his people that he had
complete faith in God, and Gods guidance alone is sufficient for their journey. Ezras confidence
was in part based on Artaxerxes decree, the hand of the Lord my God was upon me. Ezra
knew that God was talking to him through the king, and now he wanted to prove that indeed
the hand of our God is for good upon all that seek him. In verse 31, we read that the hand
of our God was upon us, and he delivered us from the hand of the enemy and from ambushes
by the way.
Ezras final preparation before departure is to make proper arrangements for the care and
transport for the gifts for God which the king has made. He chooses twelve priests. Because
these gifts belong to God, Ezra chooses holy people to take care of them. Holy things must be
handled by Holy people.
We see that Ezra took great time to prepare the gifts and sacrifices, so that they could
properly worship once they arrived. What makes the Jews restoration so remarkable is not
simple that they should return, but that kings should supply their needs in relation to worship.
It is this that makes the new exodus so evidently an act of Gods salvation.
260
When Ezras people arrived in Jerusalem, it was right that they should offer sacrifices, not
because the king said they should, or even as an act of thanksgiving, but because they were
reconstituted as the people of God, and therefore must worship.
261
The Epistle of St. James
References
Historical Background
This Epistle is one of the seven Catholic Epistles. The others are the two Epistles of St.
Peter, the three Epistles of St. John, and the Epistle of St. Jude.
Author: St. James, James, a bondservant of God and of the Lord Jesus Christ. (1:1)
Recipients of the Epistle: the twelve tribes which are scattered abroad, (1:1). Thus the
epistle is not addressed to a particular church or geographical region.
262
Setting: The people St. James addresses are experiencing various trials: persecution,
deception (Chapter 1), economic injustice and poverty (Chapters 1, 2 and 5), apostasy
(Chapters 1 and 5) and divisions in the Church (Chapters 3 and 4).
In response to these trials, people are tempted by a) depression over being snubbed
and persecuted by the Jews (Chapters 1 and 5), b) anger at having their good will
being taken advantage of (Chapters 1), c) bitterness over being so poor when godless
Jews were so rich (Chapter 2), and d) impatience over the delay in the return of
Christ (Chapter 5).
They are plagued most by the sin of hypocrisy - the split between profession and
practice, between faith and works which is manifested in distrust, dissension and
quarrels.
Chapter 1
Trials take place by Gods permission. The issue is not trials per se, but our response
to them. St. James discusses our role and Gods role in trials.
Properly received, trials reveal where our hearts are.
They help increase faith (1:3).
The godly reaction to trials is joy, patience and perseverance (1:3-4).
The importance of wisdom in trials (1:5-11). Wisdom is a gift given to those who ask God
in faith (1:5-6).
St. James talks about the poor and the rich, and talks about the worthlessness of riches.
Note the reverse of the order of the world (1:8-11).
263
We are to rejoice in temptations (1:12).
Let no one say when he is tempted, I am tempted by God, for God cannot be
tempted by evil, nor does He himself tempt anyone (1:13).
Temptation originates in our own sinful passions (1:14).
Warning against deception - every good gift and every perfect gift gift is from above, and
comes down from the Father of Lights (1:17). This verse is said in the Liturgy of St. John
Chrysystom.
Being doers not just hearers of the word (1:19-27). An important aspect of works.
For if anyone is a hearer of the word and not a doer, he is like a man observing his
natural face in a mirror; for he observes himself, goes away, and immediately forgets
what kind of man he was (1:23).
Verses 1:26-27 give three examples of the relationship between faith and works: (1)
mastery over speech, (2) ministry to the needy, (3) moral purity in thought and deed.
Chapter 2
The law of love - do not judge others and do not show partiality to others.
The rich and the poor - unjustly judging others is an example of a fainthearted faith being
manifested in unjust works (2:1-5).
God does not show partiality to anyone. Do not show partiality to anyone (2:5-9).
The true standard of judgment is perfect faith manifested in perfect works (2:8-13).
264
The faith of Abraham is living and active (2:21-26).
Chapter 3
What we say reveals what we are: If we can control what we say, we can control what we
do. Not controlling what we say is an example of lack of faith, and results in lack of works
(3:1-12).
Verses 3:1-12 is the Catholic Epistle reading for the Sunday of the Prodigal Son during
lent.
St. James warns against hypocrisy in teaching and counseling - He warns of the devel-
opment of a self-centered faith and he notes that self-centered faith will manifest itself in
self-centered works, and in this case, we will be helping others in an unhelpful manner
(3:13-18).
He mentions that a wisdom that is self-seeking does not descend from above, but it is
earthly, sensual, and demonic (3:15).
He mentions that the wisdom thats from above is pure, peaceable, gentle, willing to yield,
full of mercy and good fruits, without partiality, and without hypocrisy (3:17).
Chapter 4
This chapter talks about quarrels in the church, criticizing others, and arrogance.
Quarrels in the church are yet another example of a breakdown of faith and works (4:1-10).
265
Wars and fights in the Church are an example of the result of faith without works. Such
disputes come from desires or passions which bring disruption in the body of Christ. These
passions are divisive (4:1), self-centered (4:3), of this world (4:4), energized by Satan (4:7),
and therefore at enmity with God (4:4).
God does not answer prayers for our selfish desires (4:3).
St. James again talks about the sin of judging others as he did in Chapter 2.
True faith a) depends completely on God and b) seeks ways to do good works.
Dont make plans for your life, for you dont know what will happen tomorrow (4:13-
14).
Therefore to him who knows to do good and does not do it, to him it is sin (4:17).
Chapter 5
266
This chapter discusses the injustice and corruption caused by riches, the topic of suffering,
and healing.
Your riches are corrupted, and your garments are moth-eaten (5:2).
Indeed the wages of the laborers who mowed your fields, which you have kept back by
fraud (5:4).
The terrible fate of the unjust rich is that their wealth will condemn them (5:1-6).
Persevere as did Job - The faithful prophets and saints are examples for us in how to
practice suffering and patience (5:10-11).
But above all, my brethren, do not swear, either by heaven or by earth or with any
other oath. But let your Yes be Yes, and your No, No, lest you fall into
judgment (5:12). These are the words of Jesus in Matthew 5:34-37.
Is anyone among you sick? Let him call for the elders of the church, and let him pray
over him, anointing him with oil in the name of the Lord. (5:14, Mark 6:13, 16:18).
Important verse for the Sacrament of healing of the sick.
Confess your trespasses to one another, and pray for one another, that you may be
healed (5:16, 1 John 1:8-10). Important verse for the Sacrament of Confession.
Brethren, if anyone among you wanders from the truth, and someone turns him back,
let him know that he who turns a sinner from error of his way will save a soul from
death and cover a multitude of sins (5:19-20). This verse describes the work of faith
in restoring one who has strayed from the faith.
267
St. Pauls Epistle to the Philippians
St. Paul wrote this epistle between 61-63 A.D., while under house arrest in Rome.
St. Paul wrote 4 epistles while in prison. These are Philemon, Philippians, Ephesians,
and Colossians.
The city of Philippi was named after King Philip II of Macedonia, the father of Alexander
the Great. After the Romans captured this city, it became part of the Roman province of
Macedonia.
St. Paul visited Philippi three times, once on his second missionary journey (50 - 51 A.D.)
and twice on his third missionary journey (57 - 58 A.D.).
The theme of the epistle is Our dynamic heavenly and joyful life in Christ. Salvation is a
dynamic, ongoing experience which is not only personal, but also shared among believers.
St. Paul urges the believers in Philippi toward continued unity, humility, generosity, and
joy in Christ.
1. St. Pauls mind was absorbed in the heavenly joy. He reveals our dynamic heavenly and
joyful life in Christ. Joy is a characteristic term for this epistle.
Christ is our life and death is a profit (1:21): here on earth, we practice the joyful life
since Christ is our life. Death is a profit and a gain since we would see Christ face to
face when we depart from this world.
Our desire to depart and be with Christ, which is far better (1:23).
We press towards the goal for the prize for the upward call of God in Christ Jesus
(3:14).
Our citizenship is in heaven (3:20). He conceived his whole life as a glorification of
Christ. If by dying he glorifies Christ, this is gain in so far as the glorification of
Christ is the purpose of St. Pauls existence.
268
We wait for Jesus Christ, who will transform our lowly bodies to His glorious body
(3:21).
St. Paul considers the joy of his people and their crowns as his own joy and crown
(4:1).
He considers his ministry as a call of joy: Rejoice in the Lord always. Again I will
say rejoice! (4:4).
We count all things as rubbish that we may gain Christ (3:8), for He is our satisfaction
and treasure.
St. Paul repeats the expression The day of Christ (1:6, 10) as a joyful day!
3. The Incarnation Song of St. Paul (2:5-11). Here St. Paul describes the humility of Christ
in the incarnation, the crucifixion, and the resurrection. It is a summary of the life of
Christ and the process of salvation.
4. He declares his trust in Gods work: I trust in the Lord that I myself shall also come
shortly (2:24). He was sure that God will release him from jail.
5. St. Paul was proud of Gods work with the statesmen, for their corruption and wickedness
was severe (1:16, 2:21).
6. Sanctification of emotions: Not only does St. Paul lift up our minds to see that our bodies
will be glorified and become in the likeness of the risen body of Jesus Christ, but he directly
incites us not to destroy our emotions, but rather sanctify them (1:17, 1:8, 2:26-27, 2:1-2).
7. Cooperation between Divine grace and mans will. It is Gods pleasure to work in us, to
strengthen and sanctify our wills and to help us work, if we submit to Him. He says, work
out your salvation with fear and trembling; for it is God who works in you both to will
and to do for His good pleasure (2:12-13). St. Paul also wants us to struggle unceasingly
for the upward call of God in Christ Jesus (3:13-14).
8. Not only did St. Paul diligently practice the joyful life in Christ, but he also became a
source of joy for those who suffer. He was like a drink offering being poured out for the
sacrifice of their faith (2:17-18).
269
10. St. Paul tells us how to deal with anxiety and the pressures of this life (4:6-8).
12. St. Paul lived to intercede for others. Even in prison, he prayed for his friends (1:3-4).
1. Chapter 1: Life in Christ - Christ is our life. He is the Heavenly Bread, the Way,
the Heavenly Groom, the Savior, our Educator, our Treasure, our Light, our Joy, and our
Satisfaction. Signs that we are living our life in Christ include a saintly view of others, holy
and saintly emotions (1:7-8), growth in love (1:9), knowledge (1:10), good deeds (1:10), and
righteousness (1:11). We become absorbed in salvation (1:12-26), and rejoice in suffering
(1:27-30).
2. Chapter 2: The Divine Price for Life in Christ - Christ showed us the way by
humility. He emptied Himself (2:5-11). We must also empty ourselves. The cross is the
way to glorify Christ. We must carry our cross.
4. Features of the Life in Christ - Supernatural unity (4:1-3), unceasing joy (4:4). The
word joy or rejoice occurs in this epistle 16 times. Gentleness (4:5), waiting for the last
advent of Christ (4:5), freedom from worry and anxiety (4:6-7), growing in virtues (4:8-9),
being content (4:10-12), being strong in Christ (4:13), and sharing in others sufferings and
needs (4:14-19).
Great Verses
2. For I am hard-pressed between the two, having a desire to depart and be with Christ,
which is far better (1:23).
270
3. Let nothing be done through selfish ambition or conceit, but in lowliness of mind let each
esteem others better than himself. Let each of you look out not only for his own interests,
but also for the interests of others (2:3-4).
4. Let this mind be in you which was also in Christ Jesus, who, being in the form of God,
did not consider it robbery to be equal with God, but made Himself of no reputation,
taking the form of a bondservant, and coming in the likeness of men. And being found
in appearance as a man, He humbled Himself and became obedient to the point of death,
even the death of the cross. Therefore God also has highly exalted Him and given Him
the name which is above every name, that at the name of Jesus every knee should bow,
of those in heaven, and of those on earth, and of those under the earth, and that every
tongue should confess that Jesus Christ is Lord, to the glory of God the Father: (2:5-11).
5. Therefore, my beloved, as you have always obeyed, not as in my presence only, but now
much more in my absence, work out your own salvation with fear and trembling; for it is
God who works in you both to will and to do for His good pleasure (2:12-13).
7. But what things were gain to me, these I have counted loss for Christ (3:7).
8. Yet indeed I also count all things loss for the excellence of the knowledge of Christ Jesus
my Lord, for whom I have suffered the loss of all things, and count them as rubbish, that
I may gain Christ (3:8).
9. Not that I have already attained, or am already perfected; but I press on, that I may lay
hold of that for which Christ Jesus has also laid hold of me (3:12).
10. Brethren, I do not count myself to have apprehended; but one thing I do, forgetting
those things which are behind and reaching forward to those things which are ahead, I
press toward the goal for the prize of the upward call of God in Christ (3:13-14).
11. For our citizenship is in heaven, from which we also eagerly wait for the Savior, the Lord
Jesus Christ (3:20).
12. Rejoice in the Lord always. Again I will say, rejoice! (4:4).
13. Be anxious for nothing, but in everything by prayer and supplication, with thanksgiving,
let your requests be made known to God (4:6).
271
14. and the peace of God, which surpasses all understanding, will guard your hearts and
minds through Christ Jesus (4:7).
15. Finally, brethren, whatever things are true, whatever things are noble, whatever things
are just, whatever things are pure, whatever things are lovely, whatever things are of
good report, if there is any virtue and if there is anything praiseworthymeditate on these
things (4:8).
16. Not that I speak in regard to need, for I have learned in whatever state I am, to be
content (4:11).
272
Commentary on the First Book of Samuel
3. Outline of book: Chapters 1-7 focus on the life of Samuel, prophet and judge. Chapters
8-15 focus on King Saul. Chapters 16-31 focus on the life of David.
4. Chapter 1 talks about the birth of Samuel. Samuel was the son of Hannah. Samuel was
the fruit of Hannahs prayers and faith, for she was old when Samuel was born.
5. Elkanah was the husband of Hannah. Elkanah had two wives, Hannah and Peninnah.
Elkanah loved Hannah more, and Peninnah was jealous of Hannah. Peninnah would
provoke Hannah because she had no children (1 Samuel 1:6).
6. Hannah had promised the Lord that if she had a male child that she would dedicate the
child to Him (1 Samuel 1:11). Her prayers were answered and she had Samuel (1 Samuel
1:20).
7. Hannah offered Samuel to the Lord after he had been weaned. After he had been weaned,
she offered sacrifices and dedicated Samuel to the Lord (1 Samuel 1:24).
8. Samuel began his service to the Lord as a young boy. He was 12 years old. We read Now
the boy Samuel ministered to the Lord before Eli. And the word of the Lord was rare in
those days; there was no widespread revelation (1 Samuel 3:1).
9. Eli lived in Shiloh, where Hannah and Samuel would go to worship. Eli had two wicked
sons, who were priests. They were corrupt and did not know the Lord (1 Samuel 2:12).
What a big difference between Samuel and the two sons of Eli. Eli was too lenient in his
upbringing of his sons.
10. God told Samuel to warn Eli of his leniency toward his sons upbringing (1 Samuel 3:13).
Elis personality was weak and he told nothing to his sons after Samuels warning. Samuel
hid nothing from Eli, and we read that So Samuel grew, and the Lord was with him and
let none of his words fall to the ground (1 Samuel 3:19).
273
11. Elis two sons then died in a battle with the Philistines (1 Samuel 4:11). When Eli heard
that his sons died and the Ark of God had been taken, he fell over his chair and died (1
Samuel 4:18).
12. In Chapters 5, 6, we read about the Philistines returning the Ark of God, and how Israel
defeated the Philistines in battle.
13. In Chapter 8, Israel demands a king from Samuel. At this time, Samuel was old. He had
two sons, Joel and Abjah. His sons did not walk in the ways of the Lord and neither of
them were fit to be king (1 Samuel 8:1-2).
14. Samuel warned the people about the disadvantages of having a king (1 Samuel 8:11-17).
The people still insisted on a king, and Samuel took their request to the Lord.
15. When Samuel took their request to the Lord, we read So the Lord said to Samuel, Heed
their voice, and make them a king (1 Samuel 8:22).
16. There was nothing wrong with wanting a king, but the Israelites were impatient and wanted
a king immediately, while the Lord was preparing for them a different person, David. God
showed the Israelites that impatience leads to mistakes in that Saul was chosen king in
haste.
17. Samuel meets Saul in Zuph when Saul was looking for his fathers lost donkeys. Saul
wanted to return home, then Sauls servant told Saul that there was a man of God in
Zuph who could help them (1 Samuel 9:5-7). Saul did not know anything about this man
of God. We see at the outset that Saul was not a holy man.
18. Saul was the most impressive man in all of Israel. We read that There was not a taller
and more handsome person in all of Israel than Saul (1 Samuel 9:1).
19. Samuel meets Saul and Saul was anointed king by Samuel (1 Samuel 10:1). At this point,
Saul becomes king, and Samuel no longer is the judge of Israel. Samuel made a farewell
speech to the people (Chapter 12).
20. Sauls first big mistake occurs in Chapter 13. There was a battle between Israel and the
Philistines. The battle was fierce, and Israel was being surrounded. The people were in
distress and scattered. They were going to lose the battle. Samuel has told Saul to wait
seven days for him and he would meet Saul at the battlefield in Gilgal. When Saul saw that
274
his people were in distress and scattered, and Samuel had not come in the promised time
(seven days), Saul took it upon himself to offer a burnt offering to the Lord, something
which he had no authority to do. He was not a priest or a prophet, and performed clerical
duties that he was not qualified or authorized to perform. We see here that Saul was a
very impatient person. When Samuel came late, he told Saul What have you done? (1
Samuel 13:11). Here we see that Saul does not respect the clerical order because he does
not fear God, nor is he a person after Gods heart. Saul is selfish and only after his own
personal desires. Samuel tells him, you have done foolishly (1 Samuel 13:13) and But
now your kingdom shall not continue (1 Samuel 13:14), and The Lord has sought for
Himself a man after His own heart (1 Samuel 13:14).
21. When Samuel questioned Saul about his mistake, Saul did not repent, but rather made
excuses. Saul did not condemn himself for his actions and this is why God did not allow
him to remain as king (1 Samuel 13:11).
22. Sauls impatience also comes out in Chapter 14, when he hastily attacked his enemy which
almost resulted in his sons (Jonathan) death. He was victorious in his battle and took
credit for the victory instead of giving credit to God. As a result of taking human credit
for the victory, Saul commanded that his people fast all day. This made them very hungry
and distressed (1 Samuel 14:24). The people became weak and out of exhaustion, they
raided the spoils of the Philistines and ate the cattle with blood (1 Samuel 14:33). So Saul
facilitated the sin of eating unclean animals by the people through his impatience.
23. In Chapter 15, Saul makes another great mistake and it is in this Chapter that God rejects
Saul. Saul was told by God to attack the Amalekites and wipe out everyone. Saul did not
fully obey Gods command. He did attack them, but he spared the king and the best of
the cattle. We read, But everything that was worthless, they destroyed (1 Samuel 15:9).
Saul did this because he was selfish. Saul destroyed everything that was worthless because
it would be of no value to him. He wanted to keep the cattle for himself to eat. Saul was
again disobedient to Gods command.
24. When Samuel rebuked Saul for not being obedient to God in his battle with the Amalekites,
Saul made up more excuses, and he shifted the blame on his own people (1 Samuel 15:21).
Saul also lied to Samuel about why he spared the best cattle He told Samuel that he was
going to offer sacrifices to the Lord (1 Samuel 15:15), which is not true. He was going to
275
keep the best cattle for himself. Notice in this verse, Saul says to Samuel the Lord, your
God, and not the Lord my God. Saul never acknowledges God as his God. Saul speaks
and acts in a completely worldly way.
25. Samuel tells Saul that he has been now rejected by God as king in 1 Samuel 15:23. He
tells him that since Saul has rejected the word of the Lord, likewise the Lord also rejected
Saul from being king.
26. When Saul hears that he has been rejected as king, he admits his sin. It is not a true
repentance, however. He only admits his sin because he does not want to lose his kingship.
He was afraid of losing power.
He was selfish and wanted only to satisfy his own desires. He was not after Gods
heart.
He was impatient.
He was disobedient.
He was dishonest.
He was a coward. He was very fearful of Goliath and could not face up to the task
(Chapter 17).
He was a man of many excuses. He never confessed or repented for his sins.
In further reading, we will see that he turns to witchcraft and demonic ways (Chapter
28).
28. Chapter 15 closes by saying And the Lord regretted that He made Saul king over Israel
(1 Samuel 15:35).
29. After Saul was rejected, David is anointed king by Samuel in Chapter 16. David was
anointed in Bethlehem, which means house of bread. As we will see, Davids life and
personality are in complete contrast to Sauls.
276
30. David was the youngest of Jesses children. He had seven brothers older than him. When
Samuel went to anoint the king, he did not know beforehand that it would be David. God
told him that he would tell Samuel the one (1 Samuel 16:3).
31. Samuel goes to Jesses house and starts looking at Jesses sons one by one. The Lord told
Samuel do not judge by outside appearance, and the Lord does not see what man sees,
for the Lord looks at the heart (1 Samuel 16:7).
32. Samuel took the horn of oil, and all of Jesses sons passed by Samuel. The Lord did not
speak to Samuel regarding any of these sons. Then Samuel asked Jesse if there was anyone
else, and they called David from the field where has was tending the sheep.
33. David was a boy. And when David was brought before Samuel, we read, Now he was
ruddy, with bright eyes and good looking. And the Lord said, Arise, anoint him; for this
is the one! (1 Samuel 16:12).
34. The anointed one, David, was chosen amongst all of his brothers who were bigger, stronger
and more impressive looking. St. Paul tells us in 1 Corinthians 1:27, God chose what is
weak in the world to shame the strong.
35. David was a very humble person. He was often criticized by his brothers (1 Samuel 17:28-
29), and he had a very low state in his family. His brothers often ridiculed him and picked
on him (1 Samuel 17:28-29). He was a herder of sheep. Yet he loved his brothers and his
family very much. He brought his brothers grain and cheeses when they were at battle.
David often went back to Bethlehem from Sauls mansion to tend the sheep back home
for his parents (1 Samuel 17:15-18). David was very tenderhearted.
36. When David was anointed king, the Spirit of God departed from Saul. Saul had distressing
spirits and often became very depressed (1 Samuel 16:14).
37. Although David was anointed king, Saul was still the king in charge, since David was
anointed as the king who would follow Saul.
38. When the distressing spirit troubled Saul, he called for David to comfort him by having
David play his harp in front of him. (1 Samuel 16:23).
277
40. Davids first assignment from God was to kill the 9.5 foot Philistine Goliath, who was from
Gath (1 Samuel 17:4).
41. Saul was very fearful of Goliath. He did not want to face him alone (1 Samuel 17:11).
42. When Saul heard that David is willing to fight Goliath, he was pleased and sent him to
fight Goliath.
43. In preparing for the fight with Goliath, we see Davids great faith. He tells Saul that the
Lord has delivered him before when he killed a lion and a bear (1 Samuel 17:35-36). In
verse 37, David gives all of the credit to God for delivering him from the lion and the bear.
David said the Lord who delivered me from from the paw of the lion and from the paw
of the bear, He will deliver me from the hand of the Philistine (1 Samuel 17:37).
44. Then David and Goliath face each other, and David tells Goliath that he is coming to face
him in the name of the Lord of hosts. That is, David is attributing his strength to God
and not to himself or any other human element.
45. He tells Goliath that today the Lord will deliver you in my hand (1 Samuel 17:46).
46. Goliath has armor on and is carrying a 20 pound spear and a sword. David is wearing no
armor and only has a slingshot with 5 stones. Again this shows us the faith and simplicity
of David.
47. Finally, David kills Goliath with one strike of his slingshot. Then he cuts off his head.
48. David keeps the armor of Goliath in his tent to remind him of Gods victory over Satan
and and to remind him about the work of God in his life.
49. David here shows us four great qualities in his personality when defeating Goliath:
50. The killing of Goliath completely changed Davids life. Success in life comes with a great
price. When a person experiences success in their life, many things change. They lose
many friends and make many enemies. A successful person has more enemies than friends.
278
51. Saul had promised that the person who kills Goliath would receive three things: wealth,
exemption from taxes, and his daughter (1 Samuel 17:25). When David killed Goliath,
Saul did not keep his promise to David regarding his daughter. Saul did not give Merab to
David. Instead he gave him Michal so that she could be a snare to him (1 Samuel 18:21).
Again, we see Sauls dishonesty and disloyalty. He does not honor his promises.
52. Davids personality did not change after his defeat of Goliath. He remained humble. David
tells Saul who am I to be the son-in-law of the king (1 Samuel 18:18).
53. We also read that David behaved wisely in all his ways, and the Lord was with him (1
Samuel 18:15).
54. On the other hand, we read that Now Saul was afraid of David, because the Lord was
with him, but had departed from Saul (1 Samuel 18:12).
55. Saul became Davids enemy after David killed Goliath because he was very jealous of
David. Saul heard people in the streets say Saul has killed his thousands and David has
killed his ten thousands (1 Samuel 18:7), and this made Saul furious.
56. As a result of Sauls jealousy, he tries to kill David several times, by throwing his spear
at him while David was playing his harp (1 Samuel 18:11). We read that Saul did this at
least three times (1 Samuel 19:10).
57. We read in 1 Samuel 18:29, And Saul was still more afraid of David, so Saul became
Davids enemy continually. When we do not walk with the Lord, we become enemies of
those who do walk with the Lord.
58. In Chapter 19, we read that Sauls hatred of David kept growing and he wanted to kill
him. The hatred became so deep that David had to flee Sauls house, and he remained
on the run until the end of first Samuel. It was in this Chapter that Michal, Davids wife,
let David down through a window, for Saul was going to kill David at night. So David
escaped that night and went and told Samuel everything that Saul tried to do to him (1
Samuel 19:18).
59. Jonathan was Sauls son. He became a great friend to David. Chapters 19 and 20 tell us
about the great friendship that Jonathan and David had. They had an inseparable bond.
In Chapter 20, we read about Jonathans covenant with David. Jonathan tells David,
Whatever you yourself desire, I will do it for you (1 Samuel 20:4).
279
60. Jonathan had recognized that David would be the next king and he honored him, whereas
his father Saul, did not. We read, Then Jonathan and David made a covenant, because
he loved him as his own soul. And Jonathan took off the robe that was on him and gave it
to David, with his armor, even to his sword and his bow and his belt (1 Samuel 18:3-4).
It is as if Jonathan is crowning David as king and telling him, Although I am the kings
son, I realize that I am not the next king, but you are David.
61. Jonathan became Davids protector and told David all that his father Saul had been
planning. It was Jonathan who helped David know the feelings of Saul toward David by
throwing three arrows and giving David a signal whether to come back to Sauls mansion
or to leave.
62. When king Saul noticed that Davids seat was empty and that he had not come to eat for
two straight days, he asked Jonathan about Davids whereabouts, and Jonathan told him
that David went to Bethlehem to his parents. Then Saul was angered and told Jonathan
that as long as David lives, Jonathans kingdom would not be established (1 Samuel 20:31).
Saul also said that David shall surely die (1 Samuel 20:31). Here Saul also tries to kill
Jonathan out of his frustration of Jonathans loyalty to David. (1 Samuel 20:33).
63. Then Jonathan gives David the signal with the arrows to flee and not come back to Sauls
house, for he was sure that Saul was going to kill him if he came back (1 Samuel 20:41-42).
64. So David flees to Nob and then to Gath. In Chapter 21, we read about David at Nob.
At Nob, David came to Ahimelech the priest. Here David commits a great sin. He lies to
Ahimelech and tells him that king Saul has ordered me on some business when Ahimelech
asks him why he is alone (1 Samuel 21:2).
65. David asks Ahimelech for food and Ahimelech gives David the holy bread to eat. In Nob,
there was a man named Doeg, who was chief of the herdsmen who belong to Saul. Doeg
saw Ahimelech help David and told Saul of this.
66. When Saul heard that Ahimelech had helped David and gave him bread, he killed Ahim-
elech and all of the priests of Nob. Doeg killed 85 priests that day (1 Samuel 22:18).
68. Golaiths sword was kept in Nob. David asked Ahimelech for a weapon to protect him.
David took the sword of Goliath from Nob as a weapon to protect him. We see here how
280
David is straying from the Lord. He lies to Ahimelech which led to his death and to the
death of 84 other priests, and now David is depending on weaponry to protect him.
69. From Nob, David travels to Gath, Goliaths home town. The men of Gath recognized
David and told king Achish of this. And David became scared and he changed his
behavior before them. David started to act insane, by scratching on the doors and
having saliva run down his beard (1 Samuel 22:13-14). David did this so that they would
think he is insane and let him go. When king Achish saw this, he told them why have
you brought someone to me who is insane? Then they let David go. We see here how
David humiliated himself and insulted God by acting insane. When we are far from God,
we humiliate ourselves and insult and humiliate God in the process. We become terrible
representatives of God. When we are away from God, no sin or ridicule is impossible for
us.
70. After leaving Gath, David escapes into the wilderness to the cave of Adullam in Chapter
22. David has 400 men who were with him. These were people who were in distress, in
debt, and discontented (1 Samuel 22:2).
71. When Saul had heard that David was in En Gedi, Saul went after David. Saul had 3000
men, and when Saul had to attend to his needs (go to the bathroom), he went into the
cave where David was hiding (1 Samuel 24:3). The men of David encouraged David to kill
Saul, but David would not. David would not stretch out his hand against the anointed of
the Lord. Moreover David restrains his men from killing Saul. David here cuts the corner
of Sauls robe, and even this act troubled David (1 Samuel 24:4-5).
72. David cuts the corner of Sauls robe in hopes of restoring his relationship with Saul. David
had always longed to restore his relationship with Saul for he loved him.
73. After Saul was done attending to his needs, he left the cave, and David came out and
called to him, My lord, the king! (1 Samuel 24:8). Then David stooped with his face to
the earth and bowed down.
74. Here David trys to reason with Saul to restore his relationship with him:
He tells Saul that all the gossip Saul hears about David wanting to harm him is not
true.
David shows Saul the corner of the robe he cut to prove his point.
281
David makes a powerful Godly appeal to Saul in 1 Samuel 24:11-15. David pleads
his case and tells Saul that he is not after him, he has not sinned against Saul, and
tells him that Let the Lord be judge between you and me and let the Lord avenge
me on you, but my hand shall not be against you (1 Samuel 24:12).
David tells Saul to let the Lord be the judge of his (Davids) actions.
Davids humility comes out again as he tells Saul, Are you after a dead dog, a flea
(1 Samuel 24:14).
75. Saul sees Davids righteousness and Saul weeps. When evil confronts righteousness, evil
cannot prevail, and Sauls evil here cannot prevail as he is moved with Davids righteous-
ness. He tells David You are more righteous than I (1 Samuel 24:17).
76. However, Sauls repentance is not a true one. He does acknowledge his own evil and Davids
righteousness, and he does acknowledge that David will be the next king, but he does it
out of selfish ambition as he tells David to promise him not to cut off his descendants
and not destroy my name (1 Samuel 24:21). So Sauls repentance is not a true one. Even
after this incident, Saul still pursues Davids life and wants to kill him.
77. We learn four great things about restoring relationships from David in the cave of Adullam.
The four Rs of restoring relationships are:
Restrain yourself
Refuse revenge
Risk reconciliation
78. In Chapter 25 we read about David and Abigail. Abigail was the wife of Nabal. The name
Nabal literally means fool.
79. Nabal was a very rich farmer who was harsh and evil in his doings (1 Samuel 25:3).
Abigail was a woman of of good understanding and beautiful appearance (1 Samuel
25:3).
80. David and his men had been protecting Nabal from the Philistines. David had asked his
men to go to Nabal and ask him Nabal some food, and Nabal refused.
282
81. When David heard that Nabal would not give them anything, David became furious and
wanted to kill all of Nabals household.
82. When Abigail was told by one of the young men in the household about what happened,
she rode on a donkey, met David, and gave him a substantial amount of food (1 Samuel
25:18).
83. David was moved by her wise actions and spared the house of Nabal. Abigail prevented a
great sin (by David) from happening by her wise actions.
84. When Abigail told Nabal what she had done, he fell sick and died ten days later.
86. In Chapter 26, David spares Sauls life a second time. Saul was still coming after David
in the wilderness. When Saul was sleeping, David took a spear and jug of water sitting
by Sauls head while he was sleeping. The next morning David tells Saul that he has the
spear and jug of water and shows his servant the spear.
87. Davids servant, Abishai, wanted to kill Saul but David would not let him, saying who
can stretch out his hand against the Lords anointed? (1 Samuel 26:9). We see again
Davids great fear and respect for the Lord.
88. Again, David makes an appeal for his innocence and righteousness and tries to restore the
relationship with Saul in a most humble way, calling himself a flea, and telling Saul that
he intends no harm against him (1 Samuel 26:17-25).
89. Saul again gives another false repentance. Saul keeps pursuing David and tries to kill him.
90. Sauls long pursuit of David takes its toll on David. In Chapter 27, David falls into a great
depression and is ready to give up. In this Chapter, David defects to Gath out of loss of
hope in his struggles with Saul. David here loses his identity due to his discouragement.
91. David wanted to hide with the Philistines to escape from Saul. He was sick of being on
the run. When Saul heard that David fled to Gath, he did not pursue him any more (1
Samuel 27:4).
92. David got deeper into trouble by his defection. He had to raid nomadic tribes to provide
food for his 600 men and their families, and he would lie to king Achish about whom he
283
raided. David told king Achish of Gath that he was raiding Israel. The defection to Gath
was another sin and a low point in Davids life.
93. In Chapter 28, we read about Samuels death and Saul consulting a medium (fortune
teller) after the Lord had not answered him about the Philistines. Saul was afraid of the
Philistines and thus consulted a medium to tell him what to do.
94. In Chapter 29, the Philistines attack Israel. David was going to fight for the side of the
Philistines, but the Philistines distrusted David and sent him back.
95. In Chapter 30, the Amalekites invaded Ziklag and take Davids wives, sons, and daughters
captive. David weeps and asks the Lord for help. David and his men recovered everything
they lost and everyone who was taken captive. No one was killed.
96. In Chapter 31, the battle between the Philistines and Israel became fierce. Saul is badly
hurt. After seeing that he was badly injured, he kills himself. Jonathan is killed in battle
and two other sons of Saul are also killed in this battle.
284
St. Pauls Epistle to Philemon
St. Pauls epistle to Philemon is a wonderful story about the virtues and the characteristics
of the Christian life. Of the 14 epistles of St. Paul, this is the only one that was written
personally to one person.
Background
Philemon has owned a slave named Onesimus. Onesimus had stolen something from Phile-
mon and ran away. St. Paul had converted Philemon to Christianity. St. Paul and Philemon
were friends, and Philemon respected St. Paul a lot. Apparently Onesimus had run into St.
Paul at Rome, while St. Paul was in prison, and St. Paul had converted him to Christianity.
After his conversion, Onesimus became very valuable to St. Paul in his ministry. St. Paul is
writing Philemon asking him to take Onesimus back, so that they can reconcile. Onesimus is a
Greek word which means profitable.
2. St. Paul is asking Philemon for a favor. St. Paul had asked few favors of anyone in the
Bible.
3. He addresses the epistle as: to Philemon our beloved friend. St. Paul usually addresses
himself as an Apostle of the Lord. But since he is writing as a friend to a friend, he
drops the official title.
4. St. Paul was in prison in Rome at the time of writing this letter. Four of St. Pauls
Epistles were written while he was in prison. These are the Epistles to Philemon, the
Ephesians, the Colossians, and the Philippians.
1. Verses 1-3 - We read in the first verse that St. Paul is a prisoner of Jesus Christ. St.
Paul was in prison in Rome at the time he wrote this letter. Imagine the kind of caring
person St. Paul was to write to a friend about a runaway slave while he was in prison.
Imagine being in prison and thinking about other peoples problems, and not our own.
That would be great if we could lose ourselves in service to others this way.
285
Note how St. Paul is so personal in his address. He always mentions people by name and
calls them brothers. He calls Philemon our beloved friend and fellow laborer. This is
a great compliment. St. Paul also calls Timothy a brother. These are the kinds of things
that we say to people when we truly love them.
In this epistle, Onesimus was a runaway slave who had taken a wrong turn in life and St.
Paul was helping him find his way back. We see that people can take many wrong turns
in life, and they can be put back on the right track.
2. Verses 4-7: Christian diplomacy vs. Worldly diplomacy - St. Paul acknowledges
how loving and generous Philemon is. He acknowledges the Christianity of Philemon. In
verse 6 he says, that the sharing of your faith may become effective by the acknowledgment
of every good thing which is in you in Christ Jesus. This means that we learn about Christ
by giving to others. In Acts 20:35 we read, It is more blessed to give than to receive. This
means that to be open-hearted and generous-hearted is the surest way to learn more and
more of the wealth of Christ. The man who knows Christ the most is not the intellectual
scholar and not the saint who spends his whole day in prayer, but the man who moves in
loving generosity towards his fellow men.
3. Verses 8-10 - St. Paul could of demanded that Philemon take Onesimus back, but he
didnt. Instead, he made a humble request. St. Paul respected Philemon. We teach Christ
by imitating Him. In verse 10, we learn of how St. Paul met Onesimus, I have begotten
him while in my chains.
4. Verse 11 - Note that St. Paul does not make any excuses for Onesimus. He says that
he was once unprofitable, but now he is profitable, which means that he has converted to
Christianity and repented. Christianity is not a religion of excuses or alibis. It is a religion
which admits and confronts our imperfections head on. Christianity has the power of
making bad men good. St. Paul says that, in Christ, the useless person is now useful.
Christianity has the power of putting people on the right track.
5. Verse 12 - St. Paul tells Philemon that it is his hearts desire that Philemon should
receive him. Christianity is not out to help a man escape his past and run away from it.
It is out to enable the man to face his past and rise above it. Christianity is never an
escape. It is always a conquest.
286
6. Verse 13 - Onesimus must have developed a great relationship with St. Paul. St. Paul
did not want to let him go. St. Paul valued his service and truly loved him.
7. Verse 14 - Note the respect St. Paul has for Philemon. He does want want to send
Onesimus back without his consent. Love and forgiveness can never be achieved by force.
It can never be obtained through orders or threats. It can only come from the heart, and
this is what St. Paul is trying to do. He is trying to open Philemons heart by telling him
what is in his own heart.
8. Verses 15-17 - Onesimus comes back a different man. He went away as a thief and comes
back as a brother in Christ. St. Paul tells Philemon that he should receive him as you
would me (verse 17). Also, as brothers in Christ, there is no master and slave (verse 16).
The Christian always forgives the one who has made a mistake. This is what St. Paul is
trying to convey to Philemon. Often in life, we think that God can forgive others but we
cant.
9. Verse 18 - Again, we see how Christ works in St. Paul. Just as Christ shouldered the
sins of men, St. Paul is willing to shoulder the consequences of Onesimus. St. Paul writes
that he will be responsible for this and pay Philemon in full. He wants him to just accept
Onesimus back as a brother in Christ. It also tells us that St. Paul must have money. He
could of just lived an easy life. He didnt have to be a missionary. It tells us what St.
Paul gave up for Christ.
10. Verse 19 - Here we see St. Pauls sense of humor. St. Paul is telling Philemon here that
you got a lot out of me, let me get something out of you now for the sake of Onesimus.
It was St. Paul who had converted Philemon to Christianity, and St. Paul did a lot for
Philemon. Now Philemon owes him one.
11. Verse 21 - St. Paul always expected the best from others. He showed great confidence in
Philemon. He never doubted that Philemon would come through. This is a good rule to
follow. If we make it clear that we expect a lot from others, we will probably get it. St.
Paul was a very optimistic person.
12. Verse 22 - St. Pauls optimism comes through again. Even in prison he is optimistic that
he will be freed soon. One can imagine the kind of stress that St. Paul was under while
writing this letter in prison. Yet, he was not thinking of himself or his self-interests. His
287
mind was totally focussed on others and the work of Christ. This is similar to Christs
words on the cross. Father, forgive them for they know not what they do (Luke 23:34).
Also, when Jesus told John to take care of the Virgin Mary while He was on the cross, as
He said, Behold your mother (John 19:27). Part of Christian spiritual growth is to lose
ones self in service to others, so that we gain our true fulfilled self in Christ.
Verses 23-25 - St. Paul gives his final greeting. Note that he mentions Mark, which
indicates that Mark has now joined him on his journeys. Earlier, St. Paul did not want to
travel with Mark due to his youth and inexperience, and preferred to travel with Barnabas
and Silas (Acts 15:36-41). In these verses (23-25), he tells us that the two have reconciled.
In summary, the Christian characteristics that come out in this letter are:
2. Generosity and Love - St. Pauls plea for Philemons generosity and love towards his
fellow man.
5. Unselfishness - St. Paul looking out for the interests of others and not his own, while he
was in prison.
6. Power - The power of Christianity to put a person on the right track after being on the
wrong track.
8. Respect - St. Pauls respect of Philemon and Onesimus. St. Paul never ordered Philemon
to take Onesimus back.
9. Forgiveness - The Christian forgives one who has made a mistake. This is what St. Paul
is conveying to Philemon.
288
10. Responsibility - St. Paul wants Onesimus to be responsible for his actions, and moreover
he is willing to shoulder the consequences of Onesimuss sins. He is willing to pay Philemon
in full for what Onesimus has taken.
11. Expecting the Best from Others - Uplifting others, and confidence in our fellow man
to do good. St. Paul expressed great confidence in Philemon for taking Onesimus back.
12. Christian Diplomacy - We all need a Christian sense of humor to make tense moments
light. Christian humor sometimes serves as an ice breaker in tense situations.
13. Fellowship - Philemon, Onesimus, and St. Paul were all great friends. St. Paul tells
Philemon to prepare room for him (verse 22). He all asks Philemon to receive Onesimus
as a brother (verse 16).
289
The Missionary Journeys and Epistles of the Apostle Paul
During the Fast of the Apostles, our readings should partly focus on the book of Acts in
the Bible, and in particular the works and lives of Saints Peter and Paul. We describe here the
missions and epistles of the Apostle Paul.
An understanding of the chronological order of events in St. Pauls ministry can be very
valuable as a tool for the study of the book of Acts and St. Pauls epistles. The book of Acts
and the epistles of St. Paul sometimes tell us the length of time between one event and another.
However, determining the year in which an event took place can require some research. It is
most helpful to know the year of the beginning or end of the reigns of political rulers that are
mentioned in the text. Some of the more helpful dates in studying the events in St. Pauls
ministry are the death of King Aretas of Syria in 40 AD (AD means Anno Domini, the year
of the birth of Christ), the beginning of the reign of Claudius Caesar as Emperor of Rome in
41 AD, the death of Herod Agrippa I in 44 AD, the succession of Felixs reign as Procurator in
Judea by Porcius Festus in 60 AD.
Here is a summary of the years of St. Pauls journeys and his epistles. The detailed
chronology follows.
Event Time Period
At Damascus 37-40 AD
First Journey 45-47 AD
Second Journey 51-53 AD
Third Journey 54-58 AD
Imprisonment in Judea 58-60 AD
Voyage to Rome 60-61 AD
Imprisonment in Rome 61-63 AD
Post-Imprisonment Journeys 63-67 AD
First Thessalonians 52 AD
Second Thessalonians 52 AD
First Corinthians 57 AD
Second Corinthians 57 AD
Galatians 55-57 AD
Romans 57-58 AD
Ephesians 62 AD
Philippians 62 AD
Colossians 62 AD
Philemon 63 AD
Hebrews 64-65 AD
Titus 64-65 AD
First Timothy 64-65 AD
Second Timothy 66-67 AD
290
The Chronology
The crucifixion, resurrection, and ascension of Jesus Christ occurred in the spring of 32
AD. The the day of Pentecost occured (Acts 2), then the stoning of Stephen, which Saul (St.
Paul) participated in before his conversion (Acts 7:59). In about 37 AD, Jesus Christ speaks to
Saul (St. Paul) on the road to Damascus. St. Paul is led blind to Damascus (Acts 9:8). After
the visit by Ananias, St. Paul then goes to Arabia and returns to Damascus where he spends
3 years (Galatians 1:17-18 and Acts 9:22-23). In 37 AD King Aretas took control of Damascus
when Emperor Tiberius Caesar died. St. Paul departed from Damascus at night, being let down
from the city wall in a basket (Acts 9:25 and 2 Corinthians 11:32). This could not have been
after 40 AD, the year that King Aretas died.
St. Paul met with Barnabus, Peter, and James in Jerusalem (Acts 9:26 and Galatians
1:18-19). St. Paul then goes to Caesarea and Tarsus (Acts 9:30) and St. Peter goes to the
house of Cornelius (Acts 10). Barnabus gets St. Paul and they stay in Antioch (Syria) for one
year (Acts 11:26). This must be between 41 AD (beginning of Claudius Caesars reign) and 44
AD (Acts 11:28). The Disciples are called Christians for the first time at Antioch (Acts 11:26).
James, brother of John, is killed by Herod Agrippa I (Acts 12:2). Herod Agrippa I dies in 44
AD (Acts 12:23).
The first journey of St. Paul begins when St. Paul, Barnabus, and St. Mark set out from
Antioch (Acts 13:4). This journey started after 44 AD and ended a long time (Acts 14:28)
before 50 AD. They left Antioch for Seleucia and sailed to Cyprus, large island 100 miles off
Syrian coast. There they went to Salamis and Paphos where St. Paul met Bar-Jesus the sorcerer
(Acts 13:4-6). Then they sailed to Perga in Pamphylia, which is now southern Turkey. From
here, St. Mark returns to Jerusalem. At Antioch in Pisidia (not to be confused with the one in
Syria), St. Paul and Barnabas turn to the Gentiles (Acts 13:46). Then it was on to Iconium,
where they abode a long time (Acts 14:3), Lystra, where St. Paul is stoned, but lives (Acts
14:19), and Derbe. Then they retraced their steps back through Lystra, Iconium, and Antioch
(in Pisidia) (Acts 14:21). St. Paul and Barnabas went throughout Pisidia, Pamphylia, then to
Perga, Attalia, and sailed back to Antioch in Syria (Acts 14:24-26) The first journey ends in
Antioch, Syria, where St. Paul and Barnabus stay there a long time (Acts 14:28).
The dates for the events from 50-60 AD are found by counting backwards from the succession
of Felixs reign as Procurator in Judea by Porcius Festus in 60 AD. Should one want to check
291
these dates for accuracy, one should start at 60 AD and work backwards. In about 50 AD, St.
Paul and Barnabus go to the council in Jerusalem 14 years after St. Pauls conversion (Galatians
2:1-9 and Acts 15:2). Judas and Silas return to Antioch (Syria) with Barnabus and St. Paul
where they continued some days (Acts 15:35-36), possibly in the winter of 50-51 AD.
The second journey begins, possibly in the spring of 51 AD. St. Paul takes Silas through
Syria and Cilicia (now southeastern Turkey). They came to Derbe and Lystra, where they
find Timothy, who goes with St. Paul and Silas throughout Phrygia and Galatia. But they
are forbidden by the Spirit to go into Asia or Bithynia. They passed through Mysia to Troas,
the island of Samothracia, and then to Neapolis in Macedonia (now northern Greece). At
Philippi, God opens the heart of Lydia and the Philippian jailer (Acts 16:14-34). Passing
through Amphipolis and Appolonia, they came to Thessalonica, where St. Paul taught for 3
weeks. After teaching some in Berea, St. Paul departed ahead of Silas and Timothy, southward
into Achaia (now southern Greece), to Athens, possibly for the winter of 51-52 AD (Acts 17:14-
15). St. Paul then makes his first visit to Corinth where he stays a year and a half (Acts 18:5).
This may have been from the spring of 52 AD to the fall of 53 AD. Here, St. Paul met Aquila
and Priscilla, who had just come from Rome, from which Claudius Caesar had banished all
Jews. Silas and Timothy rejoin St. Paul. First Thessalonians was written from here in about
52 AD (1 Thessalonians 3:1-2, 6). We know that it was written from Corinth, and not from
Athens, because Silas and Timothy had already rejoined St. Paul (1 Thessalonians 1:1 and Acts
18:5). Second Thessalonians was also written from Corinth. We know that it was soon after the
first letter, because like the first letter, Silas was with St. Paul when second Thessalonians was
written. After St. Paul leaves Corinth, there is no further mention of Silas traveling with St.
Paul. St. Paul left by boat with Aquila and Priscilla to Cenchrea and then across the Aegean
Sea to Ephesus. Aquila and Priscilla stay there where they would later meet Apollos (Acts 18:19
and 26). St. Paul sails on to Caesarea and then goes up to Antioch in Syria, where the second
journey ends. St. Paul stayed a while (Acts 18:23). This may have been the winter of 53-54
AD.
The third journey begins with Galatia (central region of Turkey) possibly in the spring of
54 AD and then Phrygia (Acts 18:23). Then St. Paul arrives at Ephesus where he stayed for 3
years (Acts 20:31) probably from the fall of 54 AD to the fall of 57 AD. St. Paul meets disciples
of John the Baptist. He preached in the synagogue for 3 months (Acts 19:8). He disputed daily
in the school of Tyrannus for 2 years (Acts 19:9-10), so that all that dwelt in Asia heard the
292
word. St. Paul sent Timothy and Erastus ahead into Macedonia, but St. Paul stayed in Asia
for a season (Acts 19:22). St. Paul wrote 1 Corinthians near the end of this stay in Ephesus (1
Corinthians 16:8,19), probably in 57 AD. It was not written with Timothy, who St. Paul had
sent ahead into Macedonia (Acts 19:22). St. Paul foresaw his route of travel for the next four
or so years in Acts 19:21-22. This agrees with his plans in 1 Corinthians 16:1, 3, 5, 8-10. Note
how the great door opened to St. Paul and many adversaries in verse 9 compares with
the events in the Ephesian amphitheater in Acts 19:23-41. In 1 Corinthians 3:6 St. Paul says
Apollos watered. This refers to Apollos teaching in Corinth when St. Paul was at Ephesus,
(Acts 19:1).
St. Paul had rejoined Timothy when Second Corinthians was written (2 Corinthians 1:1).
St. Paul had come to Troas and continued to Macedonia (2 Corinthians 2:12-13 and 7:5),
which seems to correspond to Acts 20:1. St. Paul also talks of a third visit to Corinth in 2
Corinthians 13:1 and 12:14. So Second Corinthians was most likely written in the fall of 57 AD
from somewhere in Macedonia (northern Greece), possibly Philippi. In 2 Corinthians 12:1-4, St.
Paul says 14 years ago I ascended into heaven. From 57, going back 14 years to 43 AD, this puts
us back before St. Pauls first journey, probably when he was at Antioch in Syria. After going
through Macedonia (northern Greece), St. Paul came to Achaia (southern Greece) where he
stayed 3 months (Acts 20:2-3), making third visit to Corinth. This is where he spent the winter
of 57-58 AD (1 Corinthians 16:5-8). Romans was written at this time (Romans 15:23-26 and 1
Corinthians 16:1-3). Going back to Macedonia (Acts 20:1), they were at Philippi (northeastern
Greece) in the spring of 58 AD in the days of unleavened bread (Acts 20:6).
Then they sailed to Troas, where a young man fell out of a window, and St. Paul raises
him from the dead (Acts 20:7-12). Then St. Paul went to Assos, Mitylene, Chios, Samos,
Trogylium, and Miletus (now in southwestern Turkey). From here, St. Paul addresses Ephesian
elders whom he had called to meet him (Acts 20:17-38) in the spring of 58 AD (Acts 20:16).
Sailing to Coos, Rhodes, Patara, and passing on the south side of Cyprus, they came to Tyre
(which is now in Lebanon) where they stayed one week. Then they went south to Ptolemais
and to Caesarea where they stayed many days (Acts 21:10). Then St. Paul goes to Jerusalem,
where the third journey ends.
Here let us pause to look at the question: When was Galatians written? Galatians was
written when St. Paul was not in prison and when neither Silas or Timothy were with him
(Galatians 1:1). It was written after the council in Jerusalem (Acts 15:1-32 and Galatians 2:1-
293
10) and after St. Pauls second visit to the region on his second journey in about 51 AD (Acts
16:1-6). Since they were so soon removed from grace (Galatians 1:6), it must have been before
the prison years of 58-63 AD. So it could have been written when St. Paul was alone in Athens
in the winter of 51-52 AD, which would make it St. Pauls first letter. But this is unlikely,
since St. Paul was only in Athens a short time (Acts 17:15). Or it could have been written
from Antioch between St. Pauls second and third journeys in the winter of 53-54 AD (Acts
18:22-23). But this is also unlikely because St. Paul would have probably mentioned that he
would be coming to them soon on his third journey. It could have been written from Corinth in
the winter of 57-58 where St. Paul wrote Romans. But most likely, it was written from Ephesus
during St. Pauls 3 years there from 54-57. St. Paul had recently passed through the region of
Galatia ... strengthening all the disciples ... (Acts 18:23) and spent far more time in Ephesus
where he could have gotten the unfavorable report about the churches in Galatia (Galatians 1:6)
which was relatively nearby.
The third journey ends at Jerusalem in 58 AD. St. Paul is beaten by the Jews, preaches
to them (Acts 22:1-21), and is brought before the Sanhedrin. Jesus Christ tells St. Paul that
he will go to bear him witness in Rome. Many Jews vow to kill St. Paul (Acts 23:12). In 58
AD, St. Paul is taken to Governor Felix (reigned 53-60) at Caesarea, many years (Acts 24:10)
after 53 AD and 2 years before the end of Felixs reign. St. Paul then spends 2 years in prison
in Caesarea in Judea. In 60 AD, Governor Portius Festuss reign begins. St. Paul appeals to
Caesar (Acts 25:11). Some days pass, then Herod Agrippa II hears St. Paul.
The voyage to Rome begins - St. Paul, still a prisoner, sails to Sidon with Luke and
Aristarchus (Acts 27:1-2) on the way to Italy. They sailed to Myra (now southern Turkey) and
on to Lasea, a large island of Crete, 50 miles southeast of Greece, where much time was spent
(Acts 27:7-13). In the fall of 60 AD, they reached Melita, a small island south of Sicily. St. Paul
was bitten by a poisonous snake but lived. St. Paul healed the father of Publius and others. St.
Paul (still captive) spends the winter of 60-61 AD (Acts 28:11) on the island with his captors.
In the spring, they sailed on to Syracuse (on the island of Sicily), then to Rhegium (on the
southern tip of Italy), then to Puteoli (on the western coast of Italy).
The voyage to Rome ends - St. Paul spends 2 years in his own hired house (Acts
28:30) as a prisoner in Rome from 61-63 AD. During this time he wrote Ephesians, Philippians,
Colossians, and Philemon. In about 62 AD, St. Paul wrote Ephesians before Timothy came
to him (Ephesians 1:1) while in prison in Rome (Ephesians 3:1, 4:1, and 6:20). Also in about
294
62 AD, St. Paul wrote Philippians from prison (Philippians 1:7) in Rome (4:23) with Timothy
(1:1). St. Paul wrote Colossians from prison (Colossians 4:18) in Rome in about 62 AD with
Timothy (1:1) and fellow prisoner, Aristarchus (4:10). St. Paul, with Timothy, wrote Philemon
from prison in 63 AD (Philemon 1:1).
St. Paul after the imprisonment in Rome - We know that St. Paul had further
journeys after he was released from the prison in Rome in 63 AD. After his release, he wrote the
epistles of Hebrews, Titus, First Timothy, and Second Timothy, not necessarily in that order,
although Second Timothy was apparently his last. This took place after the events recorded
in the book of Acts, so all of our information comes from various statements that St. Paul
makes in his letters. In them are clues that St. Paul may have traveled to some or all of
the following places: Colosse, Spain, Corinth, Miletus, Troas, Crete, Nicopolis, Philippi, Italy,
Judea, Ephesus, and Macedonia. This allows for the possibilities that St. Paul traveled to more
about as many diverse places as in all of his previous journeys combined. There are probably
several possible ways that one could reconstruct the sequence of these travels which would not
disagree with scripture. Since we do not know which one would be correct, we will just list what
we know about the journeys. Thus, the references below are not intended to be chronological,
although they all occurred after St. Pauls release from prison in 63 AD.
In Philemon 22, St. Paul foresaw his release and tells those in Colosse to prepare him
lodging. We know that Philemon was written to the Colossians because of Archippus (Colossians
4:17 and Philemon 2), Onesimus (Colossians 4:9 and Philemon 9-10), and others (Colossians
4:10-14 and Philemon 23-25). Also, while in prison in Rome St. Paul wrote to those in Philippi
that he may be coming to visit them (Philippians 1:26). In Romans 1:10, 15:24 and 28, and
16:1, 3, and 5 St. Paul speaks of aspirations of eventually going to Spain. Did he ever do this in
his final years? The Bible does not say whether he did or not. We do however have the account
of the century author, St. Clement of Rome, regarding St. Paul: After preaching both in the
east and west, he gained the illustrious reputation due to his faith, having taught righteousness
to the whole world, and come to the extreme limit of the west, and suffered martyrdom under
the prefects (The First Epistle of Clement to the Corinthians, Chapter 5). The extreme limit
of the west may be Spain. We do not know for sure.
At some time after being released from the prison in Rome, St. Paul went to Corinth and
Miletus (2 Timothy 4:20). He also went to Troas (2 Timothy 4:13), Crete (Titus 1:5), and
Nicopolis for the winter (Titus 3:12). St. Paul leaving Titus in Crete must have been during
295
a period of liberty after St. Pauls imprisonment in Rome ended in 63 AD. St. Paul did not
go there during the first 3 journeys. There is no mention of Titus or of any preaching on Crete
in Acts 27:7-13, on the voyage to Rome. St. Paul says he will send Artemas or Tychicus to
Titus. He tells Titus to come to Nicopolis where St. Paul has determined to winter (Titus
3:12). The letter to Titus was probably written around 64-65 AD. There are three cities called
Nicopolis: (1) in Achaia (southern Greece), most likely the one to which St. Paul was referring,
(2) 15 miles west of Jerusalem, and (3) in the area that is now Romania. The book of Hebrews
was apparently written from Italy (Hebrews 13:24). Timothy had been released from prison
(Hebrews 13:23) and was coming to St. Paul. St. Paul was apparently at liberty as well, since
they planned to then go to visit the Hebrews. This could have been in Judea, as St. Paul says,
... for you had compassion of me in my bonds ... (Hebrews 10:34). This must have been in
reference to St. Pauls imprisonment in Caesarea from 58-60 AD. Hebrews was probably written
around 64-65 AD.
St. Paul had told Timothy to stay and teach in Ephesus when St. Paul went to Macedonia
(1 Timothy 1:3). During the third journey, St. Paul had done the opposite, staying in Ephesus
himself, and sending Timothy with Erastus to Macedonia (Acts 19:22). So First Timothy was
written around 64-65 AD during a period of liberty after St. Pauls Roman imprisonment of
61-63 AD. St. Paul said he was hoping to come to Timothy in Ephesus shortly, but may have to
tarry long (1 Timothy 3:14-15). Timothy was in Ephesus where he received both First Timothy
and Second Timothy (1 Timothy 1:3, 2 Timothy 1:16-18, 4:14, 4:19, Acts 19:33, and 1 Timothy
1:20). Second Timothy may have been written from prison (2 Timothy 1:8) with St. Paul ready
to die (2 Timothy 4:6-8), possibly about 66 AD. Yet he asks Timothy to come to him before
winter (2 Timothy 4:9 and 21). St. Paul was probably martyred sometime around 67 AD.
296
St. Pauls Epistle to the Romans: An Introduction
3. The main theme of the Epistle is Gods righteousness revealed in Christ for our salvation.
St. Paul talks about the basis of Gods judgment in Romans 2:2-16.
Even as believing Christians, we must not take Gods final judgment for granted.
Romans 2:2-16 describes Gods righteous judgment, showing how we can prepare ourselves
for it. Gods judgment will be:
1. According to truth (Romans 2:2-3): Nothing is hidden from God. He sees everything
and knows the truth about each of us. One of mankinds great self-deceptions is to say,
Who sees us (Isaiah 29:15) and think there is no judgment.
297
2. According to impenitent hearts (Romans 2:4-5): An unrepentant or hard heart
despises Gods goodness, treasuring up the wrath of God at the judgment. A repentant
heart, on the other hand is grateful for Gods patience and abides in Christ, practicing
a lifetime of repentance, which produces confidence before Him at the judgment (1 John
2:28).
3. According to our deeds (Romans 2:6-15): The doing good referred to in 2:7 is not
trying to gain merit with God. Rather, it is the unity of intentions with actions, faith with
works. Even unbelievers are rewarded for good works, apart from spiritual understanding
(Romans 2:14-15). But we note the following:
(a) Doing good means seeking Gods glory, not ones own glory; Gods honor, not ones
own honor; the eternal reward of immortality, not reward here and now. Doing good
is seeking first the Kingdom of God (Matthew 6:33).
(b) Good intentions alone, or faith without works, will not save (Romans 2:13). Simply
to hear and not do is religion without reality. Those with true faith, the doers of
the truth, practice virtue from pure and repentant hearts (James 1:21-27).
(c) By nature (Romans 2:14) people are inspired by and cooperate with Gods grace.
Therefore, good deeds are natural to us, whereas evil deeds are contrary to nature.
Because we all fail, we need Gods mercy (Romans 3:9-19). The presence of Gods law
in our conscience (Romans 2:15) condemns anything we do which is contrary to true
human nature. Therefore, even Gentiles - people not under the Law of Moses, those
who do not know Christ - have an internal law from God, the natural law written
in their hearts, according to which God will judge them. Melchizedek, Job, and the
Ninevites are Old Testament examples of non-Jews who were judged to be righteous.
Jews then, have two laws from God - The Law of Moses and conscience - and are
accountable to Him for both (Romans 2:12).
(d) Those who are condemned choose to reject God. There is no automatic, fated con-
demnation: Gods just judgment of us is based on our exercise of free will. Although
sin impairs our powers, it does not destroy Gods image in us or our free will.
4. By Jesus Christ (Romans 2:16): In the day of judgment we are not judged directly by
God the Father, whom we cannot see, but by the incarnate Son whom we do see, Christ
Jesus (Acts 17:31, John 3:16-21, 35, 36). Christ will judge on the basis of the light He
298
Himself has given to each of us (John 1:9) and our response to His light (John 3:16-21).
The secrets of men are the thoughts and intents of the heart (Hebrews 4:12).
The Law
One key to understanding Romans is to properly distinguish between the several ways St.
Paul uses the word law in his epistle.
1. The Mosaic Law (Romans 2:12-13) was written by God on tablets of stone (2 Corinthi-
ans 3:3, 7) and given to the Jews through Moses (The 10 Commandments). This Law
reveals Gods righteousness to prepare men for the Messiah and for Gods grace. When
St. Paul speaks of the law he is most often referring to the Mosaic law.
The law is good but it cannot be kept. It is revelation from God, but it is not an end in
itself. The purpose of the Mosaic Law is to
Though it is not opposed to grace, the Law cannot save us or make us righteous.
2. The natural law (Romans 2:14, 15) has been written by God in the heart of every
human who has ever lived. This is the voice of conscience. It is a reliable guide to Gods
righteousness for those who are pure in heart; but it can be dulled or obscured completely
by habitual sin.
3. The law of works (Romans 3:27) is our attempt to establish righteousness before God
on the basis of keeping the natural law and/or the Mosaic Law. This law reveals human
weakness and sin.
4. The law of faith (Romans 3:27) is the synergy, the cooperation, of our faithfulness
with Gods. It alone is the means by which we attain the righteousness of God. God has
been revealing His righteousness by this law little by little since the Creation, but now has
299
revealed it fully in Christ. As both the natural and Mosaic Law bear witness to the law
of faith, so those who become righteous by grace through faith fulfill in Christ both the
natural and the Mosaic Law.
5. The law of sin (Romans 7:25, 8:2) is the power of the sinful passions in our mortal
humanity. Passions - desires for such things as food, sex, praise, possessions - are natu-
ral; their sinful over-indulgence is not. Carnal (physical) passions are especially strong.
They aid the unnatural domination of the body over the soul. Sometimes carnal passions
overpower the will. The law of sin coupled with the Mosaic Law breeds intense warfare
between sin and righteousness. Only Gods grace can bring victory for righteousness.
6. The law of the Spirit (Romans 8:20) is also called the law of Christ (Galatians
6:2) and the law of liberty (James 1:25, 2:12). It is the power and life of the Holy Spirit
active in those who by faith in Christ live out their baptism and chrismation to the fullest
possible degree. This makes the righteousness of God gained by faith real in ones life.
Coupled with the law of faith, the law of the Spirit defeats the law of sin and fulfills the
natural and Mosaic law. It orients ones innermost being toward God and restores the
power of the spirit over the flesh, the soul over the body.
300
Justification by Faith
For most of Church history, salvation was seen as comprehending all of life: Christians
believed in Christ, were baptized, and were nurtured in their salvation in the Church. Key
doctrines of the faith centered around the Holy Trinity, the Incarnation of the Son of God, and
the atonement.
In Western Europe during the sixteenth century, however, and even before, justifiable con-
cern arose among the Reformers over a prevailing understanding that salvation depended on
human works of merit (James 2:17, 20), and not upon the grace and mercy of God. Many
involved with the Reformation experienced a rediscovery of Romans 1:17, The just shall live
by faith and Romans Chapter 5. Their slogan of salvation became: justification by faith alone.
This Reformation debate in the West was late-breaking news for the Orthodox East: why
this new polarization of faith and works? It had been settled since the apostolic era that
salvation was granted by the mercy of God to righteous men and women. Those baptized into
Christ were called to believe in Him and do good works. A discussion of faith versus works was
unprecedented in Orthodox thought.
The Orthodox understanding of justification differs from the Protestant in several ways:
1. Justification and the New Covenant - When Orthodox Christians approach the doc-
trine of salvation, the discussion centers around the New Covenant. Justification (being or
becoming righteous) by faith in God is part of being brought into a covenant relationship
with Him. Whereas Israel was under the Old Covenant, wherein salvation came through
faith as revealed in the law, the Church is under the New Covenant. Salvation comes
through faith in Christ who fulfills the law, and we receive the gift of the Holy Spirit who
dwells in us, leading us to the knowledge of God the Father. Whereas some Christians
focus on justification as a legal acquittal before God, Orthodox believers see justification
by faith as a covenant relationship with Him, centered on union with Christ (Romans
6:1-6).
2. Justification and Gods Mercy - Orthodoxy emphasizes it is Gods mercy - not our
faith - which saves us. Therefore having been justified by faith, we have peace with God
301
through our Lord Jesus Christ, through whom also we have access by faith into this grace
which we stand, and rejoice in hope of the glory of God (Romans 5:1-2). It is God who
initiates or makes the New Covenant with us.
This is why the modern evangelical Protestant question, Are you saved? gives pause to
an Orthodox believer. As the subject of salvation is addressed in Scripture, the Orthodox
Christian would see it in at least three aspects: (a) I have been saved, being joined to
Christ in baptism; (b) I am being saved, growing in Christ through the sacramental life of
the Church; and (c) I will be saved, by the mercy of God at the Last Judgment.
A final difficulty for Orthodox Christians is the word alone. Justification by faith, though
not the major New Testament doctrine for Orthodox as it is for Protestants, poses no
problem. But justification by faith alone brings up an objection. It contradicts Scripture
which says, You see then that a man is justified by works, and not by faith only (James
2:24). We are justified by faith apart from the deeds of the law (Romans 3:28), but
nowhere does the Bible say we are justified by faith alone. On the contrary, faith by
itself, if it does not have works, is dead (James 2:17).
As Christians we are no longer under the demands of the Old Testament law (Romans
3:20), for Christ has fulfilled the law (Galatians 2:21; 3:5, 24). By Gods mercy, we are
brought into a New Covenant relationship with Him. We who believe are granted entrance
into His Kingdom by His grace. Through His mercy we are justified by faith and empowered
by God for good works or deeds of righteousness which bring glory to Him.
302
Bible Study for the Book of Joshua
Chapters 1 - 3
1. What was Rahabs great act of faith that led St. Paul to write in Hebrews 11:31, By faith
Rahab did not perish with those who did not believe, when she had received the spies in
peace.
Rahab, who was a harlot, had great faith in God because of the miracles He did for Moses,
such as the parting of the Red Sea (Joshua 2:9-11). She confesses that God is the God of
heaven and earth, something the other inhabitants of Jericho would not do, despite the
fear they had of the Israelites and the miracles God did for Israel. Thus, her great act
of faith was hiding the spies and risking her life in protecting them, for she had complete
faith that God would cause the Israelites to triumph over Jericho (and this is shown when
she asks for the spies to spare her and her family (Joshua 2:12-13).
Notice how similar Rahab is to the thief who was crucified to the right of our Lord Jesus.
Both had sinful professions and lived sinful lives. Both witnessed the power of God and
confessed their belief that God is the Lord of all (for the thiefs confession, see Luke 23:40-
41). And, both asked to be spared and remembered by the Lord out of their great faith
(compare Joshua 2:12-13 to Luke 23:42).
Finally, note that Jesus descended from the harlot Rahab (Matthew 1:5). Normally in the
Jewish tradition, the genealogy of a great man never mentioned the women of his lineage.
So why would Matthew mention Rahab and three other women in Jesuss genealogy? And
why were the four women mentioned all of bad reputation or known as having a colorful
reputation? Notice also that Jesus descended from kings (David, Solomon) and sinners
(Rahab, King David). The Jews took their genealogy very seriously since it defined their
status in life. Jesus is born of the greatest kings and even sinners, which at once shows
His glory and humility. But also notice how Jesus turned the importance of genealogy on
its head; indeed, it no longer was important where one descended from, but rather what
one believed and did, as we will see in the Gospels.
303
Chapters 4 - 10
1. What do the twelve stones symbolize (both in the New and Old Testaments)? (Joshua 4)
2. How does the Lord appear to Joshua, and why does He appear to him in this way? (Joshua
5)
3. What is the significance of the miracles that God performs for Joshua (drying up the
Jordan, the fall of Jericho, the sun stands still)? (Joshua 3, 6, 10)
That all the peoples of the earth may know the hand of the Lord, that it is mighty, that
you may fear the Lord your God forever (Joshua 4:24).
1. What do the miracle of the drying up of the Jordan and the twelve stones symbolize?
(Joshua 4)
The crossing of the Red Sea led to travel in the wilderness and was followed by manna from
heaven. This is symbolic of the beginning of a journey, much like baptism. The crossing of
the Jordan ended the travel in the wilderness and the manna coming from heaven (since
the Israelites were filled with the produce of the land). For the Israelites, there was no
more need for water, food, or faith in the manna. This is symbolic of the end of life, or
death.
Why did the manna from heaven end? Manna was a sign of corruption of the body
(John 6), as our Lord Jesus said that the food which is labored for cannot grant eternal
life. Manna was food for the body. Once Israel crossed the Jordan, and they entered
the promised land, which was abundant with good things, there was no longer need to
physically labor for food. Thus, the crossing of the Jordan signals the end to the physical
struggle and the beginning of what was to be the golden time in the promised land (if
Israel could only keep its covenant with God).
Twelve stones are taken (one for each tribe), to commemorate the miracle of the crossing
of the Jordan. When we die, we will take our worship with us (much like they take stones
304
with them after crossing the river). We know from Revelation 6:9 and 8:3 that there is
a heavenly altar where we will worship in heaven. Also, the twelve stones can be seen as
symbolizing the Twelve Disciples who stood as a testament and a reminder of the life and
teachings of our Lord Jesus, after He completed His mission on earth (analogous to the
time in the wilderness and the struggle of the Israelites).
2. How does the Lord appear to Joshua, and why does He appear to him in this way? (Joshua
5)
The Lord sent Archangel Michael to appear to Joshua as Commander of the Lords Army,
because he was the archangel appointed to watch over Israel and because this was a war
led by the priests of Israel.
From scripture, we know that every archangel was appointed to guard over a nation,
but Israel was Gods special nation and Archangel Michael, the chief of the army of the
heavenly hosts, was the archangel who stood watch over Israel. In Daniel 10:11, the
Archangel Gabriel tells Daniel that Archangel Michael helped Gabriel conquer the devil
and cast him out of heaven; in Daniel 12:1, Gabriel indicates that Michael is the archangel
who watches over Israel.
From the tradition of the church, in the Synaxarium on the 12th day of Hatoor, we
commemorate Archangel Michael as the angel that Joshua saw in glory (Joshua 5). So
we know from tradition and from Scripture that the Commander of the Lords Army was
indeed Archangel Michael.
Jude 1:9 makes reference to a story only mentioned in tradition, not in Scripture: Archangel
Michael had a fight with Satan over the body of Moses. Michael had a mission from God
to hide Mosess body, and the devil wanted to show it to the people so that they would
worship it. Michael said, May the Lord rebuke you, showing that he uses the power
of God and not any power of his own. In the same way, Archangel Michael is advising
Joshua as a spiritual general talking to a human general. Just as Archangel Michael used
the power of God to conquer the devil, so must Joshua use the power of God if he wants
to defeat Jericho.
3. What is the significance of the miracles that God performs for Joshua and the Israelites
(drying up the Jordan, the fall of Jericho, the sun stands still)? (Joshua 3, 6, 10)
These miracles are all related to the warfare that God commands and Israel uses to recap-
305
ture the promised land. Notice that the priests are commanded to lead this warfare, and
the priests are the vehicle through which God performs these miracles (drying up of the
Jordan (Joshua 3:13); fall of Jericho (Joshua 6:4-5)). The priests lead this warfare because
God is establishing a royal priesthood as the rulers of the promised land. This royal line
of priests later will become an earthly line of kings, but our Lord Jesus comes to restore
His kingdom on earth (the Church) and opens the gates to the heavenly kingdom through
His death and resurrection.
In the story of the fall of Jericho (Joshua 6), we see that through warfare and by Gods
help, Israel was able to make a stronghold fall. St. Paul recalls the story of Jericho when
he alludes to spiritual warfare and weapons that cast down arguments and every high thing
bringing every thought into captivity (2 Corinthians 10:4-5). Spiritual warfare lays a siege
around high things (strongholds and fortresses in our life, such as sin and temptation).
It is only though God and spiritual warfare that we are able to destroy the strongholds
which keep us chained in sin.
During the Divine Liturgy of the Catechumens, the priest and the deacon take the gospel
and the censer and go around alter seven times during the readings: 3 turns around the
altar for the Pauline, 3 turns around the altar for the reading of Acts, and once for the
Gospel. They re-enact the story of Jericho using spiritual warfare to turn around any
doubts and any fears one may have, and to make the fortresses of fear, doubt, sin, and
temptation fall, like the walls of Jericho fell. They always encircle the altar because in our
church the altar represents the Ark of the Covenant of the old church. The altar is the
most holy sanctuary in our church, so the priest and deacon turn around it to turn the
minds of the people around, and the priest and deacon leave the altar with the incense
(prayers of saints) and most importantly, the Word of God (the Gospel, the only spiritual
weapon we have Ephesians 6:17).
In Ephesians 6, St. Paul discusses spiritual weapons. He describes the clothing of high
priests, not that of a typical Roman soldier. Recall from Exodus 28:15, 31-43 how priests
are clothed; St. Paul discusses the same clothing and weaponry here. Again, this relates
to the theme of the book of Joshua, and especially the miracles performed. The priests
are the army of God, and they are the ones who lead every battle. Our church adopts the
same idea; our warfare is spiritual (not physical), in that we are trying to capture hearts
and minds into the captivity of Christ with the power of God (the Gospel); the clergy lead
this spiritual warfare.
306
Chapters 11-17
1. Once the Israelites sanctified themselves, and conquered the land by the grace of God and
the leadership of the priests, the next step was to divide the land. How does this relate to
and resemble our daily lives? (Joshua 13-17)
2. How does the line of Canaan continue until the time of our Lord Jesus (see Matthew 8:28;
Matthew 15:22), even though God commanded Moses not to allow a single Canaanite to
remain in the land? (Joshua 9:24-27; Joshua 11:19-23)
3. Bonus question: How does the line of Rahab continue despite the fall of Jericho, and what
is the genealogy of Rahabs line?
1. Once the Israelites sanctified themselves, and conquered the land by the grace of God and
the leadership of the priests, the next step was to divide the land. How does this relate to
our daily lives? (Joshua 13-17)
Once the Israelites sanctified themselves and conquered vast portions of the promised land,
Joshua divided the land so that each tribe would be responsible for a portion of the land
to build cities, produce food, etc. This process is analogous to our daily lives. Once
we cleanse our bodies from sin through repentance and confession, we must care for the
inheritance that God has given us preserving the sanctity of our souls, raising children,
building houses (i.e., building houses and temples of God by serving others). God has
given us an inheritance, a gift. You are Gods field, you are Gods building; do you not
know that you are the temple of God? (1 Corinthians 6:9,16).
God has settled us down in our lives, and so we cannot just sit around and wait for
something to happen. We must actually do something with our inheritance, just as the
Israelites had to divide the promised land and actively do something with their portions.
Recall the parable of the talents, and how displeased God was with the servant who did
nothing with the gift given to him (Matthew 25:24-27). Also, the proper time to care
for Gods inheritance by serving others comes when we have conquered our bodies; it is
not wise to attempt to serve others while we are still struggling to conquer our bodies
(in trying to overcome sins, especially with things like addiction, adultery, etc.). Note
that the Levites did not receive inheritance in the land (Joshua 13:14). The Levites also
did not have farmland or animals. This is because God is their inheritance, as they are
307
consecrated to serve Gods altar. Likewise, the priests of the New Testament and the new
church should not have any other occupation because they should be dedicated spiritually
and totally serving Gods house. Also, just as the Levites did not have their own animals
and farmland so that they could totally concentrate on service, so, too, priests should not
be dependent on material possessions. The promised land resembles our lives on earth
when we embark on a spiritual journey with our Lord. We are called to a certain state
of grace; this state of grace is a state of joy, peace, and extreme spiritual fulfillment. We
no longer feel needy, and this state of grace fills the deep void that is usually occupied by
fear, sin, and weakness. God gave Joshua victory over the promised land through physical
warfare, but in the case of our lives, God gives us victory by killing our sinful passions.
Inside ourselves, we conquer fear, sin, and weakness and gradually take over our lives by
the grace of the Holy Spirit. Then we begin to experience the state of grace that is nicely
described by the fruits of the Holy Spirit in Galatians 5:22. We begin experiencing victory,
joy, love, peace, kindness, longsuffering, and all goodly things.
This spiritual victory happens only in Gods time; we cannot really force it by our own
timing. Thus, we must wait for our Lord to tell us how and when to proceed, and we are
best able to hear Gods direction in our lives through meditation, prayer, reading, fasting,
confession, among other things. We should not be afraid of how big the sin is that we must
conquer (much like God told Joshua not to be afraid of the giants in the promised land).
We should not hold on to or hide our sins, in the way that Achan hid his sin (Joshua
7:19-21). If we attempt to keep something for ourselves in a hidden place (like a sin that
we are not willing to give up), but at the same time we ask God to take over our lives,
we will be crushed because we are not honest with God or with ourselves. Recall that our
Lord Jesus warned us that we cannot serve two masters (Matthew 6:24).
2. How does the line of Canaan continue until the time of our Lord Jesus (see Matthew 8:28;
Matthew 15:22), even though God commanded Moses not to allow a single Canaanite to
remain in the land? (Joshua 9:24-27; Joshua 11:19-23)
Our Lord Jesus encounters descendants of Canaan at least twice in the Gospels (to recall
the line of Canaan, see Genesis 10:15-17). In the story of curing the two demon-possessed
men, Jesus was in land of Gergesenes (Matthew 8:28). Our Lord Jesus also healed the
daughter of a Canaanite woman. How could this be, when Moses was told not to keep
a single Canaanite in the land? These Canaanites that continue until at least the time
308
of the Gospels descended from the Gibeonites (descendants of Canaan). Because of their
covenant with the Israelites (see Joshua 9), they were not destroyed, but rather were
spared and allowed to live among the Israelites as water carriers and wood cutters (Joshua
9:26-27). Notice that, although the Canaanites were despised by the Jews, our Lord Jesus
bridged this gap and healed Canaanites, revealing the extent of His salvation as a light to
all people, even those who had once been despised and rejected and condemned to death.
3. Bonus question: How does the line of Rahab continue despite the fall of Jericho, and what
is the genealogy of Rahabs line?
Rahabs house was spared when Jericho fell because Rahab hid the spies that were sent
to Jericho (Joshua 6:17), and her great act of faith spared her household (Hebrews 11:31).
From Matthew 1:5-6, we know that Rahab married an Israelite named Salmon. Together,
they had a son named Boaz, who married Ruth. Ruth and Boaz had Jesse, who was the
father of King David (See also Ruth 4:20-22).
Chapters 18 - 24
1. Why do Moses and Joshua predict that Israel will break the covenant? (Hint: See
Deuteronomy 10:12-16; and 30:1; and 31:25-29; Joshua 23:14-16; and 24:22)
2. Our Lord gave the Israelites the promised land, but it had to be won through physical
warfare. Our Lord gave us freely our promised land, that is, our salvation, without this
physical warfare. Why this difference?
Joshua declares he and his house will worship the Lord, and the Israelites, too, swear they
will worship God. However, Joshua tells them they cannot. This is so because God is a
jealous God, and He will not stand for them to worship their false idols. (Joshua 24:19).
While in the wilderness, they worshiped Moloch and Remphan (Acts 7:43). And Joshua
warns them that if they forsake the Lord and serve foreign gods, then He will turn and do
harm (Joshua 24:20). This is why Joshua tells the people that they bear witness against
themselves (Joshua 24:22). Joshua, like Moses, renewed the Covenant with God, but he
knew that Israel would break the covenant. In Deuteronomy 30:1; 31:25-29, Moses declares
that when (and not if) the times comes, the people will choose curses over blessing.
In Deuteronomy 10:12-16, Moses tells the people that they need to circumcise their hearts
because the original circumcision was not working for the Israelites, as they were stiff-
309
necked. St. Paul responds to this by saying in Colossians 2:11-12 that the only way to
circumcise the heart so that people can love God and follow Him completely is through
baptism and faith. Joshua tells the people that they cannot follow the Lord completely
because they will not be able to match His requirement, which is utter holiness. They
cannot be lacking in any one point, because otherwise they will die (Joshua 24:19-20).
Moses added that he knows why the people could not meet Gods requirements: they
did not circumcise their hearts, and they cannot because they do not want to follow God
completely and give up their other desires (Deuteronomy 31:29). Since the people did not
ask for it, God did not give them a circumcised heart. Spiritually for us, it is the same
idea: we think we can conquer sin and live spiritually, but we are not willing to struggle
completely against sin. The only thing we can offer to God is a request, as David did in
Psalm 51 when he said, create in me a clean heart and renew a steadfast spirit within
me. We cannot achieve a pure heart on our own, so we must ask God for it. And yet,
before we even ask for it, God gives us the means to the circumcision of the heart through
baptism.
The main point is this. Practically speaking, we cannot abstain from sin under our own
power. What we actually do is ask God to give us power over sin; we ask God to purify us
and strengthen us by the Holy Spirit. This is an important point to realize, because many
times we think we can overcome sin without the need to turn to God, without the need
to pray, fast, confess and seek advice from our spiritual father, and yet when we do not
do these things, we find ourselves stumbling in the same sin again and again. We cannot
purify ourselves; we can only ask God to do it for us, and we struggle along the way to
achieve it.
3. Our Lord gave the Israelites the promised land, but it had to be won through physical
warfare. Our Lord gave us freely our promised land, that is, our salvation, without this
physical warfare. Why this difference?
This question enables us a review what we learned about the Israelites in the books of
Exodus through Joshua. God made a promise to the descendants of Abraham in Genesis
17:8 that they would inherit a promised land. And yet we see the descendants of Abraham,
the Israelites, having to fight for their land by physical warfare after they were led from
captivity. At the same time (and as we will see in the book of Judges), the Israelites
go through many cycles of breaking the covenant and renewing the covenant (see above).
310
Essentially, the Israelites lacked faith, even after the many miracles and deliverances God
performed for them. Recall that after being saved from captivity in Egypt, the Israelites
began to murmur against God and Moses because of the strictness of the law, because
they were tired of eating manna, and because of many other things. And still Moses, and
later Joshua, interceded on their behalf and renewed the covenant with God. But even by
the end of Joshua (Joshua 24), we find that the Israelites still sinned against God, despite
their many warnings and despite Joshua telling them that they were witnesses against
themselves. Their essential lack of faith, as demonstrated by the many times they turned
away from God, is the reason they had to physically fight for the promised land. Physical
warfare served many purposes for them, including making them realize how dependent
they were on God for their success. Indeed, when one of them (Achan) committed a grave
sin (Joshua 7), they did not succeed in their battles, and it was only when they cast out
Achan that they were able to again succeed in physical warfare for the promised land.
(For a list of those who were faithful to God during the times of the Old Testament, see
Hebrews, Chapter 11.)
How is our gift of salvation different from the gift of the promised land? First of all, it
was given freely to us when our Lord Jesus died on the Cross, of His own will. Second,
in order to accept this gift of salvation, we must have faith in God and love Him. If you
think about it, it is a prerequisite for us to believe that our Lord saved us in order for
us to accept this gift of salvation. As St. Paul says, Therefore the law was our tutor to
bring us to Christ, that we might be justified by faith. But after faith has come, we are
no longer under a tutor (Galatians 3:24-25). Likewise, it is absolutely essential for us to
love God to keep the gift of salvation in our lives.
The main lesson here is this. Sin is a sign that we have ceased abiding in Gods love.
When we turn away from God and from loving Him, we find ourselves stumbling. St. Paul
acknowledges that we must abide in love, faith and hope, and that the greatest of these is
love (1 Corinthians 13:13). Indeed, these are the cornerstones of our lives as Christians;
our Lord Himself gave us one of the greatest commandments of all: love the Lord your
God with all you heart, soul, strength, and mind (Matthew 22:37). Like the Israelites,
we often cease abiding in Gods love, and stumble as a result. Keep this in mind as we
begin the book of Judges.
311
Bible Study for the Book of Judges
Chapters 1 - 3
1) What do the cycles (turning away from God and then being saved by a judge) have
in common so far, and how do these cycles resemble patterns we have seen during the time of
Moses and Joshua? [Judges 3, 4, 6]
After Joshua dies, it is not clear who the next leader of Israel is, but Judges 1 reveals
that there are still large portions of the promised land to be conquered. When Joshua dies,
the children of Israel immediately fell into sin and began worshiping the Baals and Ashtorephs,
which were Canaanite goddesses. (Judges 2:13; 3:7). The repeating cycle (of turning to the Lord
when the judge comes and then turning away from the Lord after deliverance) shows us that,
in order to lose the covenant with God, the children of Israel merely had to forget the covenant
and forget God, they did not even have to reject the covenant. There are some common threads
between the cycles in Judges and what we have studied so far in Exodus, Numbers and Joshua.
First, we know that the judges, who are the deliverers of each cycle, are prophets and priests
of God. In the same way, we know that the children of Israel could only be lead from captivity
by priests (Moses and Aaron). Also, recall the miracles in Joshua, such as the crossing of the
Jordan, the fall of the city of Jericho, and all the successful battles waged in the promised
land; they were all led by priests, and God makes it clear that it is only by the priests that
the children of Israel will conquer the promised land. (Joshua 3:8; 6:4). Also, there are seven
cycles in the book of Judges (7 judges), and we know that the number 7 is a special and holy
number. Recall that the fall of Jericho was led by 7 priests, 7 times around the city. Just like
the children of Israel were led by priests in successful battles during the time of Joshua, so too
we learn in Judges that the children of Israel had to be rescued and delivered by a judge sent
from God. In the cycles we have studied so far, the children of Israel turn away from God and
worship the false gods of the inhabitants of the land, in the way that Moses and Joshua predicted
they would (Deuteronomy 31:16; Joshua 24:19-20). When they turn away from God, they fall
into captivity under a foreign people (Mesopotamians, Moabites, Canaanites, Midianites). A
judge is sent from God to deliver the children of Israel (Othniel, Ehud, Deborah, Gideon), and
the people are redeemed. Notice that as soon as each judge dies, the children of Israel again
begin to worship false gods they continually lose their faith and forget the covenant. With the
312
first few cycles, the children of Israel spend a longer time in captivity and a shorter time in
freedom as time progresses. At the beginning of Judges, the judge who delivered Israel gave
them both physical and spiritual deliverance; however, by the end of Judges, the deliverance
was just physical deliverance from being enslaved in captivity.
Lesson: Do we have a judge in our lives sent from God to redeem us each time we turn
away from God and cease to abide in His love? Our Lord Himself will be our Judge in the day
of His Second Coming, but our Lord did not leave us alone. He sent us a Comforter, the Holy
Spirit, which abides in us and serves as a voice of conscience when we turn away from God.
Do we listen to the voice of the Holy Spirit and love God? Or do we ignore the voice of the
Holy Spirit, or forget God after the voice subsides, and fall into repetitive cycles? Even when
the children of Israel continually forgot the covenant with God, we find ourselves asking, How
could they do such a thing? Why would God keep forgiving them and sending judges to deliver
them? In Judges 3:18, we see how merciful our Lord is , for the Lord was moved to pity by their
groaning. Our Lord is always there to receive us when we repent and return to loving Him; His
love and mercy and forgiveness are unceasing. It is this great love of our Lord that gives us hope
and encourages us to struggle against the world, so that we can truly and completely love Him
and abide in His love.
Chapters 4 - 7
1) How did God help Gideon to lead the Israelites and conquer the Midianites? [Judges 7]
God blessed Gideon, a simple farmer who himself proclaimed his own weakness in Judges
6:15. Yet God blessed him with the gift of revelation and special understanding, so that he could
lead Israel against the Midianites. In Hebrews 11:32, St Paul testifies to Gideons great faith.
How did God bless Gideon to save the children of Israel? God gave him courage to destroy
the altar of Baal in the face of the possibility of being killed by the Israelites who worshiped
Baal. Gideon also built a new altar to the Lord next to the place of Baals altar, in order to
redirect the children of Israel to their true God. (Judges 6:30). God allowed Israel to be saved
by Gideon and three hundred men only, so that the Israelites would realize that their deliverance
did not come from their own strength, but from God (Judges 7:2,7). In the same way, we cannot
triumph over sin by our own power; we can only defeat sin in our lives by turning to God and
letting His grace and love and power work in our lives.
313
Chapters 8-14
1) What did St. Paul mean in Hebrews 11:32-34, when he recounted the faith of the Judges?
What was the faith that each of those Judges present by their actions and stories?
In Hebrews 11:32-34, St. Paul testifies about the faith of the judges who were chosen by God
to lead Israel out of its captivity (both physical captivity when they were subdued by kingdoms,
and spiritual captivity when they worshiped false idols). St. Paul mentions a few of the judges
who we have read about Gideon, Barak, Samson and Jephthah. Last week, we discussed the
great faith and actions of Gideon. In Judges 4, Barak was called by the prophetess Deborah to
lead the children of Israel in war against Sisera, the commander of the army of King Jabin of
Canaan. By his faith in the power of the Lord, Barak led his ten thousand men against a strong
army and routed and killed the enemies. He did this, even knowing that he would not receive
the glory of battle in killing the enemy commander, for Deborah prophesied that Sisera would
die at the hands of a woman (Judges 4:9). Nonetheless, Barak led the battle and triumphed by
his faith that God would save. In Judges 5, Deborah and Barak proclaim the greatness of the
Lord: Thus let all Your enemies perish, O LORD! But let those who love Him be like the sun
when it comes out in full strength (Judges 5:31). In Judges 11, we learn that Jephthah was a
great warrior. He was an outcast from his fathers house and his tribe because he was the son of
Gilead and a harlot. Jephthah made his living by raiding villages with men of bad reputation.
When the Ammonites held Israel in captivity, the elders then turned to Jephthah for his help
because he was a mighty warrior. Jephthah tried to reconcile with the king of Ammon, who
believed that Israel had wrongfully taken the Ammonites land when Israel crossed the Jabbok as
they came out of Egypt (Numbers 21:23-25). The king of Ammon wanted these lands restored,
but Jephthah tried to explain to the king that God gave these lands to Israel through battle.
(Judges 11:19-27). When the king of Ammon refused to listen to Jephthah, Jephthah vowed to
the Lord that if he succeeded in battle against Ammon, he would sacrifice, as a burnt offering to
the Lord, the first thing that met him when he returned home. God granted Jephthah victory
in battle, and so great was Jephthahs love to the Lord that he sacrificed his daughter his only
child - as a burnt offering, because she was the first thing to greet him when he returned from
battle. (Judges 11:38). For the discussion of Samson, please see question 3 below.
2) How did Abimelech come to power, what was his great sin, and how did he fall from
power? (Judges 9)
314
Abimelech was the son of Gideon, and he had seventy brothers. His great sin was slaugh-
tering all but one of his brothers. He proclaimed himself a king in Israel, though he was not
the legitimate king of Israel because he did not come to power by God. One of his brothers
Jotham escaped the terrible slaughter. In Judges 9:20, Jotham curses Abimelech and the men of
Shechem for their wickedness. However, God repaid Abimelech for his evil. In Judges 9:22-32,
the men of Shechem the same men who had supported him when he killed his 70 brothers -
question the legitimacy of Abimelechs reign and begin to murmur against him; they plot to
overthrow his rule. The men of Shechem and Abimelech wage battle. Abimelech traps Shechem
in a fortress and sets it on fire, killing all those who waged battle against him. However, Abim-
elech himself died a dishonorable death when a woman dropped a millstone on his head. Thus,
God avenged the evil of Abimelech and the men of Shechem: And all the evil of the men of
Shechem God returned on their own heads, and on them came the curse of Jotham the son of
Jerubbaal (Judges 9:56).
3) What was the significance of Sampson taking a Nazarite vow from birth? (Judges 13,
foreshadowing the story of Sampson and Delilah Judges 16)
Recall in Numbers 6, God tells Moses that there is one way that a person not from the tribe
of Levi can consecrate himself to the Lord. He or she must take the Nazarite vow to separate
themselves to the Lord (Numbers 6:2). They cannot drink any wine or product from the vine;
they cannot cut their hair; they cannot go near a dead body because it is unclean. Why did
God impose these specific requirements for the Nazarite vow? One who takes the Nazarite vow
separates himself to the Lord, and all the days of his separation he shall be holy to the LORD
(Numbers 6:8). The idea of separating oneself to God is physical as well as spiritual; though
one has to live in the world, he does not have be a part of the world. Thus, during the years
in the wilderness, water was scarce but wine was plentiful. Men usually cut their hair or were
clean-shaven. People would bury their dead relatives and would normally touch the body of the
dead person in doing so. The requirements for the Nazarite vow show us that the person who
took the vow would appear separated from the rest of society he would appear physically and
socially different to other people because he could not drink wine while everyone else did; he
could not cut his hair, although it was custom to do so; he could not touch or bury his dead
relatives or even go near a dead body, and so he could not partake in funeral rites. Before
Samson was born, the Angel of the Lord told his parents that Samson would be a Nazarite from
the time he was in his mothers womb, and that he would be a judge to deliver Israel from the
315
Philistines. (Can you see why, in Judges 16, Samson tells Delilah that his great strength comes
from the fact that no razor has touched his hair? See question 1 below).
Lesson: If we want to serve God, we too can separate ourselves unto Him, just as Samson
did. In doing so, we will face criticism from the world because we will not appear to be the same
as them. Our Lord said,Yet because you are not of the world, but I chose you out of the world,
therefore the world hates you (John 15:19). This is a daily obstacle that we will face, for we
live in the world, but we are not of the world instead, we are citizens of the household of God
(Ephesians 2:19; Philippians 3:20). Our Lord Jesus promised us great blessings for separating
ourselves unto Him, for we will be blessed when the world reviles us and persecutes us for abiding
in His love (Matthew 5:11-12).
Chapters 15-21
1) What were Samsons acts as judge of Israel, how did he lose his strength, and how did
he redeem himself? (Judges 15-16)
2) How do the stories in the last chapters of Joshua illustrate the corruption of the Levites
specifically and of the Israelites generally? (Judges 17-19)
1) Samson almost single-handedly defeats the Philistines, a very powerful nation. We learn
that the Spirit of God was mightily upon him (Judges 15:14), and he had great strength. After
defeating the Philistines, he judges Israel for 20 years. In Judges 16, Samson tells Delilah that
his strength comes from his hair. Earlier, we discussed the Nazarite vow: Samsons parents had
taken a Nazarite vow for him before birth and he had separated himself unto God. He was
not allowed to cut his hair, touch dead bodies or drink wine or partake of any products of the
vine. The idea of separating himself unto God implies that he was separated from society by his
physical appearance and his social characteristics, as well as by his spiritual devotion to God.
So, when Samson says that his strength comes from his hair, it means that his strength comes
from the divine power of God through his separation unto God by taking the Nazarite vow.
Here, we see a theme developing: Moses could only lead the Israelites out of Egypt by Gods
guidance and power; the Israelites were only able to conquer Jericho and the promised land by
the power of God through the priests; then the children of Israel are delivered by judges who
are men of God, and when they cease to abide in Gods love, they fall into bondage and sin.
Likewise, when Delilah cuts Samsons hair, he loses his strength because he is no longer being
guided by Gods power since the Lord had departed from Him (Judges 16:20). And yet notice
316
that it is not just the literal cutting of his hair that is the reason for Samson losing his power.
It is also underlined by the fact that Samson was defiling himself by having affair with Delilah
and was no longer spiritually separated unto God. He let his lust conquer him, which eventually
led to him betraying his secret to Delilah and the cutting of his hair. So, it is not enough
to physically separate oneself unto God: the separation must be complete physical, spiritual,
emotional. Our Lord thus commanded us: Love the Lord your God with all your heart, with
all your soul, with all your mind, with all your strength. After Samson loses his strength, his
eyes are gouged and he is taken as a slave. But his hair begins to grow back (Judges 16:22),
and he again separates himself unto God. He prays to God to restore his power one last time
and commits a sacrificial act in destroying the temple by pushing the two pillars supporting the
walls. He sacrifices his life to kill the Philistines, but he delivers his people by doing so.
Lesson: The story of Samson gives us great hope, because he is like most of us he struggles
with sin, with temptation, with lust, and yet he tries to separate himself unto God. When Gods
power leaves us, it is always because of our own sin, because we have turned away from God
and have ceased abiding in His love. And yet, the story of Samson shows us that all we have to
do is turn back to God, give up our worldly desires, and repent, and the Spirit of God dwells
within us again. The Holy Spirit which dwells within us is like a candle when our hearts and
minds are filled with thoughts of the world, with lust, with envy or anger, etc., the flame of the
candle is smothered and grows lower because it does not have enough oxygen to burn brightly.
But, when we clear our hearts and minds of those things, we let the flame of the candle burn
brightly because it is not smothered by anything else. The flame grows and consumes us, just
as our heavenly Fathers love consumes us and fills us in a way that no earthly thing could ever
satisfy us.
2) How do the stories in the last chapters of Joshua illustrate the corruption of the Levites
specifically and of the Israelites generally? (Judges 17-19)
Interestingly, the last few chapters of Judges seem to be additional stories added on to the
end of the book, not talking about judges of Israel, but showing Israels corruption. In Judges
17, we learn of a man named Micah who employs a Levite priest to serve as a priest-for-hire
in his household, which worships an idol and not Yahweh (Judges 17:13). In Judges 18, the
tribe of Dan asks this same Levite priest to be their priest. The priest takes Micahs idols and
carved image with him when he serves the Danites; now we see that a Levite priest himself is
spreading idolatry to the children of Israel. In Judges 19, a Levite takes a concubine for himself.
317
When the concubine is taken from the household and raped by a group of men, she returns to
the Levites house and collapses at his door. The Levite performs a gruesome act. He cuts her
body to pieces, to the point that even the children of Israel, as corrupt as they have become, are
shocked (Judges 19:30.) The last few chapters of Judges reveal the chaos that has taken hold of
Israel, as they are consumed by civil war.
Recall the prophecies of Moses and Joshua regarding that the children of Israel would break
the covenant with God and worship foreign gods and false idols. This theme was recurrent in
the cycles in Judges. Each time Israel began to worship false idols, they fell into captivity,
were redeemed by a judge sent from God, and then when the judge died they again fell into
worshiping idols. By the end of Judges, we see that even the Levites have fallen into corruption
and are no longer keeping the covenant with God. And if the tribe that was supposed to uphold
the covenant with God cannot be faithful to Him, think of how much worse the corruption was
with the children of Israel. Now corruption and falling away from God starts from the highest
spiritual levels (Levite priesthood) and progresses down; the Levites and the children of Israel
fell far away from the time when they were able to cross the Jordan and make Jericho fall.
Why? Because they completely turned away from their love and faith for God; they forget that
it is only by God that they are able to survive and conquer. Thus, as we will shortly see, with
the corruption of the Levites, there was a vacuum of leadership, and soon the children of Israel
looked for a king to lead them.
318
Bible Study for the Book of Ruth
Introduction: Ruth is the only book in the Bible named for a gentile woman. Jewish
tradition in the Talmud teaches that the author of the book is Samuel the Prophet. It is said
that the story took place during the days of the judge Gideon (Judges 6:1-11) during the famine.
The book teaches us about great faith and devotion, and symbolizes the Gentiles acceptance
of faith in our Lord Jesus and entering the New Church. Ruth offers us a living example of
a faithful active church member. The book also serves as a bridge to connect the days of the
patriarchs of Israel (Abraham, Jacob, Moses) to the kings of Israel. Ruth, as we will learn
below, entered into the field of Boaz to collect grains. But her actions show us she also entered
the field of our Lord Jesus Christ; she married the True Bridegroom (the true Boaz, who is the
Bridegroom for us all), and she gathered the Grain of life and was satisfied by fullness; this
was the satisfaction and fullness that the patriarchs and prophets had been laboring for.
It is a book traditionally read during harvest time (Pentecost) by the Jewish people. The
early Church saw it as the story of marriage between Christ and the Gentile Church, which was
the occasion of Pentecost in Chapter 2 of the Book of Acts.
Boaz (which means strength, might) is the groom of the faithful Ruth; he lifts her from
the threat of the famine and saves her from the humiliation of begging for food. Likewise,
Christ our Lord is our strength and our might and the True Bridegroom; He lifts us from the
humiliation of hell and saves us from the sting of death.
Ruth went to the field of Boaz to collect grain, for she who reaps receives wages and gathers
fruit for eternal life (John 4:36). Ruth was without a husband and waiting to be redeemed by
a kinsman. Christ is our near relative; all people and all nations wait to receive Him as their
Groom, just as Ruth waited to receive Boaz. In Ruth 2:8, Boaz called Ruth his daughter; asked
her to stay close to his maidens and to him, and drink from the vessels that his laborers drank
from. Likewise, Christ our Lord calls us His sons and daughters; asks us stay with Him and
abide in His love; and He invites us to drink the living water (John 4:14) which is the Holy Spirit
that we attain through the Church sacraments. Boaz asked Ruth to share in his food (Ruth
319
2:14) which symbolizes both the union of Christ to His bride, the Church; and also our union
with Him in the communion of His holy Body and precious Blood. Ruth, in gathering the True
Grain, achieves a fulfillment which no food could give her. Boaz redeemed Ruth and gave her
what the world could not give - a second chance and a new life. To accept his blessings and
unite with him in marriage, (in Ruth 3) Ruth washed his feet and anointed them (symbolic of
what? see question 4); put on garments (Christ is our garment - Galatians 3:27); and lay down
(accepting suffering and burial with Christ to enjoy the power of His resurrection when He lifts
us, redeems us, and gives us life by defeating death).
2. How is Ruth related to King David? What is the significance of Ruth being a Moabite?
(Ruth 4)
Ruth bore Obed (which means slave), who is the grandfather of King David. Obed
represents Christ who became a slave (Philippians 2:7). Naomi can be seen as representing
the Law, and those who cling to the Law rather than recognizing the truth (hint: what did
Naomi and Elimelech do when the famine came? See Chapter 1). When Obed is born, Naomi
rejoiced over him and embraced and nursed him, as if he were her own son. This represents the
fulfillment of the Law and the prophecies that were to come true in the Messiah. Ruths lineage
is of great significance. Like Rahab, Ruth is one of the four women mentioned in the genealogy
of our Lord Jesus (Matthew 1:5). Like Rahab the harlot, Ruth comes from an irreputable
background she is a Moabite and a gentile (Recall in Genesis 19:30-37, Moab is the son of an
incestuous relationship between Lot and his daughter). However, notice that our Lord is not
ashamed to be born from the line of these women - or even from King David who committed
adultery. Ruth, like Rahab, showed great faithfulness by staying with her mother-in-law, and
for this faithfulness she was remembered and blessed. Indeed, the Lord is not looking to our
family background, but instead He is looking to our hearts - our love, worship, and faith (John
8:37-38). Even though Ruth was a gentile, her lineage bore the Savior of the world. What
does that say about us gentiles who were accepted into Christs Church? We should never be
ashamed that He descended from sinners or people with colorful pasts, for He came to call the
sinners to repentance (Matthew 9:13). He is the true Healer and the only One who covers all
the sins of our past, all the things we are ashamed of - He is not ashamed to call us His sons and
daughters, so how could we ever be ashamed to call Him our Father? (see 2 Timothy 1:8-12).
Father Lev Gillet writes: If Jesus is born in my soul, He is born there in spite of and through
the accumulation of my sins. Jesus pierces, finds His way through my faults, climbing over
320
them one after the other. It is His genealogy in me. In His breakthrough shines His mercy, His
condescension, also His strength. (From his book: Jesus, a Dialogue with the Savior).
3. What does Ruths devotion and faithfulness to her mother-in-law show us?
When the famine came, Ruth had no obligation to stay with her mother-in-law Naomi,
especially since Ruths husband (Naomis son) had died. Ruth could have gone back to her
parents and family, but she clung to Naomi and would not leave her side. Ruths acts show
us that simple faithfulness and devotion can lead to great blessings. How did God bless Ruth?
(Hint: Ruth 4:17; see question 2)
Lesson: Through faithfulness and devotion in our relationships (with our Lord, with our
family, with each other), we can be blessed with great grace, much like the way Ruth was blessed
for her devotion to Naomi. Despite our sinful past, our Lord will not be ashamed to call us His
sons and daughters if we can overcome our past by showing Him our faith and love to Him.
Again, because of Ruths devotion to her mother-in-law, she obeyed Naomis instructions
and went to Boaz so that he would redeem her and marry her. And notice how Boaz was kind to
Ruth - he did not take advantage of the young woman, but proclaimed her virtuousness. Why
are Ruths acts not merely acts of seduction to get Boaz to marry her? Recall in Deuteronomy
25:5, a man had a duty to marry the widow of his brother or kinsman, so that she would not
marry a stranger outside the family and lose her inheritance. Thus, Ruth goes to Boaz, who is
a kinsman of her late husband, to offer herself to serve him and marry him, as it was her duty
according to the law of Moses in order to preserve her inheritance. The marriage, in a way, acts
like collateral to preserve the inheritance and land. Why did Boaz accept the duty to marry
Ruth when there was one kinsman who was actually closer to Ruths late husband? (Hint: Ruth
4:6-8). Recall in question 1 that Boaz is a type figure of our Savior. Ruth went to Boaz and
asked him to redeem her by covering her with his blood and by accepting and uniting with
her after she had been widowed and without a husband for many years. Essentially, she wanted
to be united with the True Bridegroom, the One who will accept us after we have been left by
the world, abandoned or widowed; the only One who can truly fulfill us. Just like Ruth, we long
to unite with our Beloved (Song of Solomon 6:3). Ruth didnt meet Boaz in the field; instead,
she met him in his bedchamber, where life is secret and hidden from the world, much like we
meditate in secret and our meditations are hidden from the world. In Ruth 3:3-4, she washed
321
Boazs feet and anointed them - what do the washing (with water) and anointing (with oil)
symbolize? How is this parallel to the ministry of our Lord Jesus? When He came to minister to
the Jews, they rejected Him - they passed up the duty of preserving their inheritance as Gods
chosen people. Thus, Jesus turned to the next of kin - the Gentiles - who accepted the duty of
preserving and purchasing the inheritance He offered. (Interestingly, when a kinsman rejected
the duty of marrying his brothers wife and preserving the inheritance, he was supposed to
remove his sandals from his feet. Do you see the parallel to when Jesus instructed His disciples
that if a city rejected their teachings, they should take off their sandals and shake the dust from
them? (Matthew 10:14)
322
Bible Study for the First Book of Samuel
Introduction: The book is written by Samuel (which means Heard by God), who was the
last of Judge of Israel. The book shows us the transition from the judges to the Kings, but it is
does not yet signify the transition from the tabernacle to the temple, which happens during the
reign of Solomon, which we will read about in 1 Kings. In our study of the covenants, we are
about to study the fifth covenant (between David and God). This book shows us many examples
of personal relationships many righteous people had with God. This book also specifically points
to the Church as it is portrayed in the Gospel of St. Matthew, the Kingdom of God on earth,
led by the True David, who is Christ our Lord.
1 Samuel 1-7
1. What were the qualities of Hannah prayers that made it acceptable before God? Do you
see parallels in the New Testament? (1 Samuel 1-2)
The most significant aspect of Hannahs prayer is that it is from the heart. In 1 Samuel
1:11, Hannah prays out of the bitterness of her soul, while her prayer in Chapter 2 is a prayer
in response to God answering and fulfilling her request for a son. In both instances, her prayer
shows insistence. Her first prayer is a silent prayer accompanied by a vow, moved by feelings of
grief and self-concern. What is the focus of her second prayer, and how does it differ from the
first? It is filled with rejoicing, showing how she has been filled by the satisfaction of God when
He answered her prayers. Notice the parallel between the story of Hannah and the story of the
widow and the unjust judge in Luke [Link] Shall God not avenge His own elect who cry out day
and night to Him, though He bears long with them? This prayer is a private moment between
her and God, that she keeps hidden in her heart. (Recall how St. Mary pondered all things in
her heart.) Here, Hannah didnt want to share her private moment with anyone, not even Eli.
From her private moment flows the depth and joy of her prayer. She praises God because she
is moved by the Spirit, and praise of our Lord only comes from the joy of answered prayer, and
from the ultimate feeling of fulfillment that only God can provide us with. In the Gospel of St.
John, our Savior said, Until now youve asked nothing in My name. Ask, and you will receive,
that your joy may be full, which shows us that it is only through prayer and being fulfilled by
God that the true fulfillment of joy arises. (John 16:24)
323
Also notice how Hannahs prayer is filled with faith, and when her prayer is answered, she
is fulfilled, with no more tears or bitterness. Recall that the Lord will wipe away our every
tear and when we are fulfilled by the Lords salvation, there will be no more pain or suffering
(Revelation 21:4). Also, Hannah prays when she is in need and distress, but continues to pray
after her prayer has been answered - how many times have we prayed to our Lord requesting
something, and failed to thank Him and praise Him for that which He has given us and has not
given us? How is Hannahs prayer in 1:11-2:10 similar to St. Marys prayer in Luke 1:46-55?
Hannah prays for the Lord to strengthen His anointed; which can be interpreted on many levels
- to protect Samuel, to protect the line of the kings of Israel that is to come, and to protect the
Messiah who comes from the line of King David. Look closely at St. Marys prayer - St Mary
is using Hannahs prayer, which shows us that St. Mary knew the Scripture despite her young
age.
2. In the story of Samuel, we were told something about the way God communicated with
prophets in the Old Testament. How? Is it the same way in the New Testament? (1 Samuel 3)
In the Old Testament, God was speaking to people, but they had the perception that they were
hearing voices - to them, the manifestation of Gods voice was an external thing. The proof
of this is in Samuel, because for him, Gods voice was an external thing, not speaking to him
directly in his heart. But in the New Testament and the New Church, Gods voice is in the core
of the person - God speaks immediately into the heart of the person, to inspire us to know, want
and do immediately. There is no confusion as to Who is speaking to us. We are citizens of the
New Testament and the New Church and we look for the voice of God in our hearts, through
the Holy Spirit which abides in us. In Acts, St. Peter says that God pours out His voice through
the Holy Spirit to lead the apostles to preach the Word of God (Acts 2:33). In Jeremiah 31:33,
Jeremiah prophecies about the New Covenant, a time when the Spirit of God would write His
commandments in our hearts, rather than using an external device to teach people.
Elis sons committed a grave sin against God and the offerings of the tabernacle. Eli, as
priest, should have punished his sons according to the law, and by not doing so, Eli was negligent
in his duties of worshipping God. And yet, many people were negligent in their duties, but why
would God judge Elis house forever? Eli is a Levite priest; recall that the Levites were not
originally meant to be part of the priestly order. Instead, the first born son was supposed to be
part of the true priestly order. However, God substituted the Levites for the first-born in the
324
priestly order, as the men of Levite tribe were willing to sacrifice their families and take on the
duties of the priestly order (Numbers 3:12-13). However, Eli undid what the Levites had done in
taking up the priestly duties. He, a Levite priest, was not willing to be zealous (like the Levites)
to preserve Gods glory and dignity; he was not willing to execute his sons for sinning against
God. Thus, God will judge the iniquity of Elis house forever. How does our Lord and Savior
fulfill the true priestly order? Our Lord Christ returns the priesthood to its original design -
He is the First-Born of the heavenly Father who becomes the High Priest of the New Church
(Hebrews 5:9-10).
Lesson: Many times, we become like Eli, unwilling to place the Lord above our friends and
family. Or, sometimes we lose our first love to worship Him and become consumed with worldly
affairs that distract us from the true goal of salvation (Revelation 2:4). We must strive daily to
abide in Gods love, including times when we must place our Lord above friends, family, work,
and school, to make Him once again our first love.
1 Samuel 8-14
1. Why is Saul the first king of Israel? What attributes does he have that lead the people
to choose him? (1 Samuel 10)
Only fear the Lord, and serve Him in truth with all your heart; for consider what great
things He has done for you (1 Samuel 12:24).
1. Why is Saul the first king of Israel? What attributes does he have that lead the people
to choose him? (1 Samuel 10)
Recall in Genesis 15, 17, and 22, that the Lord made promises to Abraham, which comprise
the Abrahamic covenant. The first promise (Genesis 15) concerned the promised land, and God
delivered His promise by giving the children of Israel the land of Canaan through Moses and
Joshua. The second promise (Genesis 17) was the promise of circumcision, and from Abrahams
descendants a divine kingship would come. (The third promise (Genesis 22) blessed Abrahams
seed, for from Abrahams seed all the nations of the earth would be blessed, and this is by the
coming of the Messiah. We will discuss the third promise in greater detail when we study 2
Samuel. The people cry out in 1 Samuel 8 for a king, but why did Samuel react as he did and
reject the idea, when God had promised Abraham that a divine kingship would arise? Wasnt
325
this request for a king fulfilling part of the Abrahamic covenant? The people wanted a king for
the wrong reasons - they wanted to be like other nations that were ruled by kings, and were able
to conquer territory, succeed in battle, and gather wealth and fame. As Samuel points out to
the people, God is their King - if they wanted to succeed as a nation, they needed only to return
to the time when they followed God and let Him lead their ways - just as He did when they
crossed the Red Sea, conquered Jericho, and crossed the Jordan; and conquered the promised
land. In all of those situations, they were led by God through His priests, but as read in Judges,
the people have fallen far from the time when they sought the Lords guidance, and even the
Levite priesthood has become corrupt. Nevertheless, the Lord chooses a king for the people
because they cry out for it, and they do not heed Samuels words that God is the only King
they need. God chooses Saul, who is the most handsome and tallest man among the children
of Israel. Notice how the selection of Saul might be appealing to the children of Israel for his
physical characteristics, because his beauty and height will signify worldly strength to them.
Yet, as we will read later, although Saul was chosen by God and anointed by Samuel, he still
was not the ideal king of Israel, because he was not a man after Gods heart (1 Samuel 13). God
would fulfill his promise to Abraham of a divine kingdom through the second king of Israel, a
man who was indeed after Gods heart - King David.
Lesson: Sometimes we ask the Lord for things that may be beneficial to us, and the Lord
may grant us our requests, but unless we seek after these things according to the Lords will,
they will be useless to us. Before we ask for anything, we must first look into our hearts and
see how the Lord has blessed us, and ask ourselves what we truly need. Then, if we do make a
request of our Lord, we ask Him to guide us according to His will and show us how to use the
thing which He has given us (or not given us), recognizing that it is His love that leads us in all
we do and seek.
In 1 Samuel 10, Samuel anoints Saul as the first king of Israel, pouring oil over his head.
The anointing with oil, as we know from the church teachings and traditions, is the gift of the
Holy Spirit, just like we receive the Holy Spirit through Chrismation after Baptism. When the
Spirit of God falls upon Saul, Samuel tells him that a certain gift will also come upon him that
day - the gift of prophesying. And, indeed, Saul goes among the prophets and prophesies. The
people are shocked that a man they knew could do such things - much in the same way that
people were in disbelief when the Apostles performed miracles through grace of the Holy Spirit.
326
Why does God send His Spirit upon Saul? Recall in Numbers, when the council of seventy was
appointed during the time Moses (the Sanhedrin), the gift of the Spirit fell upon them, and
they too could prophesy. In Numbers, God was establishing a new order - a priestly order of
elders. Here, God is establishing the new order of kingship, and a kingdom that would serve
as a prototype for His New Kingdom, the church. We will study this in greater detail later.
However, even though Saul has the gift of prophesying and the anointing of the Spirit, he is
not automatically made a righteous king. In fact, he tries to perform the duties of a priest in 1
Samuel 13 to make a sacrifice to God, and in doing so, he violated the Lords commandments
and instruction of the priestly order. Our Lord Jesus warned us of this offense, for many will
seek Him claiming to have prophesied in His name, but He will not know them in that hour
because they were workers of iniquity and lawlessness (Matthew 7:22). Saul many times acted
foolishly, without first seeking the counsel of Gods guidance. Later we will read about further
acts of Sauls disobedience.
Lesson: As St. Paul wrote, even though we may be blessed with gifts of the Holy Spirit
- speaking in tongues, prophesying - but we do not abide in Gods love and seek His divine
guidance, these charismatic gifts of the Spirit will not be useful to anyone. (1 Corinthians 13).
We may be blessed with gifts of the Spirit, but we must use them for the glorification of our
Lords name and for the edification of the Church (1 Corinthians 14:12).
1 Samuel 15-21
1. Why was Saul rejected as King and David anointed? (1 Samuel 15-16)
2. What lessons can we draw from Jonathans loyalty to David? (1 Samuel 20)
In my distress I called upon the LORD, And cried out to my God; He heard my voice from
His temple, And my cry came before Him, even to His ears. Psalm 18:6; please also refer to 1
Samuel 19:18.
1. Why was Saul rejected as King and David anointed? (1 Samuel 15-16)
As we mentioned earlier, King Saul was not a man after Gods heart (1 Samuel 13:14).
Though he had the gift of prophecy by the anointing of the Spirit, Saul was not obedient to
Gods commandments. In 1 Samuel 15, when the Lord commanded that Saul slaughter all the
Amalekites and all their livestock, Saul spares their king, Agag, and the best of the livestock,
from which ten percent would be offered as a sacrifice to the Lord and the rest kept as war booty.
327
Saul was a man after his own heart - he was motivated by greed and ambition to spare Agag and
kept the best livestock, and in doing so, he disobeyed the Lords direct commandment. Samuel
chastises Saul, and the Lord rejects Saul as king, because Samuel tells Saul that the Lord desires
obedience over empty sacrifice (1 Samuel 15:22). What is the connection to the ministry of our
Lord Jesus? (hint: Matthew 9:13) The Lord found a king after His heart in the boy David, son
of Jesse. Recall who David is a descendant from - Ruth, Rahab, and most importantly, and
the royal tribe of Judah (see Genesis 49:10 - the scepter shall not depart from Judah). Who
was David? A faithful boy, the youngest of his brothers, and a simple shepherd. And yet the
Lord chose him to be anointed as King of Israel, for through David, God would fulfill the second
promise made to Abraham - the establishment of a kingdom (Genesis 17:6-7). Even as Saul
attempted to chase after David and kill him, David was obedient to the Lords commandments.
We will study his kingdom and its parallel to Christs life and the New Kingdom later.
2. How is David able to triumph over the giant Goliath? (1 Samuel 17)
When David asks to be matched against the giant Goliath, he does so because he feels the
need to protect Gods armies (1 Samuel 17:26). Remember that the Spirit of God is upon David
(recall David has been secretly anointed). Notice how David does not feel comfortable in the
armor of the king, but rather prefers to wear his shepherds clothing and use a slingshot as his
weapon. David does not purport to be a valiant soldier or man of honor or strength. Rather,
Davids purpose in fighting Goliath is to glorify God and unify the children of Israel in the Lord:
Then all the assembly shall know that the Lord does not save with sword and spear; for the
battle is the Lords, and He will give you into our hands. (1 Samuel 17:47). David reminds
Israel that any power, strength and authority come from God, and without God, the people
have nothing. Indeed, David restores Israel to the path that they followed under Moses, Joshua
and the judges - it is only by seeking the Lords guidance that they were able to triumph. This
story also follows a long pattern of having great faith in following the Lords commands, even
if the result seems physically impossible (young David matched against a giant, using only a
slingshot). Look at how similar it is to the Israelites crossing the Red Sea, the Israelites surviving
in the desert by the manna, the walls of Jericho falling, the crossing of the Jordan. These acts
required great faith by the leaders who led the people. And yet, it is only by Gods power and
grace that these acts could be accomplished (Recall the instructions to the disciplesin Matthew
10:19-20).
Lesson: Before we take any steps, we must trust in the Lord and not lean on our own
328
understanding (Proverbs 3). Many times, we are confronted with seemingly impossible physical
and mental tasks that we must overcome in order to follow the Lords commandments and to
glorify His name before others. It is especially at these times that we must learn to take off the
outer coat of armor given to us by the world, for it will give us no aid, protection or comfort.
Instead, we should strip off the outer layers to reveal to the Lord our innermost layer - our
heart. When we have stripped ourselves of the worlds influences and humbled ourselves to
the point that we are naked in front of the Lord, that is when the Lord will clothe us with
righteousness, longsuffering, patience, hope and courage. That is when the Lord will make what
seems impossible become a reality, and when we can do all things through Him, for He will
strengthen us and the Holy Spirit within us will swell to fill us completely (Philippians 4:13).
3. What lessons can we draw from Jonathans loyalty to David? (1 Samuel 20)
Jonathans acts were the opposite of Elis acts. Jonathan was willing to sacrifice his family
connection to his father in order to follow and help David. Why? Jonathan and David made
a covenant - Jonathan treated David as his kin, because he sensed that David walked with the
Lord. Try to recall all the instances we have read so far where one person was willing to sacrifice
all he had for the Lord - including his family relations if necessary. (Two of the most prominent
examples that we have read so far are Abraham and Moses.) Recall what our Lord Jesus said:
He who loves father or mother more than Me is not worthy of Me (Matthew 10:37). We
face many instances in our own lives where we must decide whether to take up our cross and
follow the Lord, or choose the thing which we love that may hinder us from the goal of salvation
(whether it is money, family relations, friendship, etc).
1 Samuel 22-28
1. Why did David spare Saul? (1 Samuel 24, 26) Recommended Psalms: 18, 57, 42
2. What lessons can we draw from the story about David and the Holy Bread? (1 Samuel
21)
3. How does Jonathans loyalty to David affect Sauls actions? (1 Samuel 22, 23) Recom-
mended Psalms: 52, 54, 63
David shows how truly righteous he is. Despite Sauls attempts to kill David, even though
329
David has done nothing wrong to the king, and despite several opportunities to harm or kill
Saul, David recognizes that King Saul was anointed by God and refuses to harm the Lords
anointed. David proclaims: The Lord forbid that I should do this thing to my master, the
Lords anointed, to stretch out my hand against him. Davids love for the Lord is so great that
he will not harm anything the Lord has blessed, even though it is apparent that Saul is not a
good king after the Lords heart, and even after David knows that he has secretly been anointed
by Samuel to be the king of Israel. Davids righteousness is further manifested when Saul dies in
1 Samuel 31, as David mourns the loss of the one who tried to killed him. Notice that, although
David perceives that he should not harm the Lords anointed, Saul cannot see that David is now
the anointed king. David sees by the Holy Spirit, but Saul only looks at David by the eyes of
the world - in David, Saul only sees a young man who stands to threaten his security as king.
Although Saul thinks that the Lord is still on his side (1 Samuel 23:21), in fact the Spirit has
left him (1 Samuel 16:14). When the Holy Spirit leaves a person, there is room for distressing
spirits and demons to inhabit the person and corrupt his actions, just as it occurred with Saul
(1 Samuel 16). The vacancy in Sauls heart and his lack of faithfulness to the Lord leads him to
his downfall and bitter death. On the other hand, Jonathan, Sauls son, recognizes that David
is the Lords anointed, and he willingly gives up his inheritance to the throne of the kingdom of
Israel to follow and protect David (1 Samuel 20).
Notice the language used in 1 Samuel 24:11-12 and 1 Samuel 26:19 David prefigures
our Lord Jesus as a type of Christ. Like our Lord Christ, David is persecuted though he
has committed no wrong. David attempts to protect the one who persecutes him, just as our
Lord begged the Father for the forgiveness of those who crucified Him. Like David, Christ was
anointed by the Holy Spirit, as He fulfilled the prophecy of Isaiah 61:1-2: The Spirit of the
Lord is upon Me, because He has anointed Me to preach the gospel.
Lesson: Sauls actions illustrate envy, which is different from jealousy. Envy is a destructive
jealousy - it seeks the destruction of the other. Good jealousy, on the other hand, would seek
self-improvement. St. Paul wrote, Good is the jealousy that leads to betterment.
2. What lessons can we draw from the story about David and the Holy Bread? (1 Samuel
21)
Recall in Genesis 14, the high priest Melchizedek visits Abraham and shares bread and
wine with him. Melchizedek (literally, king of righteousness) was the last high priest-king
330
mentioned in the Old Testament; later, the Levites took up the priestly duties to serve the Lord
and the tabernacle, but no Levite ever became a priest-king. Throughout the kingship of David,
we will see a recurring theme: David attempts to unite the roles of kingship and priesthood
again, following in the order of the high priest Melchizedek. Why? Because David recognizes
that Gods covenant with Abraham regarding a kingship in the land of Israel (Genesis 17) is
not an ordinary earthly kingdom, but rather it is a kingdom to be led by men of God, by
His priests and righteous servants (much like the conquering of the promised land could only
be led by priests and servants of the Lord). This is why David fulfills the covenant regarding
kingship coming from Abrahams seed, while Saul does not: David is after Gods heart because
he realizes that the kingdom the Lord seeks to establish is not merely an earthly kingdom. The
divine kingship culminates and is completed by the true divine King who comes from the line of
David and serves as the Lords High Priest, who is Christ our Lord. We will look closely at this
theme later. Thus, in 1 Samuel 21, we see David enter the tabernacle and eat the showbread,
which is the holy bread of the Tabernacle. Interestingly, our Lord Jesus points to this story
when the Pharisees accuse Him of breaking the law by plucking heads of grain to eat on the
Sabbath (Matthew 12:1-8). David eating the Holy Bread shows us that he is acting in a priestly
capacity by eating of bread that is not for common people, but is only accessible to priests
(Leviticus 24:5-9; Numbers 28:9-10). David also provides an example of a blameless violation
of the Sabbath rule, which is what Christ points to when the Pharisees accuse Him of breaking
the Lords ceremonial law. Our Lord Jesus demonstrates to us that we cannot rigidly adhere to
ceremonial law (Sabbath, circumcision, etc...) while displacing human need or service to God;
when we follow the law, we follow it by the spirit of the law as well as the letter of the law.
Christ uses this story to teach the Pharisees that He desires mercy and love over empty rigid
adherence to the ceremonial law, and that if David, the beloved king of the Jews, violated the
Sabbath in a permissible way, how much more so should they revere Jesus, the True King? The
showbread also suggests the Bread from heaven (Christ - see John 6) which is set upon the holy
table of the house of God (the church) as an offering, and those who truly seek the Lord and
labor for Him may partake of this Bread.
3. How does Jonathans loyalty to David affect Sauls actions? (1 Samuel 22, 23)
When Saul discovers Jonathans loyalty to David, for Saul this is the straw that broke the
camels back, and Saul in his frustration lashes out at the priests. Saul discovers that Ahimelech
had helped to hide David, and Saul goes completely mad and slaughters the priests of the Lord.
331
Why? Because Saul is fearful of losing his throne, and even his own son Jonathan was willing
to give up his inheritance as king in recognition that David should be the king of Israel. Notice
who murders the priests? Doeg, who is Sauls dedicated servant and an Edomite. Recall in
Genesis 27:40, when Isaac gave blessings to his sons Esau (renamed Edom) and Jacob (renamed
Israel), he stated that Edom would always serve Israel, and it would come to pass that when
Edom became restless (restless, perhaps, because of fear of losing ones kingdom or power), it
will strike out against Israel. Doegs actions in murdering the priests to protect King Sauls
security upon the throne are very similar to actions taken by another Edomite - King Herod -
in murdering children of Israel in an attempt to prevent Jesus from taking his throne (Matthew
2:16). When Doeg the Edomite told King Saul that Ahimelech was hiding David, David said
of him: God shall likewise destroy you forever, you love evil more than good (Psalm 52:5,3).
Because of his fear, envy and greed to secure his kingdom, Saul begins again to persecute and
chase David. Even though David spares Sauls life, Saul completely loses the peace of the Holy
Spirit and is driven into a mad frenzy to kill David. When Saul calls upon the Lord for help
and the Lord does not answer, Saul betrays his faith in God by taking a desperate action - he
consults a medium, who is not even a Jewish prophetess but rather practices magic, to figure out
what he should do. For this action, Saul would ultimately lose his life (1 Chronicles 10:13-14).
1. Saul is only one of two people who commits suicide in the Bible (the other is Judas
Iscariot). What led Saul to commit suicide? What was Davids reaction? (1 Samuel 31; 2
Samuel 1; 1 Chronicles 10)
2. How do Davids actions in times of war show his righteousness? (2 Samuel 3,4) Give
us help from trouble, For vain is the help of man. Through God we will do valiantly, For it is
He who shall tread down our enemies (Psalm 60:11-12).
1. Saul is only one of two people who commits suicide in the Bible (the other is Judas
Iscariot). What led Saul to commit suicide? What was Davids reaction? (1 Samuel 31; 2 Samuel
1; 1 Chronicles 10). In many ways, Saul is similar to the figure of Judas because he betrays
the Lord and the Lords anointed several times: by refusing to follow Gods commandment to
kill Agag; (2) by consulting a medium (who practices sorcery); (3) and by committing suicide.
The Scripture tells us that Saul died for his unfaithfulness which he had committed against
the Lord, because he did not keep the word of the Lord. He did not inquire of the Lord
332
(1 Chronicles 10:13-14). Judas committed suicide because he could not live with his guilt of
betraying the Lord. Out of his selfish ambition and greed, being blinded by the world and its
desires, Judas betrayed our Lord Jesus into the hands of His enemies. Likewise, Saul committed
suicide out of his shame after he had betrayed the Lord several times, out of his greed to hold on
to a kingdom which no longer belonged to him. Both Judas and Saul failed to see the glory of
the True Kingdom which was promised to those who are willing to follow Gods commandments
and follow the Lords anointed. St. John tells us only those who follow the will of the Lord,
and resist against the world and its desires, will inherit the kingdom of God and abide forever
(1 John 2:17). The Church views suicide as the final sin in a succession of a multitude of sins.
Suicide is the culmination of hopelessness and lack of trust in the Lord, when a person has
abandoned all hope for Gods work in his life and takes his life out of Gods hands by ending
it. Saul and Judas did not allow the mysteries of the Lord to work in their lives, and they
completely shut God and His teachings out of their hearts and minds. Imagine how Saul and
Judas felt: they turned away from the Lord and sought fulfillment from the world, which led
to their complete inner emptiness. At the same time, they prevented the Lord from working in
their hearts, which only increased their feelings of emptiness and desperation. Their last action
- taking their own lives - served as a final testimony to completely shutting God out of their
lives. Recall that after Sauls first act of disobedience, Samuel prophesied to Saul that the Lord
would snatch his kingdom away from him and give it to his neighbor (David). What does David
do when he hears the news of Sauls death? After being persecuted and chased, we expect that
David would want to gloat over Sauls death in triumph. Rather, David shows his righteousness,
humility and great love for the Lord; he mourns Sauls death with lamentations, weeping and
fasting. Why? David mourns and weeps bitterly not because of his love for Saul, but out of his
love for the Lord. Saul was anointed by God, and even though Saul betrayed the Lord, David
loves the Lord so much that he loves everything the Lords hands have touched and blessed. In
this way, David prefigures our Lord Jesus, because he loves the one who tries to kill him and
mourns over his persecutors. Our Lord Jesus continues to lament over His children who turn
away from Him or cease to abide in His love.
Lesson: Our Lord commanded us that when someone wrongs us, we must not triumph
when that person stumbles or and we must not try to retaliate, but instead give the person our
other cheek, in order to achieve humility before the Lord. Indeed, David perfectly illustrates
what it means to love our own enemies and even enemies of the Lord, as they are all Gods
creations: Love your enemies, bless those who curse you, do good to those who spite you, and
333
pray for those who spitefully use you and persecute you, that you may be sons of your Father
in Heaven (Matthew 5:44-45).
2. How do Davids actions in times of war show his righteousness? (2 Samuel 3-4)
When Saul died and a dispute arose as to who would become the next king of Israel, David
showed how his love for the Lord prevailed over all things, even over any desire to win the battle
to become king of all Israel as it was promised to him. Although David always kept the goal
of the kingship in front of his eyes, Davids actions illustrate how David is different from King
Saul. While Saul was the first king of Israel, he was not the king of Israel who would fulfill
Gods covenant with Abraham (Genesis 17). As we read earlier, Saul was not a king after Gods
heart. God promised that Abrahams descendants would bear a line of kings, but God was not
speaking about mere earthly kings. Rather, as we learned earlier, God meant to establish a
line of priest-kings, and of this the Lord said: I will raise up for Myself a faithful priest who
shall do according to what is in My heart and My mind (1 Samuel 2:35). Thus, David tries
to fulfill Gods promise to Abraham by becoming a priest-king, following in the tradition of
the High Priest King Melchizedek. Even though David is involved in a battle over the throne
of Israel, he always attempts to do according to what is in the Lords heart and mind. When
Joab, Davids servant, kills Abner to avenge his brothers death, David rebuked his servant and
mourned for Abner. When Ishbosheth was killed, David explained to his men that, just as he
could not rejoice over the death of the Lords anointed, he could not rejoice over the death of
innocent person, and executed those who killed Ishbosheth (1 Samuel 4:11). If we think about
it, how would a priest-king lead a battle if he wanted to lead it according to Gods heart and
mind? He would not seek blood of innocent people, or gloat over the death of an enemy, but
would rather ascribe to the kingdom meekly and righteously. In the same way, our Lord Jesus
built up His kingdom (the Church) in a meek fashion - look at the Beatitudes in Matthew 5,
which prescribe the requirements of citizenship in Christs kingdom on earth. Christ did not
look for the physically valiant or politically savvy to be citizens of His kingdom - He looked to
the qualities of our spirits and hearts. We will explore this theme and the similarities between
Davids kingdom and Christs kingdom in the future.
334
The Lords Feasts
Th Coptic Church celebrates 7 major Lords feasts and 7 minor Lords feasts.
1. Annunciation - This feast is the Annunciation of the birth of Christ by Archangel Gabriel
to Saint Mary. It is celebrated on 29th Baramhat (April 7th). The Gospel reading is Luke
1:26-38. Also, on the 29th of each Coptic month (except during the Great Lent, the 50
days of the Holy Pentecost, and the month of Kiahk), the Gospel reading for the Divine
Liturgy is the Annunciation of Archangel Gabriel to Saint Mary that she would conceive
Jesus through the Holy Spirit (Luke 1:26-38).
2. Nativity - This is also known as Christmas. It is the feast of the the birth of Christ. It is
celebrated on 29th Kiahk (January 7th). The Divine Liturgy for this feast starts the night
of January 6th and concludes after midnight on the 7th. The Gospel reading is Matthew
2:1-12.
3. Epiphany (Theophany) - This is the feast of the baptism of Christ. The word Epiphany
means manifestation. The word Theophany means manifestation of God. The Feast of
the Epiphany is celebrated on 11th Tubah (January 19th), and is always 12 days after
the Nativity feast. The Divine Liturgy for this feast starts at night on January 18th and
concludes after midnight on January 19th. The Gospel reading is John 1:18-34.
4. Palm Sunday - This is the feast where Christ rode through Jerusalem on a donkey and
the people layed down palm branches in the street for Him. Palm Sunday marks the
beginning of the Holy (Passion) Week. Palm Sunday is recorded in all four Gospels, and
thus there are four Gospel readings on Palm Sunday. These are Matthew 21:1-17, Mark
11:1-11, Luke 19:29-48, and John 12:12-19.
5. Resurrection - This feast celebrates the resurrection of Christ from the dead. It is also
called Easter. It is celebrated the Sunday following Palm Sunday. The Divine Liturgy for
this feast is done on Saturday night, the night before Easter Sunday. The Gospel reading
is John 20:1-18.
335
6. Ascension - This feast takes place 40 days after the Resurrection. It is the feast of the
Ascension of our Lord to heaven. It is always 10 days before Pentecost. Pentecost is
celebrated on a Sunday, and thus the Ascension is always on a Thursday. The Gospel
reading is Luke 24:36-53.
7. Pentecost - This feast takes place 50 days after the Resurrection and 10 days after the
Ascension. This feast is always celebrated on a Sunday. It is the feast of the coming of
the Holy Spirit as tongues of fire (Acts 2:1-21), and this feast marks the beginning of the
Early Church. The Gospel reading for this feast day is John 15:26 - 16:15.
1. Circumcision - According to Jewish custom, male children were circumcised 8 days after
birth. The Feast of the Circumcision is celebrated on 6th Tubah (January 14th). The
Gospel reading is Luke 2:21-39.
2. Entry into the Temple - This feast is celebrated 40 days after the birth of Christ. It
is celebrated on 8th Amshir (February 16th). Christ entered the temple 40 days after his
birth. The Gospel reading is Luke 2:21-39. In Leviticus 12:1-5, we read about the days of
purification for women after giving birth to male or female children. For male children,
the mothers days of purification are 40 days and for female children, they are 80 days.
3. Flight into Egypt - This is the feast celebrating the fleeing of Jesus, Saint Mary, and
Joseph into Egypt until the death of Herod. It is celebrated on 24th Bashans (June 1st).
The Gospel reading is Matthew 2:13-23.
4. The Wedding at Cana - This feast celebrates Jesuss first miracle after starting His
ministry when He was 30 years old. The wedding at Cana is where Jesus turned water
into wine at the request of Saint Mary. It is celebrated on 13th Tubah (January 22). The
Gospel reading is John 2:1-11.
5. Transfiguration - This feast is where Jesus was transfigured and talked with Moses and
Elijah. The Apostles Peter, James and John witnessed the transfiguration. It is celebrated
on 13th Misra (August 19th). The Gospel reading is Mark 9:2-13.
6. Holy Thursday - This is Thursday of the Holy Week where Jesus had the Last Supper
with His disciples and then washed their feet. The Last Supper is recorded in all four
336
Gospels. It is the only day of the Holy week in which there is a Divine Liturgy. The
Gospel reading for the Liturgy is Matthew 26:20-29.
7. First Sunday after Easter - This feast celebrates Jesus appearing to His disciples for
the second time one week after His resurrection (on Sunday) in the upper room, where
Saint Thomas was present, touched the hands and side of Jesus, and believed. This feast is
sometimes called the Sunday of Saint Thomas. This feast is always celebrated the Sunday
after Easter Sunday. The Gospel reading is John 20:19-31.
337
The Flight into Egypt
A magnificent event occurred between the Incarnation and the baptism of Christ. This is
the Flight into Egypt by Joseph, Mary and Jesus, which is recorded in Matthew 2:13-23. This
event is celebrated by our church on the 24th of Bashans (June 1st). The original celebration of
this event took place, according to ancient church tradition, on the first Sunday after Christmas,
and this is in fact the Gospel reading of the first Sunday after Christmas.
We want to understand the connections between the Old Testament and the New Testament
regarding the flight into Egypt and the prophecies regarding the birth of Christ.
1. Connection Between the Christmas Gospel and the Flight into Egypt - The
gospel reading of Christmas about the Magi is directly linked to the flight into Egypt, and
Herod and divine inspiration play a central role in each.
The Magi were divinely warned in a dream that they should not return to Herod, and not
to take the same route back from which they had come (Matthew 2:12). This was to avoid
meeting Herod who hated the Christ child and wanted to kill Him. Herod would never
know His birth place, nor the location of His home nor who His kindred were. The divine
inspiration then immediately mentions how an angel of the Lord appeared to Joseph in a
dream to wake up and take the Child and His mother and flee to Egypt away from the
presence of Herod who intended to kill Him (Matthew 2:13-14).
2. Prophetic Basis Underlying the Event of the Flight into Egypt - It is critical to
relate the flight into Egypt to the prophecies about this event in the Old Testament. It
is important to see this so that we can understand and believe that Christ is the ultimate
end of all the prophecies and books of the Old Testament with all their narratives and
incidents. Thus the Old and New Testaments are entirely about Christ!
The story of the flight into Egypt is recorded in Matthew 2:13-23. St. Matthews gospel
was written in the style for the Jews. St. Matthew was writing primarily for the Jews.
For the event of the flight into Egypt, as recorded in Matthew 2:13-23, we see that the
exact same event occurs with Moses in the Old Testament (Exodus 2:15, 3:2, 4:19-20). In
Exodus, 2:15, we read, When Pharaoh heard of this matter, he sought to kill Moses. But
Moses fled from the face of Pharaoh and dwelt in the land of Midian; and he sat down by
338
a well. Compare this with Matthew 2:13. Also, in Exodus 3:2, we read, And the angel
of the Lord appeared to him in a flame of fire from the midst of a bush. Compare this
with Matthew 2:13. In Exodus 4:19, we read And the Lord said to Moses in Midian, Go
return to Egypt; for all the men who were seeking your life are dead. Compare this with
Matthew 2:19-20. Thus, in these two events we notice several things:
Relationship between Jesus and Moses - Pharaoh sought to kill Moses and Herod
sought to kill Jesus. An angel of the Lord appeared to Moses, and an angel of the
Lord appeared to Joseph. The Lord told Moses to return back to Egypt and Moses
did. The angel of the Lord told Joseph to return back to Israel with the Christ child,
and they did.
Relationship between Egypt and Pharaoh with Israel and Christ - The origin of bitter
slavery, oppression and murder are transformed into Jerusalem and King of Jerusalem.
Egypt is transformed into a city of peace, and slavery and oppression to sin has come
to an end with the coming of Christ.
3. Writing Style of St. Matthew - St. Matthew writes about the event into its prophetic
form, quoting them intact. For example, he uses the plural form for those who sought the
Childs life are dead, (Matthew 2:20). He says this although Herod alone sought Jesuss
life. St. Matthew here is writing exactly as in Exodus, For all the men who were seeking
your life are dead, (Exodus 4:19). We also find St. Matthew using words like withdrew
or fled just as they occur in the story of Moses. For example, in Exodus 2:15, we read,
But Moses fled from the face of Pharaoh. St. Matthew uses these words frequently in his
gospel. For example, in Matthew 2:20, we read, He withdrew to the district of Galilee.
In Matthew 4:12, we read, When Jesus heard that John had been arrested, He withdrew
into Galilee.
4. Joseph of the Old Testament and Jesus - We discussed earlier the parallels between
the Joseph of the Old Testament and Jesus.
339
5. Joseph of the Old Testament and Joseph of the New Testament - There are
also major parallels between Joseph of the Old Testament and the Joseph of the New
Testament.
6. Pharaoh and Herod - There are major parallels between the life of Pharaoh and the life
of Herod. Pharaoh gave orders to kill the male children out of envy and fear of the growth
of the Israelites and their dominion. Herod hated Christ because he heard the Magi say
that He was the King of the Jews (Matthew 2:2). Therefore Herod became envious and
hated Christ and killed all the male children 2 years and younger. After killing the male
children, both Herod and Pharaoh went into a state of derision and paranoia and started
killing everyone. We are warned of this in Psalm 2:2-5. After the male children were killed,
Herod and Pharaoh went on a killing rampage of their own family, and their lives were
destroyed. Herod killed his wifes grandmother and her brother, his own wife, her mother,
and two of his sons.
7. The Innocent Children Slaughtered - When the innocent children were slaughtered,
Matthew 2:18 makes a reference to Jeremiah 31:15, which reads A voice was heard in
Ramah, lamentation, weeping, and great mourning, Rachel weeping for her children, re-
fusing to be comforted, because they were no more.
8. Return To Israel - The angel of the Lord appeared to Joseph in a dream again, and
said Rise, take the Child and His mother and go to the land of Israel (Matthew 2:20).
We first note that Herods death in Israel is the death of the last false king of Jerusalem.
Christ has been the King of Jerusalem since His return to Israel. Christs return to Israel
is an event also experienced in the life of Moses, when the Lord said to Moses in Exodus
4:22-23, And you shall say to Pharaoh, thus says the Lord: Israel is My son. My first-
born. So I say to you, let My son go that he may serve Me. The prophet Hosea also
prophesied about Christs return to Israel in Hosea 11:1, When Israel was a child, I loved
him, and out of Egypt I called My son.
340
9. He Shall be Called a Nazarene - In Matthew 2:23 we read, And he came and dwelt
in a city called Nazareth, that it might be fulfilled which was spoken by the prophets, He
shall be called a Nazarene. Joseph fled to Galilee since it was more safe and peaceful.
He then became an inhabitant of Nazareth, as did Jesus, and thus was called a Nazarene.
The word Nazareth is Hebrew and is derived from the word meaning branch. It is not a
primary branch which originally formed the tree, but rather a tender secondary branch
sprouting on the side of the tree, close to its root. Nazareth, then, was a secondary, weak
city of low status, and got its name from being an insignificant place.
Recall when Nathanael mocked Phillip when he was told that Jesus came from Nazareth.
Nathanael said Can anything good come out of Nazareth? (John 1:46). Thus Christ
shows us His humility by being a Nazarene. It was a title of humility.
The prophecies in the Old Testament make several references to Nazareth and Christ
through the branch. In Isaiah 11:1 we read, There shall come forth a shoot from the
stump of Jesse, and a branch shall grow out of his roots. Just before this, Zechariah
describes how the Lord will cut off all the branches, and only the trunk shall be left, from
which will sprout, My servant the branch (Zechariah 3:8).
Also, in Isaiah 10:33 we read, Behold the Lord, the Lord of hosts will lop the boughs
with terrifying power, the great in height will be hewn down, and the lofty will be brought
low.
In Jeremiah 23:5, we read, Behold the days are coming, says the Lord, when I will raise
up for David a righteous branch, and he shall reign as king and deal wisely, and shall
execute justice and righteousness in the land.
In Zechariah 6:12-13, we read, Behold the man whose name is the branch, for he shall
grow up in his place, and he shall build the temple of the Lord, and shall bear royal honor,
and shall sit and rule upon his throne. And there shall be a priest by his throne.
Christ Himself referred to Himself as the branch when He said, Every branch in Me that
does not bear fruit He will take away; and every branch that bears fruit He prunes, that
it may bear more fruit (John 15:2).
10. Descriptions of Christ from the Old Testament - The following are descriptions of
Christ in the Old Testament given chronologically in time.
341
Jacob called Him Shiloh (Genesis 49:10).
To Moses, He was the Passover Lamb and the Lifted-up One (Exodus 12:21, 15:2).
David called Him Lion of Judah and good Shepherd (Revelation 5:5).
Daniel called Him the Prince and the Smiting Stone (Daniel 2:34-35, 8:25, 9:25).
And John the Baptist said, Look, there is the Lamb of God who takes away the sin of
the world (John 1:19).
342
The Gospel Readings of Lent
1. Pre-Lent Sunday - This is the Sunday right before the beginning of Lent. Lent always
starts on a Monday. The Gospel reading for Pre-Lent Sunday is Matthew 6:1-18. The
three main themes in this reading are
Fasting
Prayer
The Pre-Lent Gospel reading sets the stage for our spiritual life during the period of
Lent. The Pre-Lent Gospel reading talks about doing these three things in humility,
and in particular, praying and fasting in secret and without recognition as well as doing
charitable deeds without being noticed.
2. First Sunday of Lent - The Gospel reading for the first Sunday of lent is a continuation
of the Pre-Lent Sunday Gospel reading. It is Matthew 6:19-33. The main themes in this
Gospel reading are:
Focus on the heavenly rather than the earthly. We read in Matthew 6:19-21, Do not
lay up for yourselves treasures in earth, where moth or rust destroy and where thieves
break in and steal. But lay up for yourselves treasures in heaven, where neither moth
nor rust destroys and where thieves do not break in and steal. For where your treasure
is, there your heart will be also.
343
Do not worry (verses 25-33). During the period of lent, we are to focus on heavenly
things and not worry about the earthly things. We are to not worry about our
troubles, our possessions, our health, our jobs, our financial security, and our cares of
this life. Such worries distract us from fasting, prayer, repentance, and our heavenly
goal.
3. Second Sunday of Lent: The Temptation on the Mount- The Gospel reading for
the second Sunday of lent is Matthew 4:1-11, where Jesus is tempted by the devil after
having fasted 40 days in the wilderness. This Gospel passage teaches us several things:
The importance of fasting in overcoming temptation and sin, and in particular, over-
coming the devil (Matthew 4:2).
Being filled with the Holy Spirit as a result of fasting. Fasting raises our spiritual
awareness, and as a result, the Holy Spirit is active in our life (Matthew 4:1, Luke
4:1).
We see a one on one confrontation between Christ and Satan, in which Christ is
victorious. This gives us great comfort and joy in knowing that Satan is defeated,
doomed, and his days are numbered. Christ is always victorious and He will be
victorious again in His second coming.
This Gospel passage shows us the trickery and deceit of the devil. He twists words
and meanings to fit his own definitions. He even twists words and meanings from the
Bible.
Satan tempts Jesus three times here: i) he commands Him to turn the stone into bread,
ii) he commands Him to jump off the pinnacle of the temple, and iii) he commands Him
to worship him. The first temptation is an attack on the body, for Jesus was hungry after
His fast, and the devil tempted him with food so that Jesus would satisfy His physical
needs. The second temptation was an attack on the soul, in which the devil tells Jesus to
jump, thus defying the laws of gravity and defying the capability of humanity. The second
temptation is more serious than the first. Then the third temptation is the ultimate one,
and most serious, in which the devil asks Christ to worship him, thus commanding Him to
be in complete submission to him. In these temptations, we see that the devil is not only
cunning and deceptive, but we see that he is also a liar. He tells Jesus that he will give
Him the kingdoms of the world if He worships him (Luke 4:6). This, of course, is a lie,
344
since the devil does not have authority whatsoever over anything of this world, but rather
it is Christ who has the authority over all. This is why Christ calls the devil, the father
of lies (John 8:44).
The temptation of Jesus on the mount is recorded in three of the four Gospels. It is
recorded in Matthew 4:1-11, Mark 1:12-13, and Luke 4:1-13.
4. The Third Sunday of Lent: The Parable of the Prodigal Son - The Gospel reading
for the third Sunday of Lent is Luke 15:11-32. This is a very spiritually rich parable with
so many lessons. It is a parable and thus not an actual event that occurred. The Gospel
of Luke contains most of the parables of Jesus. The parable of the prodigal son is only
found in the Gospel of St. Luke. This Gospel reading tells us many things:
Confession and Repentance - The prodigal son comes to himself (Luke 15:17) and
realizes his sins and wrong ways. As a result, he repents and returns home to his
father after having lived an immoral life.
Arrogance and Humility - The prodigal son leaves his fathers house an arrogant
person, who demanded his inheritance (Luke 15:11), and he returns home a humble
person only wanting to be a servant in his fathers house (Luke 15:19).
The Loving father - This parable also tells about about a loving father who accepts
his son unconditionally without any questions or reservations. He sees him from afar,
immediately accepts him, gives him the best of what he has, and prepares a big
celebration for him. The father also deals with the elder son in a very loving way.
The Sins of the Tongue - The elder son criticizes and maligns his younger brother to
his father, and he is jealous of him. We see here the importance of the sins of the
tongue, and the sins of jealousy and hypocrisy. The Catholic Epistle reading for the
third Sunday of Lent is James 3:1-12, which talks about the sins of the tongue.
5. The Fourth Sunday of Lent: The Samaritan Woman - The Gospel reading for the
fourth Sunday of Lent is John 4:1-42. It is a story of repentance in which Jesus has a one
on one personal encounter with a person whose life changes as a result of this encounter.
This story is only found in the Gospel of John. This Gospel reading tells us many things:
Repentance - the Samaritan woman, who was a liar, an adulterer, and a person who
had lived an immoral life having five husbands, repents and preaches Christ to her
345
own people. Repentance results in freedom from the slavery of sin, and the Samaritan
woman demonstrates her freedom by eagerly telling her own people about Christ, as
if she had just been freed from jail.
The love of Christ - the way Jesus deals with this woman was critical in her repentance.
Jesus is patient, He does not condemn or accuse, but rather He uplifts and encourages.
Jesus was a Jew and Jews had no dealings with Samaritans. Jesus shows us that He
is here to break the barriers of communication in order to win our hearts. It is Jesus
who initiates the conversation and our relationship with Him.
Jesus slowly reveals Himself to those who are ready and able to accept Him. He does
not tell the Samaritan woman that He is Christ until she is spiritually ready. He
gradually builds up to it, educating and teaching her in His loving way until she is
prepared to accept Him as the Christ.
In verses 1-9, Jesus initiates dialogue, in verses 10-15, He tries to gently teach and
educate and the Samaritan woman is still hostile towards Him. In verses 15-21,
Christs loving ways begin to have an impact on her, as the woman begins to take a
hard look at herself and examine herself. In verses 22-26, Christ teaches her about
Christianity and she accepts it, and in verse 26, Christ reveals Himself to her.
6. The Fifth Sunday of Lent: The Man at the Pool of Bethesda - The Gospel
reading for the fifth Sunday of Lent is John 5:1-18. Again, this is a story of repentance
that happens after Jesus has a one on one personal encounter with the man at the pool.
This story is only found in the Gospel of John. There are several things to note in this
Gospel passage.
It illustrates mans emptiness, helplessness, and loneliness without God. The man at
the pool says, I have no man (John 5:7). The man at the pool was helpless for 38
years because it is only Christ who can help and fill the emptiness in our life. No
ordinary man can do it.
Jesus asks the man if he wants to be healed (John 5:6). Jesus always respects our
free will and gives us the choice to repent or not. He never imposes or forces His will
upon us, regardless of our condition. Before He makes us well, He always asks us if
we want to be made well. This tells us that repentance is really a two way street. We
have to want it, and when we decide we want it, Christ will give it.
346
Jesus goes on to tell the man at the pool, Rise, take up your bed and walk (John
5:8). It is as if Jesus tells the man, lets do this together. That is, miracles happen
when our will and Gods power cooperate to make them possible. The man at the
pool could of made up excuses and said that he has been in this condition for 38
years, and so why should things change now? But he didnt. He made the effort to
get up and he had faith, and working as a team with Christ, he was able to get up
and be made well.
Christ healed the man on the Sabbath (John 5:9). The pharisees could not accept
this because they were bound to the laws and were hypocrites. They were completely
blind to acts of love and compassion. Their hearts were hardened and they could not
understand the compassion and love Christ had for humanity. Jesus heals the man
on the Sabbath to show us that a law without love is no law at all, and therefore
should be broken. He also shows us that He never stops working for us, and that He
is always performing miracles and healing our sickness.
7. The Sixth Sunday of Lent: The Man Born Blind - This Gospel reading is also from
the Gospel of John, and again involves another one on one personal encounter with Christ.
It is in John 9:1-38. We therefore see that the fourth, fifth, and sixth Sunday Gospel
readings for Lent are all from the Gospel of John and all involve one on one personal
encounters with Christ that completely change a persons life. The Gospel readings of
the fifth and sixth Sundays involve miracles that Jesus performed. Christ was asked to
perform a miracle in the Gospel reading of the second Sunday, but He did not. This story
is only found in the Gospel of John. There are several things to note in this passage:
The man born blind had not committed any sin, and so this is not a reading about
repentance, as were the readings of the Prodigal son, the Samaritan woman and the
man at the pool of Bethesda. The main aim of this reading is that Gods glory is
revealed and that we see that He is the light of the world (John 9:5). Thus, Christ
heals the blind man to glorify God (John 9:2-3).
The blind man is a symbol of humanity who are blind to Christ and are in need of
illumination from Christ, and this is why Christ says, I am the light of the world
in John 9:5. The clay and saliva are a reminder that all of humanity was made from
the dust of the ground (Genesis 1:26), and that Christ wishes to restore man to a
new state. The clay and saliva symbolize the restoration of man to his new state.
347
The pool of siloam was quite far from the temple, so the blind man had to walk a
long way to wash his eyes in order to see. It shows us the great faith that he had,
and that he would indeed see if he did as Jesus said.
This Gospel passage also tells us about those who see and those who do not see. It
gives us a contrast between the personality of the man born blind (one who sees)
and the personality of the pharisees (ones who do not see). The pharisees question
the blind man four separate times about this miracle, in John 9:10, 15, 17, 26. The
blind man responds by saying that If this man were not from God, He could do
nothing. He is a witness to Christ. The more the blind man is pressed, the stronger
he becomes in his witness and faith.
The pharisess try to discredit the miracle by lying and saying that the man was not
blind from birth (John 9:18), by discrediting Jesus and saying that He is not from
God because He does not keep the Sabbath (John 9:16), and by saying blasphemy
against Christ by calling Him a sinner (John 9:24).
We see here that as the story progresses, the man born blind becomes more aware of
who Jesus is and develops a stronger faith and belief, whereas the pharisees criticism
of Jesus becomes more sharp and hostile and they lapse into a deeper darkness.
The man born blind becomes a real witness for Christ in this story. He witnessed
Christ before his neighbors and the pharisees, and as a result, he was thrown out
of the temple (John 9:34). He was a man of faith and courage. His parents, on the
other hand, denied Christ out of their fear. They did not witness Christ and put the
responsibility on their son. Thus, this Gospel passage is a great lesson on witness
and denial of Christ.
As in the parable of the prodigal son, the story of the Samaritan woman, and the man
at the pool of Bethesda, Jesus meets the man born blind after his conversion. The
man born blind must of been worshiping in the temple right before Jesus met him,
because we read that the pharisees had thrown him out (John 9:34). It is this one
on one encounter that Jesus has with the man born blind that parallels the Gospel
readings of the two previous Sundays (the Samaritan woman and the man at the pool
of Bethesda). It is here that Jesus reveals to him that He is the Son of God (John
9:37). This only comes after that mans eyes were opened physically and spiritually,
and thus he was now ready for spiritual illumination. The man born blind says,
348
Who is He Lord, that I may believe in Him (John 9:36). The man, now, seeing His
divinity, worshiped Him (John 9:38).
Jesuss coming brought judgment (John 9:39) by increasing the accountability of those
who saw and heard Him, but did not believe. The brilliance of Christs light becomes
an illumination to some, bit a blinding glare to others (John 9:41).
8. The Seventh Sunday of Lent: Palm Sunday - Palm Sunday marks the beginning of
the Holy week, and it is on this day that the highest honor and respect are paid to Jesus.
The Psalms are sung in the Singarian tune, and the liturgy is said in the most joyous tune.
The events of Palm Sunday are recorded in all four Gospels. They are given in Matthew
21:1-17, Mark 11:1-11, Luke 19:29-48, and John 12:12-19. We will talk about Palm Sunday
and the Holy Week in a separate lesson.
349
Epiphany (Theophany)
1. The Epiphany (or Theophany) commemorates the baptism of our Lord Jesus by St. John
the Baptist in the river Jordan.
2. The word Epiphany means manifestation. The word Theophany means manifestation of
God.
3. The baptism of Christ is recorded in Matthew 3:13-17, Mark 1:9-11, and Luke 3:21-22.
4. We read in Matthew 3:13-17, Then Jesus came from Galilee to John at the Jordan to be
baptized by him. And John tried to prevent Him, saying, I have need to be baptized by
You, and are You coming to me? But Jesus answered and said to him, Permit it to be so
now, for thus it is fitting for us to fulfill all righteousness. Then he allowed Him. Then
Jesus, when He had been baptized, came up immediately from the water, and behold, the
heavens were opened to Him, and He saw the spirit of God descending like a dove and
alighting upon Him. And suddenly a voice came from heaven saying, This is My beloved
Son, in Whom I am well pleased.
5. We see the manifestation of the Holy Trinity at the baptism of Christ: God the Father
speaks from heaven, God the Son (Jesus) is being baptized by John, and God the Spirit
(the Holy Spirit) appears in the form of a dove. The baptism of Christ is a great example
of seeing our one God through the Holy Trinity.
6. This manifestation of Christ is different from all the others (birth, magi, and wedding at
Cana), because on this day God reveals Himself fully: He is one in three persons. This
is the mystery which allows us to call on the Father, the Son and the Holy Spirit as one
God. Nothing can be added to this vision.
7. This is why the word Epiphany meaning manifestation was replaced by Theophany in
the Coptic Church meaning manifestation of God, the latter specifying and developing
the meaning of the feast.
8. The Coptic Orthodox Church commemorates only one event in our Lords life at Epiphany:
our Lords baptism. Our Lords first public manifestation or appearance takes place at
His baptism.
350
9. Baptism is the symbol of death and resurrection; Christ came to the earth in order to die
and be raised.
10. Baptism is a symbol of repentance of sin and its forgiveness; Christ came as the Lamb of
God who takes upon Himself the sin of the world in order to take it away.
11. Baptism is a symbol of sanctification; Christ has come to sanctify the whole of creation.
12. Baptism is a symbol, finally, of radical renewal. When one is baptized the old is over and
the new has come. And Christ has appeared on earth to bring all things to an end, and to
make all things new. The act of baptism, therefore, contains in symbol the entire mystery
of Christ, the whole purpose of his coming.
13. At his manifestation in the Jordan, our Lord Jesus, who is made like us in every respect
except for sin, enters into the water to identify with our fallen condition in order to bring
it to an end and to create us anew for life in the kingdom of God.
14. At the river Jordan, God reveals Himself in the person of Jesus. He is the Word of God
incarnate, on Him rests the Holy Spirit from all eternity, the Father witnesses to the
divinity of Christ and proclaims Him to be His only Son: This is my beloved Son with
whom I am well pleased (Matthew 3:17).
15. Baptism and Confirmation (receiving the Holy Spirit) are two sacraments in the Orthodox
Church.
16. Christ did not need to be baptized. He was sinless and already full of the Holy Spirit. He
did it as an example to us so that we can follow His example. The baptism of Christ is a
great example of humility.
17. John the Baptist baptized by water only. That is, Johns baptism did not result in receiving
the Holy Spirit. Our baptism today, through Christs baptism, is a baptism by water and
spirit.
18. We cannot enter the kingdom of God unless we are baptized. Jesus says in John 3:5, Most
assuredly I say to you, unless one is born of water and spirit, he cannot enter the kingdom
of God.
19. Theophany is one of the 7 major feasts of the Coptic Orthodox Church.
351
20. The Coptic Orthodox Church has 7 major feasts and 7 minor feasts for our Lord Jesus.
The 7 major feasts are Annunciation, Christmas (Nativity), Theophany, Palm Sunday,
Resurrection (Easter), Ascension, and Pentecost. The 7 minor Lords feasts are Circumci-
sion, entering the temple, the flight into Egypt, the wedding at Cana, the transfiguration,
Holy Thursday, Sunday of St. Thomas.
352
Nayrouz
The Nayrouz feast is a joyful feast with joyful hymns in the liturgy, which continues until
the Feast of the Cross (17 Tute, September 27th).
Diocletian
Diocletians reign was from 284 AD - 305 AD. The Roman Empire was in control of Egypt
at that time and he was the Roman Emperor for 21 years.
Diocletian outlawed Christianity during his reign, and those who were found practicing
their faith were martyred.
Diocletian came and horrified the entire world, and Egypt in particular, with his violence
and persecutions.
The Egyptian calendar goes back to 4240 BC. Copts restored the calendar with the be-
ginning of Diocletians reign in 284 AD, to commemorate the millions of Coptic martyrs.
His reign is considered a golden era in which the church offered true witnesses to Christ,
when the souls of martyrs departed to paradise.
Thus, the Coptic calendar started in 284 AD, and thus we are now in the year 2004 - 284
+ 1 = 1721 A.M. (Anno Martyri, meaning year of the martyrs).
The Nayrouz feast is also known as the feast of the Martyrs, and the Coptic Church is
often referred to as the Church of the Martyrs.
353
The period from September 11 - September 27 is a very joyful one, and the church an-
nounces her joy and gladness with the martyrs through bearing the cross of our Lord Jesus
Christ. In other words, the sufferings and martyrdom are turned into a source of joy.
Several well known Coptic saints were martyred during Diocletians reign, including Saint
Demiana, Saint George, and Pope Peter I.
Pope Peter I is known as the Seal of Martyrs since he was the last one martyred under the
reign of Diocletian. He is mentioned in the Commemoration of the Saints in the Divine
Liturgy.
One of the Church Fathers writes, If the martyrs of the whole world were put on one arm
of the balance and the martyrs of Egypt on the other, the balance would tilt in favor of
the Egyptians.
The parents of Diocletian were both slaves to Anulinas, a member of the Roman Senate.
His mother named him after the city in which she was born.
After an outstanding display of valor, young Diocletian was granted his emancipation
(freedom); thereafter he worked within the Emperors palace.
Gradually he was promoted through various offices until he became a consul (chief magis-
trate), and later head of the palace guard.
Diocletian fought in the Persian war and was so impressive that he was eventually elected
to the imperial throne.
Diocletian had astounding perseverance for realizing his goals, with a flexibility for varying
the means and great artistry in subserving his skills and the skills of others to the inter-
ests of his ambitions, and in disguising these ambitions with the strongest of pretenses,
pretending them to be for the sake of justice and common interest.
He was mean and hypocritical and at the same time, he was courageous, a flatterer, and
refined. Such contradictory attributes combined into one person render him as one of the
toughest and dangerous sorts.
After Diocletian, Maximinus Daza was emperor from 305 - 313 AD.
354
After Daza, Constantine the Great became Emperor of Rome from 313 AD to 340 AD.
Emperor Constantine issued the Edict of Milan in 313 AD which restored religious freedom
to the Christian Church.
The pharonic Egyptians in 4240 BC were the first in the world who measured time, who
dated the years, and who divided the year into months.
For their record keeping, they used a solar calendar, which was adopted by the rest of the
world.
They (pharonic Egyptians) knew that the year was approximately 365 days long, and they
organized their calendar with precision, dividing it into months with 30 days alloted to
each.
To adjust their solar year so that it would begin on schedule, they added an extra 5 days
to the total of 12 months, which they called the small month.
The Coptic year was divided into 3 seasons. Every season had 4 months, with the season
of the rising of the the Nile coming at the head of all the seasons. After this came the
season of planting and cultivation, and the last was the season of fruit of harvest.
In the Coptic Liturgy, we give a special prayer to each of these three seasons. First is
the prayer for the rising of the waters, then for the crops, and then for the winds and the
fruits. In more recent Liturgy books, these three prayers have now been merged into one
prayer.
Thus, the Coptic year is first and foremost tied to the Nile.
The Coptic year is based on precise stellar observations. Right before sunrise or sunset in
mid-September, one can see a brightly shining star known as Sirius.
Because the appearance of Sirius always preceded the flooding of the Nile, the source of
life and prosperity, the star became an object of adoration to the ancient Egyptians.
355
Sirius appears only once a year and close to the sun, and for this reason, the ancient
Egyptians called it the flood bringer.
Thus, the ancient Egyptians adapted the Coptic year according to the course of the star,
considering the moment of its appearance to be the beginning of the year.
Babah - 30 days
Hatour - 30 days
Tubah - 30 days
Amshir - 30 days
Baramhat - 30 days
Baramoudah - 30 days
Bashans - 30 days
Baounah - 30 days
Abib - 30 days
Misra - 30 days
Church Readings
During the Nayrouz there are special deacons hymns for the Praxis, Psalm, and Gospel
responses. The basic response is Bless the crown of the Year with Your goodness O Lord
...
Gospel readings: The gospel reading for the 5th Sunday of a month is always Luke 9:12-17,
the two fish and the five loaves.
356
On the 29th of each Coptic month (except during the Great Lent, the 50 days of the Holy
Pentecost, and the month of Kiahk), the Gospel reading is the Annunciation of Archangel
Gabriel to Saint Mary that she would conceive Jesus through the Holy Spirit (Luke 1:26-
38).
On the 21st of each Coptic month (except during the Holy 50 days of the Pentecost), we
always commemorate the Virgin Mary in the Synaxarium reading.
On the 12th day of each Coptic month (except during the Holy 50 days of the Pentecost),
we commemorate Archangel Michael in the Synaxarium.
357
The Feast of the Cross
The Feast of the Cross is celebrated twice in the Coptic Orthodox Church: on the 17th of
Tute (September 27th) and the 10th of Baramhat (March 19th).
The Feast of the Cross is a most joyful day in the Coptic Orthodox Church. The Church
sings the hymns and conduct the liturgy in the Hosanna tune, which is the most joyful
tune in the Coptic Church. The Palm Sunday and Feast of the Cross liturgies are both
done in the Hosanna tune.
The tunes in the Coptic Church are: Hosanna, Festal (during the Holy 50 days, minor and
major Lords feasts, from Sept 11-27), Kiahk, Annual, and Lenten.
The Feast of the Cross is not one of the Lords feasts. The Coptic Orthodox observes
7 major Lords feasts and 7 minor Lords feasts. The major Lords feasts are the An-
nunciation (29th Baramhat, April 7th), Nativity (29th Kiahk, January 7th)), Epiphany
(11th Tubah, January 19th), Palm Sunday, Resurrection, Ascension (40 days after Res-
urrection), and Pentecost (50 days after resurrection). The 7 minor Lords feasts are the
Circumcision (6th Tuba, January 14th), Jesus entering the Temple (8th Amshir, February
16th), Flight into Egypt (24th Bashans, June 1), Wedding at Cana (13th Tubah, January
22), Transfiguration on the Mount (13th Misra, August 19th), Holy Thursday, Sunday of
Saint Thomas (first Sunday after Easter).
The Cross of Christ was found by Saint Helena (Helen), the mother of Emperor Constantine
the Great. The Commemoration of the Appearance of the Cross is celebrated on the 10th
of Baramhat. And because this always comes during the Great Lent, it was substituted
by the Church Fathers for the Seventeenth of Tute which is the day of the consecration of
its church.
After Queen Helena found the precious cross, she built several holy places and churches.
There are three important days regarding the Feast of the Cross:
16th Tute: The Commemoration of the Consecration of the Sanctuaries of the Res-
urrection.
358
17th Tute: The Feast of the Consecration of the Church of the Honorable Cross (the
bishops marched with the honorable Cross around all of the holy places).
16th Tute
In the twentieth year of the reign of Emperor Constantine and after the meeting of the
Holy Council at Nicea, Queen Helena told her son Constantine that she had vowed to go
to Jerusalem to get the blessings of the holy places and to search for the wood of the life
giving Cross.
He rejoiced at this and gave her much money, and he sent with her a large number of
soldiers.
When she arrived there and received the blessings of the holy places, she searched for the
wood of the Cross and found it after much toil. She praised it with great praises and paid
to it much reverence and honor.
She commanded the building of the sanctuaries of the Resurrection - the Golgotha, Beth-
lehem and the manger, the fortress of Zion, Gethsemane and the sanctuaries, and other
holy places - and that they be inlaid with pearl and covered with gold and silver.
There was in Jerusalem a saintly bishop who advised her not to do that saying, For after
a while foreign people will come and seize this place and destroy it and take the precious
stones and the silver and the gold. But it is preferable to build good and strong buildings
and the remainder of the money be given to the poor and the needy.
She accepted his words and gave him the money and set him in charge of the work.
When she returned back to her son and told him what she had done, he rejoiced, and sent
large sums of money and commanded to pay the workers their wages in full so they would
not complain.
359
When the building of the holy places was finished in the thirtieth year of the reign of
Emperor Constantine, he sent vessels and precious vestments for the altars. He sent word
to the Archbishop of Constantinople and to Saint Athanasius, the Pope of Alexandria
to take their bishops and to go to Jerusalem where they would meet the Archbishop of
Antioch and the Bishop of Jerusalem.
They tarried there until the sixteenth of the month of Tute, when they consecrated all the
altars that had been built.
On the seventeenth day they marched with the Honorable Cross around all the holy places
and they worshiped God therein, and gave offerings, and they glorified the Cross and
honored it. Then they returned to their chairs.
17th Tute
The Cross was revealed by the lover of God, Queen Helena, mother of Emperor Constan-
tine, from under the pile of dirt in Golgotha, after she ordered its removal.
As to the reason for how this great pile of dirt came into being, it was thus: the Jewish
leaders when they saw all the signs and wonders which were made manifest from the
sepulcher of our Savior, such as raising the dead and healing the sick, became angry,
and they sent forth throughout Judea and Jerusalem ordering all the people to cast the
sweepings of their houses and the dirt over the sepulcher of Jesus of Nazareth. And they
continued to do so for more than two hundred years, until it became a very great heap.
When Saint Helen came to Jerusalem, and asked the Jews about the whereabouts of the
Cross, they did not inform her. Finally, some of them told her about an old Jew called
Judas who knew the place.
She called him, and he denied at first but when she urged him, he told her about the pile.
She ordered its removal and the Holy Cross was found.
She built a church for it and consecrated it and celebrated it on the seventeenth day of
the month of Tute.
All Christian people make pilgrimages to that place every year as they do in the Feast of
the Resurrection.
360
A certain Samaritan called Isaac, as he was traveling with his family among the people
going to Jerusalem, reproved the people for taking such trouble in going to Jerusalem to
worship a piece of wood.
Among the people was a priest whose name was Okhidus. While traveling along the road,
they became thirsty.
They found no water and they came to a well where the water was foul and bitter. The
people became dismayed.
Isaac the Samaritan started mocking them saying, If I witness a power by the name of
the Cross, I will become a believer of Christ. The priest Okhidus was moved with divine
zeal and prayed over that foul water and made the sign of the Cross on it, and it became
sweet.
All the people and their animals drank, but when Isaac drank, the water was bitter and
wormy.
He regretted and cried and came to the saint, Father Okhidus, and he bowed down at his
feet and believed in the Lord Christ.
Then he drank from the water, and he found it sweet. That water had the power of
becoming sweet for the believers and bitter for the others.
A cross of light appeared in the well and a church was built there. When Isaac the
Samaritan arrived in Jerusalem, he went to its bishop who baptized him and his family.
The appearance of the Honorable Cross at the hands of Queen Helena was on the tenth
of Baramhat. And because this always comes during the Great Lent, it was substituted
by the Church Fathers for the Seventeenth of Tute which is the day of consecration of its
church.
10th Baramhat
When Queen Helens son Constantine accepted the Faith in the Lord Christ, she vowed
to go to Jerusalem to look for the Cross.
361
Her righteous son prepared everything needed to fulfill this holy visit. When she arrived
to Jerusalem with multitude of soldiers, she asked about the place of the Cross but no one
would tell her.
She took one of the Jewish elders and pressured him by hunger and thirst until he was
forced to direct them to the place where they might find the Cross at the hill of Golgotha.
She ordered them to clear out the site of Golgotha where they found three crosses and
that was in the year 326 A.D.
However, they did not know the cross upon which Our Lord Christ was crucified, they
brought a dead man and they laid upon him one of the crosses and then the other, but
he did not rise up. But when they laid the third cross upon him, he rose up immediately,
then they realized that this was the Cross of Our Lord Christ.
The Empress and all the believers kneeled down before the Holy Cross, and she sent a
piece of it with the nails to her son Constantine.
Immediately after, she built the churches that were mentioned on the Sixteenth day of the
blessed month of Tute.
When the Persians were defeated by Heraclius, they retreated from Egypt to their country
in 627 AD.
On their way back they passed through Jerusalem, a Persian prince entered the church of
the Cross which was built by Empress Helen.
He saw a great light shining from a piece of wood located on a place decorated with gold.
He thrust his hand to it and there went forth from it fire which burned his fingers.
The Christians told him that this is the base of the Holy Cross and they told him how it
was discovered and no one was able to touch it except a Christian.
He deceived the two deacons who were standing to guard it and gave them much money
so they would carry this piece and go with it with him to his country.
They took it and put it in a box and went with him to his country along with those who
were captured from the city of Jerusalem.
362
When Emperor Heraclius heard that, he went with his army to Persia, fought with them
and slew many of them.
He traveled about this country searching for this piece of the Holy Cross but he could not
find it, for the Persian prince had dug a hole in his garden and ordered the two deacons
to put the box in it and buried it, and then he killed them.
One of the captives of that Persian prince, who was the daughter of one of the priests, was
looking out of the window by chance and saw what happened.
She went to Heraclius the Emperor and told him what she saw. He went with the bishops,
priests and the soldiers to the place.
They dug there and found the box, they took the piece of the Holy Cross out, in 628 A.D.,
wrapped it in magnificent apparel and Heraclius took it to the city of Constantinople and
kept it there.
363
Synaxarium Reading for 16th Tute
364
Synaxarium Reading for 17th Tute
On this day the church celebrates the appearance of the Honorable Cross of our Lord Jesus
Christ. This was revealed by the lover of God, Queen Helena, mother of Emperor Constantine,
from under the pile of Golgotha, after she ordered its removal. As to the reason for how this
great pile of dirt came into being, it was thus: the Jewish leaders when they saw all the signs
and wonders which were made manifest from the sepulcher of our Savior, such as raising the
dead and healing the sick, became angry, and they sent forth throughout Judea and Jerusalem
ordering all the people to cast the sweepings of their houses and the dirt over the sepulcher
of Jesus of Nazareth. And they continued to do so for more than two hundred years, until it
became a very great heap. When Saint Helena came to Jerusalem, and asked the Jews about
the whereabouts of the Cross, they did not inform her. Finally, some of them told her about
an old Jew called Judas who knew the place. She called him, and he denied at first but when
she urged him, he told her about the pile. She ordered its removal and the Holy Cross was
found. she built a church for it and consecrated it and celebrated it on the seventeenth day of
the month of Tute. All Christian people make pilgrimages to that place every year as they do
in the Feast of the Resurrection. A certain Samaritan called Isaac, as he was traveling with
his family among the people going to Jerusalem, reproved the people for taking such trouble
in going to Jerusalem to worship a piece of wood. Among the people was a priest whose name
was Okhidus. While traveling along the road, they became thirsty. They found no water and
they came to a well where the water was foul and bitter. The people became dismayed. Isaac
the Samaritan started mocking them saying, If I witness a power by the name of the Cross, I
will become a believer of Christ. The priest Okhidus was moved with divine zeal and prayed
over that foul water and made the sign of the Cross on it, and it became sweet. All the people
and their animals drank, but when Isaac drank, the water was bitter and wormy. He regretted
and cried and came to the saint, Father Okhidus, and he bowed down at his feet and believed
in the Lord Christ. Then he drank from the water, and he found it sweet. That water had the
power of becoming sweet for the believers and bitter for the others. A cross of light appeared
in the well and a church was built there. When Isaac the Samaritan arrived in Jerusalem, he
went to its bishop who baptized him and his family. The appearance of the Honorable Cross
at the hands of Queen Helena was on the tenth of Baramhat. And because this always comes
during fasting, it was substituted by the fathers for the Seventeenth of Tute which is the day
of consecration of its church. Glory and worship be to Jesus Christ our Lord forever and ever.
Amen.
365
Synaxarium Reading for 10th Baramhat
The church celebrates the appearance of the glorious Cross of Our Lord and Saviour Jesus
Christ twice: The First on the sixteenth day of the month of Tute, 326 A.D. by the hands of
the righteous Empress St. Helen, the mother of Constantine the great, the righteous Emperor.
This Saint when her son Constantine accepted the Faith in the Lord Christ, she vowed to go
to Jerusalem. Her righteous son prepared everything needed to fulfill this holy visit. When she
arrived to Jerusalem with a multitude of soldiers, she asked about the place of the Cross but no
one would tell her. She took one of the Jewish elders and pressured him by hunger and thirst
until he was forced to direct them to the place where they might find the Cross at the hill of
Golgotha. She ordered them to clear out the site of Golgotha where they found three crosses
and that was in the year 326 A.D. However, they did not know the cross upon which Our Lord
Christ was crucified, they brought a dead man and they laid upon him one of the crosses and
then the other but he did not rise up but when they laid the third cross upon him he rose up
immediately, then they realized that this was the Cross of Our Lord Christ. The Empress and all
the believers kneeled down before the Holy Cross, and she sent a piece of it with the nails to her
son Constantine. Immediately after, she built the churches that were mentioned on the Sixteenth
day of the blessed month of Tute. The Second celebration that the church commemorates the
Cross is on the Tenth day of the month of Baramhat by the hands of Emperor Heraclius, in 627
A.D. When the Persians were defeated by Heraclius they retreated from Egypt to their country.
On their way back they passed through Jerusalem, a Persian prince entered the church of the
Cross which was built by Empress Helen. He saw a great light shining from a piece of wood
located on a place decorated with gold. He thrust his hand to it and there went forth from it
fire which burned his fingers. The Christians told him that this is the base of the Holy Cross
and they told him how it was discovered and no one was able to touch it except a Christian. He
deceived the two deacons who were standing to guard it and gave them much money so they
would carry this piece and go with it with him to his country. They took it and put it in a
box and went with him to his country along with those who were captured from the city of
Jerusalem. When Emperor Heraclius heard that, he went with his army to Persia, fought with
them and slew many of them. He traveled about this country searching for this piece of the
Holy Cross but he could not find it, for the Persian prince had dug a hole in his garden and
ordered the two deacons to put the box in it and buried it and then he killed them. One of the
captives of that Persian prince, who was the daughter of one of the priests, was looking out of
366
the window by chance and saw what happened. She went to Heraclius the Emperor and told
him what she saw. He went with the bishops, priests and the soldiers to the place. They dug
there and found the box, they took the piece of the Holy Cross out, in 628 A.D., wrapped it in
magnificent apparel and Heraclius took it to the city of Constantinople and kept it there. May
the blessings of the Holy Cross be with us and Glory be to God forever. Amen.
367
Kiahk - Part I
The Nativity fast (the Advent) starts on November 25th and ends on January 7th (29th
Kiahk).
The Nativity fast is 43 days long. We fast in order to prepare ourselves for the coming of
our Savior Jesus Christ.
The original Nativity fast was 40 days. Why 40? the number 40 represents a period of
trial and completion in the Bible. Jesus fasted 40 days on the mount before starting His
ministry, the flood lasted for 40 days in the days of Noah, Jesus ascended to heaven 40 days
after the resurrection, the Israelites were in the wilderness for 40 years until they entered
the promised land, Jonah proclaimed to the Ninevites that the city would be overthrown
in 40 days, Moses was on the mount for 40 days, etc...
Three days were added to the fast by Patriarch Abraam (62nd Coptic Pope) in 970 AD as a
remembrance of the moving of Mukkatam Mountain. The moving of Mukkatam Mountain
is read in the Coptic Synaxarium on 6th Kiahk (December 16th), which is the departure
day of Patriarch Abraam.
January 7th is the Feast of the Nativity, one of the seven major Lords feasts.
The month of Kiahk starts from 1st Kiahk (December 11th) to 29th Kiahk (January 7th).
Kiahk is period where we again focus on the life of Saint Mary and the birth of Jesus. The
midnight praises during the month of Kiahk focus on the life of Saint Mary.
The Gospel readings for the liturgy during the four Sundays of Kiahk are all from Luke
and sequentially cover the entire first chapter of Luke.
First Sunday of Kiahk - The Gospel reading is Luke 1:1-25. This reading is the
Annunciation of the birth of John the Baptist by the Archangel Gabriel to Zacharias.
Second Sunday of Kiahk - The Gospel reading is Luke 1:26-38. This reading is
the Annunciation of the birth of Christ to Saint Mary by Archangel Gabriel.
The Annunciation of the birth of Christ to Saint Mary by Archangel Gabriel is one
of the seven major Lords feasts, celebrated on 29th Baramhat (April 7th). Also, on
the 29th of each Coptic month (except during the Great Lent, the 50 days of the
368
Holy Pentecost, and the month of Kiahk), Luke 1:26-38 is the Gospel reading for the
Divine Liturgy.
Third Sunday of Kiahk - The Gospel reading is Luke 1:39-56. This reading is the
visit of Saint Mary to Elizabeths house, where John the baptist leaped in Elizabeths
womb and the Virgin Mary stayed with Elizabeth 3 months until John the baptist
was born. John the baptist was 6 months older than Jesus.
The Fourth Sunday of Kiahk - The Gospel reading is Luke 1:57-80. This Gospel
reading records the birth of John the Baptist to Elizabeth. In this reading Elizabeth
insisted on the name John and Zachariass tongue was loosed and he prophesied about
Christ.
29th Kiahk (Nativity Feast) - The Gospel reading is Matthew 2:1-12. This Gospel
reading is the birth of Jesus, the visit of the wise men, and the declaration of Herod.
The Gospel of Luke is the only Gospel that records the annunciation to Saint Mary by
Archangel Gabriel.
The Gospel of Matthew records the Annunciation to Joseph by Archangel Gabriel (Matthew
1:1-25).
Luke and Matthew are the only two Gospels that record the birth of Christ (Matthew
2:1-23, Luke 2:1-52).
Luke is the only Gospel that records the circumcision of Jesus (Luke 2:21-39) and Entry
into the Temple (Luke 2:21-39), and Matthew is the only Gospel that records the Flight
into Egypt (Matthew 2:13-23). These three events are minor Lords feasts in the Coptic
Church. The circumcision is celebrated on 6th Tubah (January 14th), the Entry into
the Temple is celebrated on 8th Amshir (February 16th), and the Flight into Egypt is
celebrated on 24 Bashans (June 1st).
During the month of Kiahk, the deacons responses are different than the annual responses.
The Intercessions, the Praxis, and Gospel responses are different, and sung in the Kiahk
tune. Also, the Gospel response for the 3rd and 4th Sundays of Kiahk is different than
the 1st and 2nd Sundays of Kiahk.
The Communion hymns focus on Saint Mary and the birth of Christ. such hymns include
The Burning Bush, The Three Youth in the Fiery Furnace, and Amen Alleluia. Also,
Rejoice O Mary (Efrahi Ya-Marium) is often sung during the liturgy.
369
Kiahk - Part II
In this lesson, we will learn about the Tasbeha, both the annual Tasbeha and the Tasbeha
for Kiahk.
The word Tasbeha means praise, and in English it is referred to as the Midnight Psalmody.
The word Psalmody is derived from the word Psalms, which are the main body of poems
in Scripture (the Book of Psalms) and were given a distinctive system of accents.
Praising is a natural response to the love of God in our spiritual life. Praising and singing
is the work of the Angels and the heavenly hosts, with all their ranks, as the Lord said to
Job, Where were you ... when the morning stars sang together, and all the sons of God
shouted for joy? (Job 38: 4, 7).
The Tasbeha is chanted from The Holy Psalmody book. There are two kinds of psalmodies:
The annual psalmody which is used for the entire Coptic year except for the month
of Kiahk.
The Kiahk psalmody, which is used only during the month of Kiahk.
In short, the theme of Tasbeha can be explained as a journey of an enslaved soul that woke
up from slavery and is now rejoicing at the mighty hand of the Lord that saved it from
slavery and passed it through water (the Red Sea) and fire (the three young men) until
it reached its final place of rest (heaven), and is now singing joyfully with the cloud of
witnesses in front of the Throne of God. As we read in Psalm 66:12, We passed through
water and through fire and you brought us out to your rich fulfillment.
The Tasbeha is composed of Hoces, also called Canticles or Odes. The three words Hoce,
Canticle, and Ode all mean the same thing. A Canticle is a song or hymn with words
taken from the Bible.
1. Ten Theno - The Tasbeha starts with the beautiful long tune Ten Theno, which means
Let us arise O sons of light that we may praise the Lord of powers. Each stanza in Ten
Theno ends with Glory be to You, O lover of mankind.
370
2. Tennav - After Ten Theno, Tennav is sung which means Let us look at the Resurrection
of Christ. Tennav is said every day from the Feast of the Resurrection and during the
Holy Fifty days, and then after that, it is said only on Sundays until the end of the month
of Hatour.
3. The First Hoce (Canticle, Ode) - The first hoce consists of the praises of Moses when
he and the Israelites crossed the Red Sea and were saved from the hands of the Egyptians.
It can be found in Exodus, Chapter 15.
The crossing of the Red Sea is a cause for joy and praise to all of Christianity. This
hoce also symbolizes every person who has come out of the strict slavery of sin.
We praise with Moses in the Tasbeha saying, Your right hand O Lord is glorified
with power, Your right hand my Lord has defeated your enemies.
The theme of the first hoce is freedom from slavery and water.
Following the first hoce, the Lobsch is sung. The word Lobsch is a Coptic word which
means explanation, and thus the Lobsch is an explanation about the previous hoce.
It is a poetic praise that is sung in a long hymn and beautiful melody.
We meditate on His creation and we thank Him for His creation, as we say, Alleluia,
His mercy endures forever. This phrase is repeated after every verse of the Psalm.
After the second hoce is another Lobsch, and it starts by Let us thank Christ our
Lord with the Psalmist David the Prophet.
5. The Third Hoce - The third hoce is the praise of the three saintly youths which we can
find in the Canonical Books (addition to the Book of Daniel).
In this hoce, the three youth ask all of creation to join with them in the praise of
God and the blessings of His infinite power, as we say, Praise the Lord O you rain
with the dew. Praise the Lord you clouds and wind.
After each verse, we say Let us praise Him and exalt Him above all, forever.
371
One might wonder why we say Praise the Lord O you rain, dew, clouds, wind,....
When we see their beauty, we express our feelings of gratitude and thanksgiving on
their behalf. They would like to send a message to God their creator, but they cannot,
so we act as a bridge or a messenger to deliver these praises to God.
Following the third hoce comes the Vatos Psali for the three saintly youths. It is sung
in Greek and Coptic.
After the Vatos Psali is another Greek praise for the three saintly youths called
Tenen, which is sung only in the month of Kiahk.
After Tenen is another Coptic praise for the three saintly youths called Ten Oh
Ensok, meaning We follow you with our hearts.
6. Commemoration of the Saints - After these hymns comes the commemoration of the
saints. When we become involved in praising and glorifying God, the entire victorious
church participates with us, that is, all of the heavenly hosts in heaven and the saints.
It is the souls of the saints who have preceded us to paradise who participate with
us, support us, and accompany us in our continuous struggle against the world, sin,
and the weakness of the body.
We also ask intercessions from the heavenly hosts and saints, and prayers from the
prophets. We say Intercede in our behalf .... that He may forgive us our sins.
Specifically, we say Intercede on our behalf to Saint Mary, the heavenly hosts, Saint
John the Baptist, and the 144,000. We say Pray to the Lord on our behalf to the
martyrs, the prophets, and the rest of the saints.
7. Doxologies - After the commemoration of the saints come the Doxologies. The word
Doxology come from the Greek word Doxa which means glory. Thus, Doxology means
glorification. It is paying honor and respect to the saints.
8. The Fourth Hoce - After we receive the blessings of the saints and the heavenly hosts,
we return once again to praising God.
The fourth hoce is composed of three psalms. They are Psalm 148, 149, and 150.
These psalms express the joy, victory, and fulfillment.
372
The theme of this hoce is heaven and rich fulfillment.
Ten Theno to the end of the fourth hoce is sung every day in the Midnight Psalmody
without change. These praises are sung the same set way in every day of the Midnight
Psalmody.
9. The Psalis - After the fourth hoce come the Psalis, which change every day. The word
Psali is a Greek word which means chant (song). There are seven Psalis and each day of
the week has one Psali specifically for that day.
The Psali is organized around the name of the Lord Jesus, which is repeated in almost
every verse.
Sunday has two Psalis. The first is a hymn for the Virgin Mary and the second is
for the Lord Jesus, Ai Koty, which means I asked for You from the depth of my
heart. Thus, at the end of the first stanza in Ai Koty, we say, My Lord Jesus help
me and in the second stanza, we say My Lord Jesus Christ help me.
At the end of the Psali for Jesus, in the days of Adam, we sing Lipon Anshan The
ooti, which means And whenever we gather for prayer, let us bless the name of my
Lord Jesus. In the days of Vatos, we sing Eshop an Shan Erepsalin, which means
When we sing hymns let us say with ... O Lord Jesus Christ create mercy with our
souls.
Adam refers to the days Sunday, Monday, and Tuesday, and Vatos refers to the days
Wednesday, Thursday, Friday and Saturday. The tunes in the Adam and Vatos days
are different.
We use Adam and Vatos to refer to the days because Adam, who is the Adam of
the Old Testament, is the first word in the Monday Theotokia, and Vatos, which is a
Coptic word meaning bush (referring to the burning bush that Moses saw) is the
first word in the Thursday Theotokia.
10. The Theotokia - Theotokos is a Greek word meaning mother of God. The word Theo
means God and tokos means mother. Thus, the Theotokias are all of the prophecies and
symbols in the Old Testament referring to the Virgin Mary.
In the Theotokias, there are deep theological praises regarding the Incarnation of
Christ.
373
For each day of the week, there is a specific Theotokia, and thus there are seven in
all. The tune of the Theotokia is different in the Adam and Vatos days.
In the Sunday Theotokia, we read from the Gospel of Luke (Luke 2:29-32), then sing
Shere Ne Maria, and Semouti.
The Theotokias end with the Lobsch (explanation), with the exception of Sunday
which does not have a Lobsch. Instead, on Sunday, we say Nem Ghar nen Nooti,
which means Who in the gods is like You O Lord. This praise is sung in the Holy
Fifty days after Easter, then only on Sundays until the last Sunday in the month of
Hatour.
After the Antiphonarium, we recite the end of the Theotokias: In Adam we say, Nik
Nai O Panooti which means Your mercies O my God are countless. In Vatos, we
say, O Pen Chois Isos Pikhrestos which means Our Lord Jesus Christ.
After the end of the Theotokias, we recite We magnify you O mother of the
true light, and then recite the Nicene Creed.
Then we ask for Gods mercy and recite Ef Noti Nai Nan, Kirie Eleyson.
Then we pray Holy, Holy, Holy, Lord of Sabaoth and end with Our Father
who art in heaven.
During Kiahk, we use this same basic structure except several more hymns are added.
We also say all seven Psalis, the seven Theotokias, and the seven Lobschs in the Sunday
Midnight Psalmody.
374
The Transfiguration of Jesus
The transfiguration is one of the 7 minor Lords feasts in the Coptic church, where Jesus
was transfigured and talked with Moses and Elijah. The Apostles Peter, James and John
witnessed the transfiguration. It is celebrated on 13th Misra (August 19th), during the
fast of Saint Mary. The Gospel reading for this minor feast day is Mark 9:2-13.
The Transfiguration is recorded in three of the four Gospels. It is found in Matthew 17:1-9,
Mark 9:2-13, and Luke 9:28-36. It is also mentioned in 2 Peter 1:16-21.
The Transfiguration occurred shortly after the feeding of the five thousand and the four
thousand. The account of the Transfiguration confirms that Jesus is the Son of God and
points to fulfillment of the prediction that He will come in His Fathers glory at the end
of the age (Matthew 16:27).
This event marks the beginning of Jesuss journey to Jerusalem for His passion.
Jesus took Peter, James, and John his brother to witness the Transfiguration. Peter, James
and John are the inner circle of the apostles. They were also chosen to be separate from
the rest of the twelve in the Garden of Gethsemane (Matthew 26:37) and at the raising of
Jariuss daughter (Mark 5:37).
The brightness of the illumination in the Transfiguration recalls the brightness of the face
of Moses after the Sinai revelation (Exodus 34:29-35), which made it necessary for Moses
to veil his face.
375
Several elements of the Transfiguration show that Christ is the Messiah and God.
1. Because God is light (1 John 1:5), the bright cloud, the shining face of Jesus like the sun,
and the witness of His garment (Matthew 12:2, 5) all demonstrate that Jesus is God.
2. The Father bears witness from heaven concerning His Son. He does not say, This has
become My beloved Son, but This is My beloved son (Matthew 17:5), indicating that
this divine glory is Christs by nature. From eternity past, infinitely before Jesuss Baptism
and Transfiguration, He is Gods Son, fully sharing in the essence of the Father: Jesus
Christ is God of God!
3. The Transfiguration not only proclaims Christs divine sonship, but foreshadows His future
glory when He as the Messiah will usher in the long-awaited Kingdom: The bright cloud
recalls temple worship and the cloud that went before the Israelites in the wilderness,
the visible sign of God being extraordinarily present. Peter sees this as a sign that the
Kingdom has come. Knowing that the Feast of Tabernacles is the feast of the coming
Kingdom, he asks to build booths (Matthew 17:4), as was done at that feast, to serve as
symbols of Gods dwelling among the just in the Kingdom.
4. Moses and Elijah appeared with Jesus in the Transfiguration. Moses and Elijah represent,
respectively, the Law and the Prophets. Specifically, Moses represents the Law and all
those who have died, and Elijah represents the Prophets, and since Elijah did not experi-
ence death (2 Kings 2:11), he also represents those who are alive in Christ. It is Elijah who
will come to bear witness of Christ, along with Enoch, in the ends of the days (Revelation,
11:1-13). Their presence shows that the Law and the Prophets, the living and the dead,
all bear witness to Jesus as the Messiah, the fulfillment of the whole Old Testament. The
term the Law and the Prophets was used to designate the entire collection of Old Tes-
tament books, and thus the fullness of the revelation of God to Israel. Jesus joins Moses
and Elijah as the fulfillment of the Law and the Prophets (Matthew 5:17). Jesus says in
Matthew 5:17, Do not think that I came to destroy the Law and the Prophets. I did not
came to destroy but to fulfill.
The presence of Moses and Elijah also manifests the communion of the saints (Hebrews
12:1). Both men are immediately recognizable, and talk with the Lord. The disciples are
able to understand Jesuss words Elijah has already come (Matthew 17:12), referring to
John the Baptist, who was the last of the prophets.
376
5. Finally, the H